11817 lines
544 KiB
Plaintext
11817 lines
544 KiB
Plaintext
**Welcome To The World of Free Plain Vanilla Electronic Texts**
|
|
|
|
**Etexts Readable By Both Humans and By Computers, Since 1971**
|
|
|
|
*These Etexts Prepared By Hundreds of Volunteers and Donations*
|
|
|
|
Information on contacting Project Gutenberg to get Etexts, and
|
|
further information is included below. We need your donations.
|
|
|
|
|
|
June, 1993 [Etext #70]
|
|
|
|
*The Project Gutenberg Edition of "What Is Man?" by Mark Twain*
|
|
*******This file should be named wman10.txt or wman10.zip******
|
|
|
|
Corrected EDITIONS of our etexts get a new NUMBER, wman11.txt
|
|
VERSIONS based on separate sources get new LETTER, wman10a.txt
|
|
|
|
Information about Project Gutenberg (one page)
|
|
|
|
We produce about two million dollars for each hour we work. The
|
|
fifty hours is one conservative estimate for how long it we take
|
|
to get any etext selected, entered, proofread, edited, copyright
|
|
searched and analyzed, the copyright letters written, etc. This
|
|
projected audience is one hundred million readers. If our value
|
|
per text is nominally estimated at one dollar, then we produce 2
|
|
million dollars per hour this year we will have to do four text
|
|
files per month: thus upping our productivity from one million.
|
|
The Goal of Project Gutenberg is to Give Away One Trillion Etext
|
|
Files by the December 31, 2001. [10,000 x 100,000,000=Trillion]
|
|
This is ten thousand titles each to one hundred million readers,
|
|
which is 10% of the expected number of computer users by the end
|
|
of the year 2001.
|
|
|
|
We need your donations more than ever!
|
|
|
|
All donations should be made to "Project Gutenberg/IBC", and are
|
|
tax deductible to the extent allowable by law ("IBC" is Illinois
|
|
Benedictine College). (Subscriptions to our paper newsletter go
|
|
to IBC, too)
|
|
|
|
For these and other matters, please mail to:
|
|
|
|
David Turner, Project Gutenberg
|
|
Illinois Benedictine College
|
|
5700 College Road
|
|
Lisle, IL 60532-0900
|
|
|
|
Phone: 1-708-960-1500 (x3014)
|
|
|
|
General information: Internet: dircompg@ux1.cso.uiuc.edu
|
|
|
|
or
|
|
|
|
Internet: chipmonk@eagle.ibc.edu (David Turner)
|
|
Compuserve: >INTERNET: chipmonk@eagle.ibc.edu (David Turner)
|
|
Attmail: internet!chipmonk@eagle.ibc.edu (David Turner)
|
|
MCImail: (David Turner)
|
|
ADDRESS TYPE: MCI / EMS: INTERNET / MBX:chipmonk@eagle.ibc.edu
|
|
|
|
When all other email fails try our Michael S. Hart, Executive Director:
|
|
hart@vmd.cso.uiuc.edu (internet) hart@uiucvmd (bitnet)
|
|
|
|
We would prefer to send you this information by email
|
|
(Internet, Bitnet, Compuserve, ATTMAIL or MCImail).
|
|
|
|
******
|
|
If you have an FTP program (or emulator), please
|
|
FTP directly to the Project Gutenberg archives:
|
|
[Mac users, do NOT point and click. . .type]
|
|
|
|
ftp mrcnext.cso.uiuc.edu
|
|
login: anonymous
|
|
password: your@login
|
|
cd etext/etext91
|
|
or cd etext92
|
|
or cd etext93 [for new books] [now also in cd etext/etext93]
|
|
or cd etext/articles [get suggest gut for more information]
|
|
dir [to see files]
|
|
get or mget [to get files. . .set bin for zip files]
|
|
GET 0INDEX.GUT
|
|
for a list of books
|
|
and
|
|
GET NEW GUT for general information
|
|
and
|
|
MGET GUT* for newsletters.
|
|
|
|
**Information prepared by the Project Gutenberg legal advisor**
|
|
(Three Pages)
|
|
|
|
|
|
***START**THE SMALL PRINT!**FOR PUBLIC DOMAIN ETEXTS**START***
|
|
Why is this "Small Print!" statement here? You know: lawyers.
|
|
They tell us you might sue us if there is something wrong with
|
|
your copy of this etext, even if you got it for free from
|
|
someone other than us, and even if what's wrong is not our
|
|
fault. So, among other things, this "Small Print!" statement
|
|
disclaims most of our liability to you. It also tells you how
|
|
you can distribute copies of this etext if you want to.
|
|
|
|
*BEFORE!* YOU USE OR READ THIS ETEXT
|
|
By using or reading any part of this PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
|
|
etext, you indicate that you understand, agree to and accept
|
|
this "Small Print!" statement. If you do not, you can receive
|
|
a refund of the money (if any) you paid for this etext by
|
|
sending a request within 30 days of receiving it to the person
|
|
you got it from. If you received this etext on a physical
|
|
medium (such as a disk), you must return it with your request.
|
|
|
|
ABOUT PROJECT GUTENBERG-TM ETEXTS
|
|
This PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm etext, like most PROJECT GUTENBERG-
|
|
tm etexts, is a "public domain" work distributed by Professor
|
|
Michael S. Hart through the Project Gutenberg Association at
|
|
Illinois Benedictine College (the "Project"). Among other
|
|
things, this means that no one owns a United States copyright
|
|
on or for this work, so the Project (and you!) can copy and
|
|
distribute it in the United States without permission and
|
|
without paying copyright royalties. Special rules, set forth
|
|
below, apply if you wish to copy and distribute this etext
|
|
under the Project's "PROJECT GUTENBERG" trademark.
|
|
|
|
To create these etexts, the Project expends considerable
|
|
efforts to identify, transcribe and proofread public domain
|
|
works. Despite these efforts, the Project's etexts and any
|
|
medium they may be on may contain "Defects". Among other
|
|
things, Defects may take the form of incomplete, inaccurate or
|
|
corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
|
|
intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged
|
|
disk or other etext medium, a computer virus, or computer
|
|
codes that damage or cannot be read by your equipment.
|
|
|
|
LIMTED WARRANTY; DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES
|
|
But for the "Right of Replacement or Refund" described below,
|
|
[1] the Project (and any other party you may receive this
|
|
etext from as a PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm etext) disclaims all
|
|
liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including
|
|
legal fees, and [2] YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE OR
|
|
UNDER STRICT LIABILITY, OR FOR BREACH OF WARRANTY OR CONTRACT,
|
|
INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE
|
|
OR INCIDENTAL DAMAGES, EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE
|
|
POSSIBILITY OF SUCH DAMAGES.
|
|
|
|
If you discover a Defect in this etext within 90 days of
|
|
receiving it, you can receive a refund of the money (if any)
|
|
you paid for it by sending an explanatory note within that
|
|
time to the person you received it from. If you received it
|
|
on a physical medium, you must return it with your note, and
|
|
such person may choose to alternatively give you a replacement
|
|
copy. If you received it electronically, such person may
|
|
choose to alternatively give you a second opportunity to
|
|
receive it electronically.
|
|
|
|
THIS ETEXT IS OTHERWISE PROVIDED TO YOU "AS-IS". NO OTHER
|
|
WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, ARE MADE TO YOU AS
|
|
TO THE ETEXT OR ANY MEDIUM IT MAY BE ON, INCLUDING BUT NOT
|
|
LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR A
|
|
PARTICULAR PURPOSE.
|
|
|
|
Some states do not allow disclaimers of implied warranties or
|
|
the exclusion or limitation of consequential damages, so the
|
|
above disclaimers and exclusions may not apply to you, and you
|
|
may have other legal rights.
|
|
|
|
INDEMNITY
|
|
You will indemnify and hold the Project, its directors,
|
|
officers, members and agents harmless from all liability, cost
|
|
and expense, including legal fees, that arise directly or
|
|
indirectly from any of the following that you do or cause:
|
|
[1] distribution of this etext, [2] alteration, modification,
|
|
or addition to the etext, or [3] any Defect.
|
|
|
|
DISTRIBUTION UNDER "PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm"
|
|
You may distribute copies of this etext electronically, or by
|
|
disk, book or any other medium if you either delete this
|
|
"Small Print!" and all other references to Project Gutenberg,
|
|
or:
|
|
|
|
[1] Only give exact copies of it. Among other things, this
|
|
requires that you do not remove, alter or modify the
|
|
etext or this "small print!" statement. You may however,
|
|
if you wish, distribute this etext in machine readable
|
|
binary, compressed, mark-up, or proprietary form,
|
|
including any form resulting from conversion by word pro-
|
|
cessing or hypertext software, but only so long as
|
|
*EITHER*:
|
|
|
|
[*] The etext, when displayed, is clearly readable, and
|
|
does *not* contain characters other than those
|
|
intended by the author of the work, although tilde
|
|
(~), asterisk (*) and underline (_) characters may
|
|
be used to convey punctuation intended by the
|
|
author, and additional characters may be used to
|
|
indicate hypertext links; OR
|
|
|
|
[*] The etext may be readily converted by the reader at
|
|
no expense into plain ASCII, EBCDIC or equivalent
|
|
form by the program that displays the etext (as is
|
|
the case, for instance, with most word processors);
|
|
OR
|
|
|
|
[*] You provide, or agree to also provide on request at
|
|
no additional cost, fee or expense, a copy of the
|
|
etext in its original plain ASCII form (or in EBCDIC
|
|
or other equivalent proprietary form).
|
|
|
|
[2] Honor the etext refund and replacement provisions of this
|
|
"Small Print!" statement.
|
|
|
|
[3] Pay a trademark license fee to the Project of 20% of the
|
|
net profits you derive calculated using the method you
|
|
already use to calculate your applicable taxes. If you
|
|
don't derive profits, no royalty is due. Royalties are
|
|
payable to "Project Gutenberg Association / Illinois
|
|
Benedictine College" within the 60 days following each
|
|
date you prepare (or were legally required to prepare)
|
|
your annual (or equivalent periodic) tax return.
|
|
|
|
WHAT IF YOU *WANT* TO SEND MONEY EVEN IF YOU DON'T HAVE TO?
|
|
The Project gratefully accepts contributions in money, time,
|
|
scanning machines, OCR software, public domain etexts, royalty
|
|
free copyright licenses, and every other sort of contribution
|
|
you can think of. Money should be paid to "Project Gutenberg
|
|
Association / Illinois Benedictine College".
|
|
|
|
This "Small Print!" by Charles B. Kramer, Attorney
|
|
Internet (72600.2026@compuserve.com); TEL: (212-254-5093)
|
|
*END*THE SMALL PRINT! FOR PUBLIC DOMAIN ETEXTS*Ver.04.29.93*END*
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
*The Project Gutenberg Edition of "What Is Man?" by Mark Twain*
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
WHAT IS MAN? AND OTHER ESSAYS OF MARK TWAIN
|
|
|
|
(Samuel Langhorne Clemens, 1835-1910)
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CONTENTS
|
|
|
|
|
|
What Is Man?
|
|
|
|
The Death of Jean
|
|
|
|
The Turning-Point of My Life
|
|
|
|
How to Make History Dates Stick
|
|
|
|
The Memorable Assassination
|
|
|
|
A Scrap of Curious History
|
|
|
|
Switzerland, the Cradle of Liberty
|
|
|
|
At the Shrine of St. Wagner
|
|
|
|
William Dean Howells
|
|
|
|
English as She is Taught
|
|
|
|
A Simplified Alphabet
|
|
|
|
As Concerns Interpreting the Deity
|
|
|
|
Concerning Tobacco
|
|
|
|
Taming the Bicycle
|
|
|
|
Is Shakespeare Dead?
|
|
|
|
-----------------------------------------------------------------
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
WHAT IS MAN?
|
|
|
|
|
|
I
|
|
|
|
a. Man the Machine. b. Personal Merit
|
|
|
|
|
|
[The Old Man and the Young Man had been conversing. The Old
|
|
Man had asserted that the human being is merely a machine, and
|
|
nothing more. The Young Man objected, and asked him to go into
|
|
particulars and furnish his reasons for his position.]
|
|
|
|
Old Man. What are the materials of which a steam-engine is made?
|
|
|
|
Young Man. Iron, steel, brass, white-metal, and so on.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Where are these found?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. In the rocks.
|
|
|
|
O.M. In a pure state?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. No--in ores.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Are the metals suddenly deposited in the ores?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. No--it is the patient work of countless ages.
|
|
|
|
O.M. You could make the engine out of the rocks themselves?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Yes, a brittle one and not valuable.
|
|
|
|
O.M. You would not require much, of such an engine as that?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. No--substantially nothing.
|
|
|
|
O.M. To make a fine and capable engine, how would you
|
|
proceed?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Drive tunnels and shafts into the hills; blast out the
|
|
iron ore; crush it, smelt it, reduce it to pig-iron; put some of
|
|
it through the Bessemer process and make steel of it. Mine and
|
|
treat and combine several metals of which brass is made.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Then?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Out of the perfected result, build the fine engine.
|
|
|
|
O.M. You would require much of this one?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Oh, indeed yes.
|
|
|
|
O.M. It could drive lathes, drills, planers, punches,
|
|
polishers, in a word all the cunning machines of a great factory?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. It could.
|
|
|
|
O.M. What could the stone engine do?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Drive a sewing-machine, possibly--nothing more,
|
|
perhaps.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Men would admire the other engine and rapturously
|
|
praise it?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Yes.
|
|
|
|
O.M. But not the stone one?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. No.
|
|
|
|
O.M. The merits of the metal machine would be far above
|
|
those of the stone one?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Of course.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Personal merits?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. PERSONAL merits? How do you mean?
|
|
|
|
O.M. It would be personally entitled to the credit of its
|
|
own performance?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. The engine? Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Why not?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Because its performance is not personal. It is the
|
|
result of the law of construction. It is not a MERIT that it
|
|
does the things which it is set to do--it can't HELP doing them.
|
|
|
|
O.M. And it is not a personal demerit in the stone machine
|
|
that it does so little?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Certainly not. It does no more and no less than the
|
|
law of its make permits and compels it to do. There is nothing
|
|
PERSONAL about it; it cannot choose. In this process of "working
|
|
up to the matter" is it your idea to work up to the proposition
|
|
that man and a machine are about the same thing, and that there
|
|
is no personal merit in the performance of either?
|
|
|
|
O.M. Yes--but do not be offended; I am meaning no offense.
|
|
What makes the grand difference between the stone engine and the
|
|
steel one? Shall we call it training, education? Shall we call
|
|
the stone engine a savage and the steel one a civilized man? The
|
|
original rock contained the stuff of which the steel one was
|
|
built--but along with a lot of sulphur and stone and other
|
|
obstructing inborn heredities, brought down from the old geologic
|
|
ages--prejudices, let us call them. Prejudices which nothing
|
|
within the rock itself had either POWER to remove or any DESIRE
|
|
to remove. Will you take note of that phrase?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Yes. I have written it down; "Prejudices which
|
|
nothing within the rock itself had either power to remove or any
|
|
desire to remove." Go on.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Prejudices must be removed by OUTSIDE INFLUENCES or
|
|
not at all. Put that down.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Very well; "Must be removed by outside influences or
|
|
not at all." Go on.
|
|
|
|
O.M. The iron's prejudice against ridding itself of the
|
|
cumbering rock. To make it more exact, the iron's absolute
|
|
INDIFFERENCE as to whether the rock be removed or not. Then
|
|
comes the OUTSIDE INFLUENCE and grinds the rock to powder and
|
|
sets the ore free. The IRON in the ore is still captive. An
|
|
OUTSIDE INFLUENCE smelts it free of the clogging ore. The iron
|
|
is emancipated iron, now, but indifferent to further progress.
|
|
An OUTSIDE INFLUENCE beguiles it into the Bessemer furnace and
|
|
refines it into steel of the first quality. It is educated, now
|
|
--its training is complete. And it has reached its limit. By no
|
|
possible process can it be educated into GOLD. Will you set that
|
|
down?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Yes. "Everything has its limit--iron ore cannot be
|
|
educated into gold."
|
|
|
|
O.M. There are gold men, and tin men, and copper men, and
|
|
leaden mean, and steel men, and so on--and each has the
|
|
limitations of his nature, his heredities, his training, and his
|
|
environment. You can build engines out of each of these metals,
|
|
and they will all perform, but you must not require the weak ones
|
|
to do equal work with the strong ones. In each case, to get the
|
|
best results, you must free the metal from its obstructing
|
|
prejudicial ones by education--smelting, refining, and so forth.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. You have arrived at man, now?
|
|
|
|
O.M. Yes. Man the machine--man the impersonal engine.
|
|
Whatsoever a man is, is due to his MAKE, and to the INFLUENCES
|
|
brought to bear upon it by his heredities, his habitat, his
|
|
associations. He is moved, directed, COMMANDED, by EXTERIOR
|
|
influences--SOLELY. He ORIGINATES nothing, not even a thought.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Oh, come! Where did I get my opinion that this which
|
|
you are talking is all foolishness?
|
|
|
|
O.M. It is a quite natural opinion--indeed an inevitable
|
|
opinion--but YOU did not create the materials out of which it is
|
|
formed. They are odds and ends of thoughts, impressions,
|
|
feelings, gathered unconsciously from a thousand books, a
|
|
thousand conversations, and from streams of thought and feeling
|
|
which have flowed down into your heart and brain out of the
|
|
hearts and brains of centuries of ancestors. PERSONALLY you did
|
|
not create even the smallest microscopic fragment of the
|
|
materials out of which your opinion is made; and personally you
|
|
cannot claim even the slender merit of PUTTING THE BORROWED
|
|
MATERIALS TOGETHER. That was done AUTOMATICALLY--by your mental
|
|
machinery, in strict accordance with the law of that machinery's
|
|
construction. And you not only did not make that machinery
|
|
yourself, but you have NOT EVEN ANY COMMAND OVER IT.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. This is too much. You think I could have formed no
|
|
opinion but that one?
|
|
|
|
O.M. Spontaneously? No. And YOU DID NOT FORM THAT ONE;
|
|
your machinery did it for you--automatically and instantly,
|
|
without reflection or the need of it.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Suppose I had reflected? How then?
|
|
|
|
O.M. Suppose you try?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. (AFTER A QUARTER OF AN HOUR.) I have reflected.
|
|
|
|
O.M. You mean you have tried to change your opinion--as an
|
|
experiment?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Yes.
|
|
|
|
O.M. With success?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. No. It remains the same; it is impossible to change
|
|
it.
|
|
|
|
O.M. I am sorry, but you see, yourself, that your mind is
|
|
merely a machine, nothing more. You have no command over it, it
|
|
has no command over itself--it is worked SOLELY FROM THE OUTSIDE.
|
|
That is the law of its make; it is the law of all machines.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Can't I EVER change one of these automatic opinions?
|
|
|
|
O.M. No. You can't yourself, but EXTERIOR INFLUENCES can
|
|
do it.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. And exterior ones ONLY?
|
|
|
|
O.M. Yes--exterior ones only.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. That position is untenable--I may say ludicrously
|
|
untenable.
|
|
|
|
O.M. What makes you think so?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. I don't merely think it, I know it. Suppose I resolve
|
|
to enter upon a course of thought, and study, and reading, with
|
|
the deliberate purpose of changing that opinion; and suppose I
|
|
succeed. THAT is not the work of an exterior impulse, the whole
|
|
of it is mine and personal; for I originated the project.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Not a shred of it. IT GREW OUT OF THIS TALK WITH ME.
|
|
But for that it would not have occurred to you. No man ever
|
|
originates anything. All his thoughts, all his impulses, come
|
|
FROM THE OUTSIDE.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. It's an exasperating subject. The FIRST man had
|
|
original thoughts, anyway; there was nobody to draw from.
|
|
|
|
O.M. It is a mistake. Adam's thoughts came to him from the
|
|
outside. YOU have a fear of death. You did not invent that--you
|
|
got it from outside, from talking and teaching. Adam had no fear
|
|
of death--none in the world.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Yes, he had.
|
|
|
|
O.M. When he was created?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. No.
|
|
|
|
O.M. When, then?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. When he was threatened with it.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Then it came from OUTSIDE. Adam is quite big enough;
|
|
let us not try to make a god of him. NONE BUT GODS HAVE EVER HAD
|
|
A THOUGHT WHICH DID NOT COME FROM THE OUTSIDE. Adam probably had
|
|
a good head, but it was of no sort of use to him until it was
|
|
filled up FROM THE OUTSIDE. He was not able to invent the
|
|
triflingest little thing with it. He had not a shadow of a
|
|
notion of the difference between good and evil--he had to get the
|
|
idea FROM THE OUTSIDE. Neither he nor Eve was able to originate
|
|
the idea that it was immodest to go naked; the knowledge came in
|
|
with the apple FROM THE OUTSIDE. A man's brain is so constructed
|
|
that IT CAN ORIGINATE NOTHING WHATSOEVER. It can only use
|
|
material obtained OUTSIDE. It is merely a machine; and it works
|
|
automatically, not by will-power. IT HAS NO COMMAND OVER ITSELF,
|
|
ITS OWNER HAS NO COMMAND OVER IT.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Well, never mind Adam: but certainly Shakespeare's
|
|
creations--
|
|
|
|
O.M. No, you mean Shakespeare's IMITATIONS. Shakespeare
|
|
created nothing. He correctly observed, and he marvelously
|
|
painted. He exactly portrayed people whom GOD had created; but
|
|
he created none himself. Let us spare him the slander of
|
|
charging him with trying. Shakespeare could not create. HE WAS
|
|
A MACHINE, AND MACHINES DO NOT CREATE.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Where WAS his excellence, then?
|
|
|
|
O.M. In this. He was not a sewing-machine, like you and
|
|
me; he was a Gobelin loom. The threads and the colors came into
|
|
him FROM THE OUTSIDE; outside influences, suggestions,
|
|
EXPERIENCES (reading, seeing plays, playing plays, borrowing
|
|
ideas, and so on), framed the patterns in his mind and started up
|
|
his complex and admirable machinery, and IT AUTOMATICALLY turned
|
|
out that pictured and gorgeous fabric which still compels the
|
|
astonishment of the world. If Shakespeare had been born and bred
|
|
on a barren and unvisited rock in the ocean his mighty intellect
|
|
would have had no OUTSIDE MATERIAL to work with, and could have
|
|
invented none; and NO OUTSIDE INFLUENCES, teachings, moldings,
|
|
persuasions, inspirations, of a valuable sort, and could have
|
|
invented none; and so Shakespeare would have produced nothing.
|
|
In Turkey he would have produced something--something up to the
|
|
highest limit of Turkish influences, associations, and training.
|
|
In France he would have produced something better--something up
|
|
to the highest limit of the French influences and training. In
|
|
England he rose to the highest limit attainable through the
|
|
OUTSIDE HELPS AFFORDED BY THAT LAND'S IDEALS, INFLUENCES, AND
|
|
TRAINING. You and I are but sewing-machines. We must turn out
|
|
what we can; we must do our endeavor and care nothing at all when
|
|
the unthinking reproach us for not turning out Gobelins.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. And so we are mere machines! And machines may not
|
|
boast, nor feel proud of their performance, nor claim personal
|
|
merit for it, nor applause and praise. It is an infamous
|
|
doctrine.
|
|
|
|
O.M. It isn't a doctrine, it is merely a fact.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. I suppose, then, there is no more merit in being brave
|
|
than in being a coward?
|
|
|
|
O.M. PERSONAL merit? No. A brave man does not CREATE his
|
|
bravery. He is entitled to no personal credit for possessing it.
|
|
It is born to him. A baby born with a billion dollars--where is
|
|
the personal merit in that? A baby born with nothing--where is
|
|
the personal demerit in that? The one is fawned upon, admired,
|
|
worshiped, by sycophants, the other is neglected and despised--
|
|
where is the sense in it?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Sometimes a timid man sets himself the task of
|
|
conquering his cowardice and becoming brave--and succeeds. What
|
|
do you say to that?
|
|
|
|
O.M. That it shows the value of TRAINING IN RIGHT
|
|
DIRECTIONS OVER TRAINING IN WRONG ONES. Inestimably valuable is
|
|
training, influence, education, in right directions--TRAINING
|
|
ONE'S SELF-APPROBATION TO ELEVATE ITS IDEALS.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. But as to merit--the personal merit of the victorious
|
|
coward's project and achievement?
|
|
|
|
O.M. There isn't any. In the world's view he is a worthier
|
|
man than he was before, but HE didn't achieve the change--the
|
|
merit of it is not his.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Whose, then?
|
|
|
|
O.M. His MAKE, and the influences which wrought upon it
|
|
from the outside.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. His make?
|
|
|
|
O.M. To start with, he was NOT utterly and completely a
|
|
coward, or the influences would have had nothing to work upon.
|
|
He was not afraid of a cow, though perhaps of a bull: not afraid
|
|
of a woman, but afraid of a man. There was something to build
|
|
upon. There was a SEED. No seed, no plant. Did he make that
|
|
seed himself, or was it born in him? It was no merit of HIS that
|
|
the seed was there.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Well, anyway, the idea of CULTIVATING it, the
|
|
resolution to cultivate it, was meritorious, and he originated
|
|
that.
|
|
|
|
O.M. He did nothing of the kind. It came whence ALL
|
|
impulses, good or bad, come--from OUTSIDE. If that timid man had
|
|
lived all his life in a community of human rabbits, had never
|
|
read of brave deeds, had never heard speak of them, had never
|
|
heard any one praise them nor express envy of the heroes that had
|
|
done them, he would have had no more idea of bravery than Adam
|
|
had of modesty, and it could never by any possibility have
|
|
occurred to him to RESOLVE to become brave. He COULD NOT
|
|
ORIGINATE THE IDEA--it had to come to him from the OUTSIDE. And
|
|
so, when he heard bravery extolled and cowardice derided, it woke
|
|
him up. He was ashamed. Perhaps his sweetheart turned up her
|
|
nose and said, "I am told that you are a coward!" It was not HE
|
|
that turned over the new leaf--she did it for him. HE must not
|
|
strut around in the merit of it--it is not his.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. But, anyway, he reared the plant after she watered the
|
|
seed.
|
|
|
|
O.M. No. OUTSIDE INFLUENCES reared it. At the command--
|
|
and trembling--he marched out into the field--with other soldiers
|
|
and in the daytime, not alone and in the dark. He had the
|
|
INFLUENCE OF EXAMPLE, he drew courage from his comrades' courage;
|
|
he was afraid, and wanted to run, but he did not dare; he was
|
|
AFRAID to run, with all those soldiers looking on. He was
|
|
progressing, you see--the moral fear of shame had risen superior
|
|
to the physical fear of harm. By the end of the campaign
|
|
experience will have taught him that not ALL who go into battle
|
|
get hurt--an outside influence which will be helpful to him; and
|
|
he will also have learned how sweet it is to be praised for
|
|
courage and be huzza'd at with tear-choked voices as the war-worn
|
|
regiment marches past the worshiping multitude with flags flying
|
|
and the drums beating. After that he will be as securely brave
|
|
as any veteran in the army--and there will not be a shade nor
|
|
suggestion of PERSONAL MERIT in it anywhere; it will all have
|
|
come from the OUTSIDE. The Victoria Cross breeds more heroes
|
|
than--
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Hang it, where is the sense in his becoming brave if
|
|
he is to get no credit for it?
|
|
|
|
O.M. Your question will answer itself presently. It
|
|
involves an important detail of man's make which we have not yet
|
|
touched upon.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. What detail is that?
|
|
|
|
O.M. The impulse which moves a person to do things--the
|
|
only impulse that ever moves a person to do a thing.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. The ONLY one! Is there but one?
|
|
|
|
O.M. That is all. There is only one.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Well, certainly that is a strange enough doctrine.
|
|
What is the sole impulse that ever moves a person to do a thing?
|
|
|
|
O.M. The impulse to CONTENT HIS OWN SPIRIT--the NECESSITY
|
|
of contenting his own spirit and WINNING ITS APPROVAL.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Oh, come, that won't do!
|
|
|
|
O.M. Why won't it?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Because it puts him in the attitude of always looking
|
|
out for his own comfort and advantage; whereas an unselfish man
|
|
often does a thing solely for another person's good when it is a
|
|
positive disadvantage to himself.
|
|
|
|
O.M. It is a mistake. The act must do HIM good, FIRST;
|
|
otherwise he will not do it. He may THINK he is doing it solely
|
|
for the other person's sake, but it is not so; he is contenting
|
|
his own spirit first--the other's person's benefit has to always
|
|
take SECOND place.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. What a fantastic idea! What becomes of self-
|
|
sacrifice? Please answer me that.
|
|
|
|
O.M. What is self-sacrifice?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. The doing good to another person where no shadow nor
|
|
suggestion of benefit to one's self can result from it.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
II
|
|
|
|
Man's Sole Impulse--the Securing of His Own Approval
|
|
|
|
|
|
Old Man. There have been instances of it--you think?
|
|
|
|
Young Man. INSTANCES? Millions of them!
|
|
|
|
O.M. You have not jumped to conclusions? You have examined
|
|
them--critically?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. They don't need it: the acts themselves reveal the
|
|
golden impulse back of them.
|
|
|
|
O.M. For instance?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Well, then, for instance. Take the case in the book
|
|
here. The man lives three miles up-town. It is bitter cold,
|
|
snowing hard, midnight. He is about to enter the horse-car when
|
|
a gray and ragged old woman, a touching picture of misery, puts
|
|
out her lean hand and begs for rescue from hunger and death. The
|
|
man finds that he has a quarter in his pocket, but he does not
|
|
hesitate: he gives it her and trudges home through the storm.
|
|
There--it is noble, it is beautiful; its grace is marred by no
|
|
fleck or blemish or suggestion of self-interest.
|
|
|
|
O.M. What makes you think that?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Pray what else could I think? Do you imagine that
|
|
there is some other way of looking at it?
|
|
|
|
O.M. Can you put yourself in the man's place and tell me
|
|
what he felt and what he thought?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Easily. The sight of that suffering old face pierced
|
|
his generous heart with a sharp pain. He could not bear it. He
|
|
could endure the three-mile walk in the storm, but he could not
|
|
endure the tortures his conscience would suffer if he turned his
|
|
back and left that poor old creature to perish. He would not
|
|
have been able to sleep, for thinking of it.
|
|
|
|
O.M. What was his state of mind on his way home?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. It was a state of joy which only the self-sacrificer
|
|
knows. His heart sang, he was unconscious of the storm.
|
|
|
|
O.M. He felt well?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. One cannot doubt it.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Very well. Now let us add up the details and see how
|
|
much he got for his twenty-five cents. Let us try to find out
|
|
the REAL why of his making the investment. In the first place HE
|
|
couldn't bear the pain which the old suffering face gave him. So
|
|
he was thinking of HIS pain--this good man. He must buy a salve
|
|
for it. If he did not succor the old woman HIS conscience would
|
|
torture him all the way home. Thinking of HIS pain again. He
|
|
must buy relief for that. If he didn't relieve the old woman HE
|
|
would not get any sleep. He must buy some sleep--still thinking
|
|
of HIMSELF, you see. Thus, to sum up, he bought himself free of
|
|
a sharp pain in his heart, he bought himself free of the tortures
|
|
of a waiting conscience, he bought a whole night's sleep--all for
|
|
twenty-five cents! It should make Wall Street ashamed of itself.
|
|
On his way home his heart was joyful, and it sang--profit on top
|
|
of profit! The impulse which moved the man to succor the old
|
|
woman was--FIRST--to CONTENT HIS OWN SPIRIT; secondly to relieve
|
|
HER sufferings. Is it your opinion that men's acts proceed from
|
|
one central and unchanging and inalterable impulse, or from a
|
|
variety of impulses?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. From a variety, of course--some high and fine and
|
|
noble, others not. What is your opinion?
|
|
|
|
O.M. Then there is but ONE law, one source.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. That both the noblest impulses and the basest proceed
|
|
from that one source?
|
|
|
|
O.M. Yes.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Will you put that law into words?
|
|
|
|
O.M. Yes. This is the law, keep it in your mind. FROM HIS
|
|
CRADLE TO HIS GRAVE A MAN NEVER DOES A SINGLE THING WHICH HAS ANY
|
|
FIRST AND FOREMOST OBJECT BUT ONE--TO SECURE PEACE OF MIND,
|
|
SPIRITUAL COMFORT, FOR HIMSELF.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Come! He never does anything for any one else's
|
|
comfort, spiritual or physical?
|
|
|
|
O.M. No. EXCEPT ON THOSE DISTINCT TERMS--that it shall
|
|
FIRST secure HIS OWN spiritual comfort. Otherwise he will not do
|
|
it.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. It will be easy to expose the falsity of that
|
|
proposition.
|
|
|
|
O.M. For instance?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Take that noble passion, love of country, patriotism.
|
|
A man who loves peace and dreads pain, leaves his pleasant home
|
|
and his weeping family and marches out to manfully expose himself
|
|
to hunger, cold, wounds, and death. Is that seeking spiritual
|
|
comfort?
|
|
|
|
O.M. He loves peace and dreads pain?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Yes.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Then perhaps there is something that he loves MORE
|
|
than he loves peace--THE APPROVAL OF HIS NEIGHBORS AND THE
|
|
PUBLIC. And perhaps there is something which he dreads more than
|
|
he dreads pain--the DISAPPROVAL of his neighbors and the public.
|
|
If he is sensitive to shame he will go to the field--not because
|
|
his spirit will be ENTIRELY comfortable there, but because it
|
|
will be more comfortable there than it would be if he remained at
|
|
home. He will always do the thing which will bring him the MOST
|
|
mental comfort--for that is THE SOLE LAW OF HIS LIFE. He leaves
|
|
the weeping family behind; he is sorry to make them
|
|
uncomfortable, but not sorry enough to sacrifice his OWN comfort
|
|
to secure theirs.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Do you really believe that mere public opinion could
|
|
force a timid and peaceful man to--
|
|
|
|
O.M. Go to war? Yes--public opinion can force some men to
|
|
do ANYTHING.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. ANYTHING?
|
|
|
|
O.M. Yes--anything.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. I don't believe that. Can it force a right-principled
|
|
man to do a wrong thing?
|
|
|
|
O.M. Yes.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Can it force a kind man to do a cruel thing?
|
|
|
|
O.M. Yes.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Give an instance.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Alexander Hamilton was a conspicuously high-principled
|
|
man. He regarded dueling as wrong, and as opposed to the
|
|
teachings of religion--but in deference to PUBLIC OPINION he
|
|
fought a duel. He deeply loved his family, but to buy public
|
|
approval he treacherously deserted them and threw his life away,
|
|
ungenerously leaving them to lifelong sorrow in order that he
|
|
might stand well with a foolish world. In the then condition of
|
|
the public standards of honor he could not have been comfortable
|
|
with the stigma upon him of having refused to fight. The
|
|
teachings of religion, his devotion to his family, his kindness
|
|
of heart, his high principles, all went for nothing when they
|
|
stood in the way of his spiritual comfort. A man will do
|
|
ANYTHING, no matter what it is, TO SECURE HIS SPIRITUAL COMFORT;
|
|
and he can neither be forced nor persuaded to any act which has
|
|
not that goal for its object. Hamilton's act was compelled by
|
|
the inborn necessity of contenting his own spirit; in this it was
|
|
like all the other acts of his life, and like all the acts of all
|
|
men's lives. Do you see where the kernel of the matter lies? A
|
|
man cannot be comfortable without HIS OWN approval. He will
|
|
secure the largest share possible of that, at all costs, all
|
|
sacrifices.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. A minute ago you said Hamilton fought that duel to get
|
|
PUBLIC approval.
|
|
|
|
O.M. I did. By refusing to fight the duel he would have
|
|
secured his family's approval and a large share of his own; but
|
|
the public approval was more valuable in his eyes than all other
|
|
approvals put together--in the earth or above it; to secure that
|
|
would furnish him the MOST comfort of mind, the most SELF-
|
|
approval; so he sacrificed all other values to get it.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Some noble souls have refused to fight duels, and have
|
|
manfully braved the public contempt.
|
|
|
|
O.M. They acted ACCORDING TO THEIR MAKE. They valued their
|
|
principles and the approval of their families ABOVE the public
|
|
approval. They took the thing they valued MOST and let the rest
|
|
go. They took what would give them the LARGEST share of PERSONAL
|
|
CONTENTMENT AND APPROVAL--a man ALWAYS does. Public opinion
|
|
cannot force that kind of men to go to the wars. When they go it
|
|
is for other reasons. Other spirit-contenting reasons.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Always spirit-contenting reasons?
|
|
|
|
O.M. There are no others.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. When a man sacrifices his life to save a little child
|
|
from a burning building, what do you call that?
|
|
|
|
O.M. When he does it, it is the law of HIS make. HE can't
|
|
bear to see the child in that peril (a man of a different make
|
|
COULD), and so he tries to save the child, and loses his life.
|
|
But he has got what he was after--HIS OWN APPROVAL.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. What do you call Love, Hate, Charity, Revenge,
|
|
Humanity, Magnanimity, Forgiveness?
|
|
|
|
O.M. Different results of the one Master Impulse: the
|
|
necessity of securing one's self approval. They wear diverse
|
|
clothes and are subject to diverse moods, but in whatsoever ways
|
|
they masquerade they are the SAME PERSON all the time. To change
|
|
the figure, the COMPULSION that moves a man--and there is but the
|
|
one--is the necessity of securing the contentment of his own
|
|
spirit. When it stops, the man is dead.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. That is foolishness. Love--
|
|
|
|
O.M. Why, love is that impulse, that law, in its most
|
|
uncompromising form. It will squander life and everything else
|
|
on its object. Not PRIMARILY for the object's sake, but for ITS
|
|
OWN. When its object is happy IT is happy--and that is what it
|
|
is unconsciously after.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. You do not even except the lofty and gracious passion
|
|
of mother-love?
|
|
|
|
O.M. No, IT is the absolute slave of that law. The mother
|
|
will go naked to clothe her child; she will starve that it may
|
|
have food; suffer torture to save it from pain; die that it may
|
|
live. She takes a living PLEASURE in making these sacrifices.
|
|
SHE DOES IT FOR THAT REWARD--that self-approval, that
|
|
contentment, that peace, that comfort. SHE WOULD DO IT FOR YOUR
|
|
CHILD IF SHE COULD GET THE SAME PAY.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. This is an infernal philosophy of yours.
|
|
|
|
O.M. It isn't a philosophy, it is a fact.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Of course you must admit that there are some acts which--
|
|
|
|
O.M. No. There is NO act, large or small, fine or mean,
|
|
which springs from any motive but the one--the necessity of
|
|
appeasing and contenting one's own spirit.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. The world's philanthropists--
|
|
|
|
O.M. I honor them, I uncover my head to them--from habit
|
|
and training; and THEY could not know comfort or happiness or
|
|
self-approval if they did not work and spend for the unfortunate.
|
|
It makes THEM happy to see others happy; and so with money and
|
|
labor they buy what they are after--HAPPINESS, SELF-APPROVAL.
|
|
Why don't miners do the same thing? Because they can get a
|
|
thousandfold more happiness by NOT doing it. There is no
|
|
other reason. They follow the law of their make.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. What do you say of duty for duty's sake?
|
|
|
|
O.M. That IS DOES NOT EXIST. Duties are not performed for
|
|
duty's SAKE, but because their NEGLECT would make the man
|
|
UNCOMFORTABLE. A man performs but ONE duty--the duty of
|
|
contenting his spirit, the duty of making himself agreeable to
|
|
himself. If he can most satisfyingly perform this sole and only
|
|
duty by HELPING his neighbor, he will do it; if he can most
|
|
satisfyingly perform it by SWINDLING his neighbor, he will do it.
|
|
But he always looks out for Number One--FIRST; the effects upon
|
|
others are a SECONDARY matter. Men pretend to self-sacrifices,
|
|
but this is a thing which, in the ordinary value of the phrase,
|
|
DOES NOT EXIST AND HAS NOT EXISTED. A man often honestly THINKS
|
|
he is sacrificing himself merely and solely for some one else,
|
|
but he is deceived; his bottom impulse is to content a
|
|
requirement of his nature and training, and thus acquire peace
|
|
for his soul.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Apparently, then, all men, both good and bad ones,
|
|
devote their lives to contenting their consciences.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Yes. That is a good enough name for it: Conscience--
|
|
that independent Sovereign, that insolent absolute Monarch inside
|
|
of a man who is the man's Master. There are all kinds of
|
|
consciences, because there are all kinds of men. You satisfy an
|
|
assassin's conscience in one way, a philanthropist's in another,
|
|
a miser's in another, a burglar's in still another. As a GUIDE
|
|
or INCENTIVE to any authoritatively prescribed line of morals or
|
|
conduct (leaving TRAINING out of the account), a man's conscience
|
|
is totally valueless. I know a kind-hearted Kentuckian whose
|
|
self-approval was lacking--whose conscience was troubling him, to
|
|
phrase it with exactness--BECAUSE HE HAD NEGLECTED TO KILL A
|
|
CERTAIN MAN--a man whom he had never seen. The stranger had
|
|
killed this man's friend in a fight, this man's Kentucky training
|
|
made it a duty to kill the stranger for it. He neglected his
|
|
duty--kept dodging it, shirking it, putting it off, and his
|
|
unrelenting conscience kept persecuting him for this conduct. At
|
|
last, to get ease of mind, comfort, self-approval, he hunted up
|
|
the stranger and took his life. It was an immense act of SELF-
|
|
SACRIFICE (as per the usual definition), for he did not want to
|
|
do it, and he never would have done it if he could have bought a
|
|
contented spirit and an unworried mind at smaller cost. But we
|
|
are so made that we will pay ANYTHING for that contentment--even
|
|
another man's life.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. You spoke a moment ago of TRAINED consciences. You mean
|
|
that we are not BORN with consciences competent to guide us aright?
|
|
|
|
O.M. If we were, children and savages would know right from wrong,
|
|
and not have to be taught it.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. But consciences can be TRAINED?
|
|
|
|
O.M. Yes.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Of course by parents, teachers, the pulpit, and books.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Yes--they do their share; they do what they can.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. And the rest is done by--
|
|
|
|
O.M. Oh, a million unnoticed influences--for good or bad:
|
|
influences which work without rest during every waking moment of
|
|
a man's life, from cradle to grave.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. You have tabulated these?
|
|
|
|
O.M. Many of them--yes.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Will you read me the result?
|
|
|
|
O.M. Another time, yes. It would take an hour.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. A conscience can be trained to shun evil and prefer good?
|
|
|
|
O.M. Yes.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. But will it for spirit-contenting reasons only?
|
|
|
|
O.M. It CAN'T be trained to do a thing for any OTHER reason.
|
|
The thing is impossible.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. There MUST be a genuinely and utterly self-sacrificing
|
|
act recorded in human history somewhere.
|
|
|
|
O.M. You are young. You have many years before you.
|
|
Search one out.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. It does seem to me that when a man sees a fellow-being
|
|
struggling in the water and jumps in at the risk of his life to
|
|
save him--
|
|
|
|
O.M. Wait. Describe the MAN. Describe the FELLOW-BEING.
|
|
State if there is an AUDIENCE present; or if they are ALONE.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. What have these things to do with the splendid act?
|
|
|
|
O.M. Very much. Shall we suppose, as a beginning, that the
|
|
two are alone, in a solitary place, at midnight?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. If you choose.
|
|
|
|
O.M. And that the fellow-being is the man's daughter?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Well, n-no--make it someone else.
|
|
|
|
O.M. A filthy, drunken ruffian, then?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. I see. Circumstances alter cases. I suppose that if there
|
|
was no audience to observe the act, the man wouldn't perform it.
|
|
|
|
O.M. But there is here and there a man who WOULD. People,
|
|
for instance, like the man who lost his life trying to save the
|
|
child from the fire; and the man who gave the needy old woman his
|
|
twenty-five cents and walked home in the storm--there are here
|
|
and there men like that who would do it. And why? Because they
|
|
couldn't BEAR to see a fellow-being struggling in the water and
|
|
not jump in and help. It would give THEM pain. They would save
|
|
the fellow-being on that account. THEY WOULDN'T DO IT OTHERWISE.
|
|
They strictly obey the law which I have been insisting upon. You
|
|
must remember and always distinguish the people who CAN'T BEAR
|
|
things from people who CAN. It will throw light upon a number of
|
|
apparently "self-sacrificing" cases.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Oh, dear, it's all so disgusting.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Yes. And so true.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Come--take the good boy who does things he doesn't
|
|
want to do, in order to gratify his mother.
|
|
|
|
O.M. He does seven-tenths of the act because it gratifies
|
|
HIM to gratify his mother. Throw the bulk of advantage the other
|
|
way and the good boy would not do the act. He MUST obey the iron
|
|
law. None can escape it.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Well, take the case of a bad boy who--
|
|
|
|
O.M. You needn't mention it, it is a waste of time. It is
|
|
no matter about the bad boy's act. Whatever it was, he had a
|
|
spirit-contenting reason for it. Otherwise you have been
|
|
misinformed, and he didn't do it.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. It is very exasperating. A while ago you said that man's
|
|
conscience is not a born judge of morals and conduct, but has to
|
|
be taught and trained. Now I think a conscience can get drowsy
|
|
and lazy, but I don't think it can go wrong; if you wake it up--
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
A Little Story
|
|
|
|
|
|
O.M. I will tell you a little story:
|
|
|
|
Once upon a time an Infidel was guest in the house of a
|
|
Christian widow whose little boy was ill and near to death. The
|
|
Infidel often watched by the bedside and entertained the boy with
|
|
talk, and he used these opportunities to satisfy a strong longing
|
|
in his nature--that desire which is in us all to better other
|
|
people's condition by having them think as we think. He was
|
|
successful. But the dying boy, in his last moments, reproached
|
|
him and said:
|
|
|
|
"I BELIEVED, AND WAS HAPPY IN IT; YOU HAVE TAKEN MY BELIEF
|
|
AWAY, AND MY COMFORT. NOW I HAVE NOTHING LEFT, AND I DIE
|
|
MISERABLE; FOR THE THINGS WHICH YOU HAVE TOLD ME DO NOT TAKE THE
|
|
PLACE OF THAT WHICH I HAVE LOST."
|
|
|
|
And the mother, also, reproached the Infidel, and said:
|
|
|
|
"MY CHILD IS FOREVER LOST, AND MY HEART IS BROKEN. HOW
|
|
COULD YOU DO THIS CRUEL THING? WE HAVE DONE YOU NO HARM, BUT
|
|
ONLY KINDNESS; WE MADE OUR HOUSE YOUR HOME, YOU WERE WELCOME TO
|
|
ALL WE HAD, AND THIS IS OUR REWARD."
|
|
|
|
The heart of the Infidel was filled with remorse for what he
|
|
had done, and he said:
|
|
|
|
"IT WAS WRONG--I SEE IT NOW; BUT I WAS ONLY TRYING TO DO HIM
|
|
GOOD. IN MY VIEW HE WAS IN ERROR; IT SEEMED MY DUTY TO TEACH HIM
|
|
THE TRUTH."
|
|
|
|
Then the mother said:
|
|
|
|
"I HAD TAUGHT HIM, ALL HIS LITTLE LIFE, WHAT I BELIEVED TO
|
|
BE THE TRUTH, AND IN HIS BELIEVING FAITH BOTH OF US WERE HAPPY.
|
|
NOW HE IS DEAD,--AND LOST; AND I AM MISERABLE. OUR FAITH CAME
|
|
DOWN TO US THROUGH CENTURIES OF BELIEVING ANCESTORS; WHAT RIGHT
|
|
HAD YOU, OR ANY ONE, TO DISTURB IT? WHERE WAS YOUR HONOR, WHERE
|
|
WAS YOUR SHAME?"
|
|
|
|
Y.M. He was a miscreant, and deserved death!
|
|
|
|
O.M. He thought so himself, and said so.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Ah--you see, HIS CONSCIENCE WAS AWAKENED1!
|
|
|
|
O.M. Yes, his Self-Disapproval was. It PAINED him to see
|
|
the mother suffer. He was sorry he had done a thing which
|
|
brought HIM pain. It did not occur to him to think of the mother
|
|
when he was misteaching the boy, for he was absorbed in providing
|
|
PLEASURE for himself, then. Providing it by satisfying what he
|
|
believed to be a call of duty.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Call it what you please, it is to me a case of
|
|
AWAKENED CONSCIENCE. That awakened conscience could never get
|
|
itself into that species of trouble again. A cure like that is a
|
|
PERMANENT cure.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Pardon--I had not finished the story. We are
|
|
creatures of OUTSIDE INFLUENCES--we originate NOTHING within.
|
|
Whenever we take a new line of thought and drift into a new line
|
|
of belief and action, the impulse is ALWAYS suggested from the
|
|
OUTSIDE. Remorse so preyed upon the Infidel that it dissolved
|
|
his harshness toward the boy's religion and made him come to
|
|
regard it with tolerance, next with kindness, for the boy's sake
|
|
and the mother's. Finally he found himself examining it. From
|
|
that moment his progress in his new trend was steady and rapid.
|
|
He became a believing Christian. And now his remorse for having
|
|
robbed the dying boy of his faith and his salvation was bitterer
|
|
than ever. It gave him no rest, no peace. He MUST have rest and
|
|
peace--it is the law of nature. There seemed but one way to get
|
|
it; he must devote himself to saving imperiled souls. He became
|
|
a missionary. He landed in a pagan country ill and helpless. A
|
|
native widow took him into her humble home and nursed him back to
|
|
convalescence. Then her young boy was taken hopelessly ill, and
|
|
the grateful missionary helped her tend him. Here was his first
|
|
opportunity to repair a part of the wrong done to the other boy
|
|
by doing a precious service for this one by undermining his
|
|
foolish faith in his false gods. He was successful. But the
|
|
dying boy in his last moments reproached him and said:
|
|
|
|
"I BELIEVED, AND WAS HAPPY IN IT; YOU HAVE TAKEN MY BELIEF
|
|
AWAY, AND MY COMFORT. NOW I HAVE NOTHING LEFT, AND I DIE
|
|
MISERABLE; FOR THE THINGS WHICH YOU HAVE TOLD ME DO NOT TAKE THE
|
|
PLACE OF THAT WHICH I HAVE LOST."
|
|
|
|
And the mother, also, reproached the missionary, and said:
|
|
|
|
"MY CHILD IS FOREVER LOST, AND MY HEART IS BROKEN. HOW
|
|
COULD YOU DO THIS CRUEL THING? WE HAD DONE YOU NO HARM, BUT ONLY
|
|
KINDNESS; WE MADE OUR HOUSE YOUR HOME, YOU WERE WELCOME TO ALL WE
|
|
HAD, AND THIS IS OUR REWARD."
|
|
|
|
The heart of the missionary was filled with remorse for what
|
|
he had done, and he said:
|
|
|
|
"IT WAS WRONG--I SEE IT NOW; BUT I WAS ONLY TRYING TO DO HIM
|
|
GOOD. IN MY VIEW HE WAS IN ERROR; IT SEEMED MY DUTY TO TEACH HIM
|
|
THE TRUTH."
|
|
|
|
Then the mother said:
|
|
|
|
"I HAD TAUGHT HIM, ALL HIS LITTLE LIFE, WHAT I BELIEVED TO
|
|
BE THE TRUTH, AND IN HIS BELIEVING FAITH BOTH OF US WERE HAPPY.
|
|
NOW HE IS DEAD--AND LOST; AND I AM MISERABLE. OUR FAITH CAME
|
|
DOWN TO US THROUGH CENTURIES OF BELIEVING ANCESTORS; WHAT RIGHT
|
|
HAD YOU, OR ANY ONE, TO DISTURB IT? WHERE WAS YOUR HONOR, WHERE
|
|
WAS YOUR SHAME?"
|
|
|
|
The missionary's anguish of remorse and sense of treachery
|
|
were as bitter and persecuting and unappeasable, now, as they had
|
|
been in the former case. The story is finished. What is your
|
|
comment?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. The man's conscience is a fool! It was morbid. It
|
|
didn't know right from wrong.
|
|
|
|
O.M. I am not sorry to hear you say that. If you grant
|
|
that ONE man's conscience doesn't know right from wrong, it is an
|
|
admission that there are others like it. This single admission
|
|
pulls down the whole doctrine of infallibility of judgment in
|
|
consciences. Meantime there is one thing which I ask you to
|
|
notice.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. What is that?
|
|
|
|
O.M. That in both cases the man's ACT gave him no spiritual
|
|
discomfort, and that he was quite satisfied with it and got
|
|
pleasure out of it. But afterward when it resulted in PAIN to
|
|
HIM, he was sorry. Sorry it had inflicted pain upon the others,
|
|
BUT FOR NO REASON UNDER THE SUN EXCEPT THAT THEIR PAIN GAVE HIM
|
|
PAIN. Our consciences take NO notice of pain inflicted upon
|
|
others until it reaches a point where it gives pain to US. In
|
|
ALL cases without exception we are absolutely indifferent to
|
|
another person's pain until his sufferings make us uncomfortable.
|
|
Many an infidel would not have been troubled by that Christian
|
|
mother's distress. Don't you believe that?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Yes. You might almost say it of the AVERAGE infidel,
|
|
I think.
|
|
|
|
O.M. And many a missionary, sternly fortified by his sense
|
|
of duty, would not have been troubled by the pagan mother's
|
|
distress--Jesuit missionaries in Canada in the early French
|
|
times, for instance; see episodes quoted by Parkman.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Well, let us adjourn. Where have we arrived?
|
|
|
|
O.M. At this. That we (mankind) have ticketed ourselves
|
|
with a number of qualities to which we have given misleading
|
|
names. Love, Hate, Charity, Compassion, Avarice, Benevolence,
|
|
and so on. I mean we attach misleading MEANINGS to the names.
|
|
They are all forms of self-contentment, self-gratification, but
|
|
the names so disguise them that they distract our attention from
|
|
the fact. Also we have smuggled a word into the dictionary which
|
|
ought not to be there at all--Self-Sacrifice. It describes a
|
|
thing which does not exist. But worst of all, we ignore and
|
|
never mention the Sole Impulse which dictates and compels a man's
|
|
every act: the imperious necessity of securing his own approval,
|
|
in every emergency and at all costs. To it we owe all that we
|
|
are. It is our breath, our heart, our blood. It is our only
|
|
spur, our whip, our goad, our only impelling power; we have no
|
|
other. Without it we should be mere inert images, corpses; no
|
|
one would do anything, there would be no progress, the world
|
|
would stand still. We ought to stand reverently uncovered when
|
|
the name of that stupendous power is uttered.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. I am not convinced.
|
|
|
|
O.M. You will be when you think.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
III
|
|
|
|
Instances in Point
|
|
|
|
|
|
Old Man. Have you given thought to the Gospel of Self-
|
|
Approval since we talked?
|
|
|
|
Young Man. I have.
|
|
|
|
O.M. It was I that moved you to it. That is to say an
|
|
OUTSIDE INFLUENCE moved you to it--not one that originated in
|
|
your head. Will you try to keep that in mind and not forget it?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Yes. Why?
|
|
|
|
O.M. Because by and by in one of our talks, I wish to
|
|
further impress upon you that neither you, nor I, nor any man
|
|
ever originates a thought in his own head. THE UTTERER OF A
|
|
THOUGHT ALWAYS UTTERS A SECOND-HAND ONE.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Oh, now--
|
|
|
|
O.M. Wait. Reserve your remark till we get to that part of
|
|
our discussion--tomorrow or next day, say. Now, then, have you
|
|
been considering the proposition that no act is ever born of any
|
|
but a self-contenting impulse--(primarily). You have sought.
|
|
What have you found?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. I have not been very fortunate. I have examined many
|
|
fine and apparently self-sacrificing deeds in romances and
|
|
biographies, but--
|
|
|
|
O.M. Under searching analysis the ostensible self-sacrifice
|
|
disappeared? It naturally would.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. But here in this novel is one which seems to promise.
|
|
In the Adirondack woods is a wage-earner and lay preacher in the
|
|
lumber-camps who is of noble character and deeply religious. An
|
|
earnest and practical laborer in the New York slums comes up
|
|
there on vacation--he is leader of a section of the University
|
|
Settlement. Holme, the lumberman, is fired with a desire to
|
|
throw away his excellent worldly prospects and go down and save
|
|
souls on the East Side. He counts it happiness to make this
|
|
sacrifice for the glory of God and for the cause of Christ. He
|
|
resigns his place, makes the sacrifice cheerfully, and goes to
|
|
the East Side and preaches Christ and Him crucified every day and
|
|
every night to little groups of half-civilized foreign paupers
|
|
who scoff at him. But he rejoices in the scoffings, since he is
|
|
suffering them in the great cause of Christ. You have so filled
|
|
my mind with suspicions that I was constantly expecting to find a
|
|
hidden questionable impulse back of all this, but I am thankful
|
|
to say I have failed. This man saw his duty, and for DUTY'S SAKE
|
|
he sacrificed self and assumed the burden it imposed.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Is that as far as you have read?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Yes.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Let us read further, presently. Meantime, in
|
|
sacrificing himself--NOT for the glory of God, PRIMARILY, as HE
|
|
imagined, but FIRST to content that exacting and inflexible
|
|
master within him--DID HE SACRIFICE ANYBODY ELSE?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. How do you mean?
|
|
|
|
O.M. He relinquished a lucrative post and got mere food and
|
|
lodging in place of it. Had he dependents?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Well--yes.
|
|
|
|
O.M. In what way and to what extend did his self-sacrifice
|
|
affect THEM?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. He was the support of a superannuated father. He had
|
|
a young sister with a remarkable voice--he was giving her a
|
|
musical education, so that her longing to be self-supporting
|
|
might be gratified. He was furnishing the money to put a young
|
|
brother through a polytechnic school and satisfy his desire to
|
|
become a civil engineer.
|
|
|
|
O.M. The old father's comforts were now curtailed?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Quite seriously. Yes.
|
|
|
|
O.M. The sister's music-lessens had to stop?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Yes.
|
|
|
|
O.M. The young brother's education--well, an extinguishing
|
|
blight fell upon that happy dream, and he had to go to sawing
|
|
wood to support the old father, or something like that?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. It is about what happened. Yes.
|
|
|
|
O.M. What a handsome job of self-sacrificing he did do! It
|
|
seems to me that he sacrificed everybody EXCEPT himself. Haven't
|
|
I told you that no man EVER sacrifices himself; that there is no
|
|
instance of it upon record anywhere; and that when a man's
|
|
Interior Monarch requires a thing of its slave for either its
|
|
MOMENTARY or its PERMANENT contentment, that thing must and will
|
|
be furnished and that command obeyed, no matter who may stand in
|
|
the way and suffer disaster by it? That man RUINED HIS FAMILY to
|
|
please and content his Interior Monarch--
|
|
|
|
Y.M. And help Christ's cause.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Yes--SECONDLY. Not firstly. HE thought it was firstly.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Very well, have it so, if you will. But it could be
|
|
that he argued that if he saved a hundred souls in New York--
|
|
|
|
O.M. The sacrifice of the FAMILY would be justified by that
|
|
great profit upon the--the--what shall we call it?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Investment?
|
|
|
|
O.M. Hardly. How would SPECULATION do? How would GAMBLE
|
|
do? Not a solitary soul-capture was sure. He played for a
|
|
possible thirty-three-hundred-per-cent profit. It was GAMBLING--
|
|
with his family for "chips." However let us see how the game
|
|
came out. Maybe we can get on the track of the secret original
|
|
impulse, the REAL impulse, that moved him to so nobly self-
|
|
sacrifice his family in the Savior's cause under the superstition
|
|
that he was sacrificing himself. I will read a chapter or so. .
|
|
. . Here we have it! It was bound to expose itself sooner or
|
|
later. He preached to the East-Side rabble a season, then went
|
|
back to his old dull, obscure life in the lumber-camps "HURT TO
|
|
THE HEART, HIS PRIDE HUMBLED." Why? Were not his efforts
|
|
acceptable to the Savior, for Whom alone they were made? Dear
|
|
me, that detail is LOST SIGHT OF, is not even referred to, the
|
|
fact that it started out as a motive is entirely forgotten! Then
|
|
what is the trouble? The authoress quite innocently and
|
|
unconsciously gives the whole business away. The trouble was
|
|
this: this man merely PREACHED to the poor; that is not the
|
|
University Settlement's way; it deals in larger and better things
|
|
than that, and it did not enthuse over that crude Salvation-Army
|
|
eloquence. It was courteous to Holme--but cool. It did not pet
|
|
him, did not take him to its bosom. "PERISHED WERE ALL HIS
|
|
DREAMS OF DISTINCTION, THE PRAISE AND GRATEFUL APPROVAL--" Of
|
|
whom? The Savior? No; the Savior is not mentioned. Of whom,
|
|
then? Of "His FELLOW-WORKERS." Why did he want that? Because
|
|
the Master inside of him wanted it, and would not be content
|
|
without it. That emphasized sentence quoted above, reveals the
|
|
secret we have been seeking, the original impulse, the REAL
|
|
impulse, which moved the obscure and unappreciated Adirondack
|
|
lumberman to sacrifice his family and go on that crusade to the
|
|
East Side--which said original impulse was this, to wit: without
|
|
knowing it HE WENT THERE TO SHOW A NEGLECTED WORLD THE LARGE
|
|
TALENT THAT WAS IN HIM, AND RISE TO DISTINCTION. As I have
|
|
warned you before, NO act springs from any but the one law, the
|
|
one motive. But I pray you, do not accept this law upon my say-
|
|
so; but diligently examine for yourself. Whenever you read of a
|
|
self-sacrificing act or hear of one, or of a duty done for DUTY'S
|
|
SAKE, take it to pieces and look for the REAL motive. It is
|
|
always there.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. I do it every day. I cannot help it, now that I have
|
|
gotten started upon the degrading and exasperating quest. For it
|
|
is hatefully interesting!--in fact, fascinating is the word. As
|
|
soon as I come across a golden deed in a book I have to stop and
|
|
take it apart and examine it, I cannot help myself.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Have you ever found one that defeated the rule?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. No--at least, not yet. But take the case of servant-
|
|
tipping in Europe. You pay the HOTEL for service; you owe the
|
|
servants NOTHING, yet you pay them besides. Doesn't that defeat it?
|
|
|
|
O.M. In what way?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. You are not OBLIGED to do it, therefore its source is
|
|
compassion for their ill-paid condition, and--
|
|
|
|
O.M. Has that custom ever vexed you, annoyed you, irritated you?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Well, yes.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Still you succumbed to it?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Of course.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Why of course?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Well, custom is law, in a way, and laws must be
|
|
submitted to--everybody recognizes it as a DUTY.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Then you pay for the irritating tax for DUTY'S sake?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. I suppose it amounts to that.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Then the impulse which moves you to submit to the tax
|
|
is not ALL compassion, charity, benevolence?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Well--perhaps not.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Is ANY of it?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. I--perhaps I was too hasty in locating its source.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Perhaps so. In case you ignored the custom would you
|
|
get prompt and effective service from the servants?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Oh, hear yourself talk! Those European servants?
|
|
Why, you wouldn't get any of all, to speak of.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Couldn't THAT work as an impulse to move you to pay
|
|
the tax?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. I am not denying it.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Apparently, then, it is a case of for-duty's-sake with
|
|
a little self-interest added?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Yes, it has the look of it. But here is a point:
|
|
we pay that tax knowing it to be unjust and an extortion; yet we
|
|
go away with a pain at the heart if we think we have been stingy
|
|
with the poor fellows; and we heartily wish we were back again,
|
|
so that we could do the right thing, and MORE than the right
|
|
thing, the GENEROUS thing. I think it will be difficult for you
|
|
to find any thought of self in that impulse.
|
|
|
|
O.M. I wonder why you should think so. When you find
|
|
service charged in the HOTEL bill does it annoy you?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. No.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Do you ever complain of the amount of it?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. No, it would not occur to me.
|
|
|
|
O.M. The EXPENSE, then, is not the annoying detail. It is
|
|
a fixed charge, and you pay it cheerfully, you pay it without a
|
|
murmur. When you came to pay the servants, how would you like it
|
|
if each of the men and maids had a fixed charge?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Like it? I should rejoice!
|
|
|
|
O.M. Even if the fixed tax were a shade MORE than you had
|
|
been in the habit of paying in the form of tips?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Indeed, yes!
|
|
|
|
O.M. Very well, then. As I understand it, it isn't really
|
|
compassion nor yet duty that moves you to pay the tax, and it
|
|
isn't the AMOUNT of the tax that annoys you. Yet SOMETHING
|
|
annoys you. What is it?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Well, the trouble is, you never know WHAT to pay, the
|
|
tax varies so, all over Europe.
|
|
|
|
O.M. So you have to guess?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. There is no other way. So you go on thinking and
|
|
thinking, and calculating and guessing, and consulting with other
|
|
people and getting their views; and it spoils your sleep nights,
|
|
and makes you distraught in the daytime, and while you are
|
|
pretending to look at the sights you are only guessing and
|
|
guessing and guessing all the time, and being worried and
|
|
miserable.
|
|
|
|
O.M. And all about a debt which you don't owe and don't
|
|
have to pay unless you want to! Strange. What is the purpose of
|
|
the guessing?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. To guess out what is right to give them, and not be
|
|
unfair to any of them.
|
|
|
|
O.M. It has quite a noble look--taking so much pains and using up
|
|
so much valuable time in order to be just and fair to a poor servant
|
|
to whom you owe nothing, but who needs money and is ill paid.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. I think, myself, that if there is any ungracious
|
|
motive back of it it will be hard to find.
|
|
|
|
O.M. How do you know when you have not paid a servant fairly?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Why, he is silent; does not thank you. Sometimes he
|
|
gives you a look that makes you ashamed. You are too proud to
|
|
rectify your mistake there, with people looking, but afterward
|
|
you keep on wishing and wishing you HAD done it. My, the shame
|
|
and the pain of it! Sometimes you see, by the signs, that you
|
|
have it JUST RIGHT, and you go away mightily satisfied.
|
|
Sometimes the man is so effusively thankful that you know you
|
|
have given him a good deal MORE than was necessary.
|
|
|
|
O.M. NECESSARY? Necessary for what?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. To content him.
|
|
|
|
O.M. How do you feel THEN?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Repentant.
|
|
|
|
O.M. It is my belief that you have NOT been concerning
|
|
yourself in guessing out his just dues, but only in ciphering out
|
|
what would CONTENT him. And I think you have a self-deluding
|
|
reason for that.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. What was it?
|
|
|
|
O.M. If you fell short of what he was expecting and
|
|
wanting, you would get a look which would SHAME YOU BEFORE FOLK.
|
|
That would give you PAIN. YOU--for you are only working for
|
|
yourself, not HIM. If you gave him too much you would be ASHAMED
|
|
OF YOURSELF for it, and that would give YOU pain--another case of
|
|
thinking of YOURSELF, protecting yourself, SAVING YOURSELF FROM
|
|
DISCOMFORT. You never think of the servant once--except to guess
|
|
out how to get HIS APPROVAL. If you get that, you get your OWN
|
|
approval, and that is the sole and only thing you are after. The
|
|
Master inside of you is then satisfied, contented, comfortable;
|
|
there was NO OTHER thing at stake, as a matter of FIRST interest,
|
|
anywhere in the transaction.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Further Instances
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Well, to think of it; Self-Sacrifice for others, the
|
|
grandest thing in man, ruled out! non-existent!
|
|
|
|
O.M. Are you accusing me of saying that?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Why, certainly.
|
|
|
|
O.M. I haven't said it.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. What did you say, then?
|
|
|
|
O.M. That no man has ever sacrificed himself in the common
|
|
meaning of that phrase--which is, self-sacrifice for another
|
|
ALONE. Men make daily sacrifices for others, but it is for their
|
|
own sake FIRST. The act must content their own spirit FIRST.
|
|
The other beneficiaries come second.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. And the same with duty for duty's sake?
|
|
|
|
O.M. Yes. No man performs a duty for mere duty's sake; the act
|
|
must content his spirit FIRST. He must feel better for DOING the
|
|
duty than he would for shirking it. Otherwise he will not do it.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Take the case of the BERKELEY CASTLE.
|
|
|
|
O.M. It was a noble duty, greatly performed. Take it to
|
|
pieces and examine it, if you like.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. A British troop-ship crowded with soldiers and their
|
|
wives and children. She struck a rock and began to sink. There
|
|
was room in the boats for the women and children only. The
|
|
colonel lined up his regiment on the deck and said "it is our
|
|
duty to die, that they may be saved." There was no murmur, no
|
|
protest. The boats carried away the women and children. When
|
|
the death-moment was come, the colonel and his officers took
|
|
their several posts, the men stood at shoulder-arms, and so, as
|
|
on dress-parade, with their flag flying and the drums beating,
|
|
they went down, a sacrifice to duty for duty's sake. Can you
|
|
view it as other than that?
|
|
|
|
O.M. It was something as fine as that, as exalted as that.
|
|
Could you have remained in those ranks and gone down to your
|
|
death in that unflinching way?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Could I? No, I could not.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Think. Imagine yourself there, with that watery doom
|
|
creeping higher and higher around you.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. I can imagine it. I feel all the horror of it. I could
|
|
not have endured it, I could not have remained in my place.
|
|
I know it.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Why?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. There is no why about it: I know myself, and I know I
|
|
couldn't DO it.
|
|
|
|
O.M. But it would be your DUTY to do it.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Yes, I know--but I couldn't.
|
|
|
|
O.M. It was more than thousand men, yet not one of them
|
|
flinched. Some of them must have been born with your
|
|
temperament; if they could do that great duty for duty's SAKE,
|
|
why not you? Don't you know that you could go out and gather
|
|
together a thousand clerks and mechanics and put them on that
|
|
deck and ask them to die for duty's sake, and not two dozen of
|
|
them would stay in the ranks to the end?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Yes, I know that.
|
|
|
|
O.M. But your TRAIN them, and put them through a campaign
|
|
or two; then they would be soldiers; soldiers, with a soldier's
|
|
pride, a soldier's self-respect, a soldier's ideals. They would
|
|
have to content a SOLDIER'S spirit then, not a clerk's, not a
|
|
mechanic's. They could not content that spirit by shirking a
|
|
soldier's duty, could they?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. I suppose not.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Then they would do the duty not for the DUTY'S sake,
|
|
but for their OWN sake--primarily. The DUTY was JUST THE SAME,
|
|
and just as imperative, when they were clerks, mechanics, raw
|
|
recruits, but they wouldn't perform it for that. As clerks and
|
|
mechanics they had other ideals, another spirit to satisfy, and
|
|
they satisfied it. They HAD to; it is the law. TRAINING is
|
|
potent. Training toward higher and higher, and ever higher
|
|
ideals is worth any man's thought and labor and diligence.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Consider the man who stands by his duty and goes to
|
|
the stake rather than be recreant to it.
|
|
|
|
O.M. It is his make and his training. He has to content
|
|
the spirit that is in him, though it cost him his life. Another
|
|
man, just as sincerely religious, but of different temperament,
|
|
will fail of that duty, though recognizing it as a duty, and
|
|
grieving to be unequal to it: but he must content the spirit
|
|
that is in him--he cannot help it. He could not perform that
|
|
duty for duty's SAKE, for that would not content his spirit, and
|
|
the contenting of his spirit must be looked to FIRST. It takes
|
|
precedence of all other duties.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Take the case of a clergyman of stainless private
|
|
morals who votes for a thief for public office, on his own
|
|
party's ticket, and against an honest man on the other ticket.
|
|
|
|
O.M. He has to content his spirit. He has no public
|
|
morals; he has no private ones, where his party's prosperity is
|
|
at stake. He will always be true to his make and training.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
IV
|
|
|
|
Training
|
|
|
|
Young Man. You keep using that word--training. By it do
|
|
you particularly mean--
|
|
|
|
Old Man. Study, instruction, lectures, sermons? That is a
|
|
part of it--but not a large part. I mean ALL the outside
|
|
influences. There are a million of them. From the cradle to the
|
|
grave, during all his waking hours, the human being is under
|
|
training. In the very first rank of his trainers stands
|
|
ASSOCIATION. It is his human environment which influences his
|
|
mind and his feelings, furnishes him his ideals, and sets him on
|
|
his road and keeps him in it. If he leave that road he will find
|
|
himself shunned by the people whom he most loves and esteems, and
|
|
whose approval he most values. He is a chameleon; by the law of
|
|
his nature he takes the color of his place of resort. The
|
|
influences about him create his preferences, his aversions, his
|
|
politics, his tastes, his morals, his religion. He creates none
|
|
of these things for himself. He THINKS he does, but that is
|
|
because he has not examined into the matter. You have seen
|
|
Presbyterians?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Many.
|
|
|
|
O.M. How did they happen to be Presbyterians and not
|
|
Congregationalists? And why were the Congregationalists not
|
|
Baptists, and the Baptists Roman Catholics, and the Roman
|
|
Catholics Buddhists, and the Buddhists Quakers, and the Quakers
|
|
Episcopalians, and the Episcopalians Millerites and the
|
|
Millerites Hindus, and the Hindus Atheists, and the Atheists
|
|
Spiritualists, and the Spiritualists Agnostics, and the Agnostics
|
|
Methodists, and the Methodists Confucians, and the Confucians
|
|
Unitarians, and the Unitarians Mohammedans, and the Mohammedans
|
|
Salvation Warriors, and the Salvation Warriors Zoroastrians, and
|
|
the Zoroastrians Christian Scientists, and the Christian
|
|
Scientists Mormons--and so on?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. You may answer your question yourself.
|
|
|
|
O.M. That list of sects is not a record of STUDIES,
|
|
searchings, seekings after light; it mainly (and sarcastically)
|
|
indicates what ASSOCIATION can do. If you know a man's
|
|
nationality you can come within a split hair of guessing the
|
|
complexion of his religion: English--Protestant; American--
|
|
ditto; Spaniard, Frenchman, Irishman, Italian, South American--
|
|
Roman Catholic; Russian--Greek Catholic; Turk--Mohammedan; and so
|
|
on. And when you know the man's religious complexion, you know
|
|
what sort of religious books he reads when he wants some more
|
|
light, and what sort of books he avoids, lest by accident he get
|
|
more light than he wants. In America if you know which party-
|
|
collar a voter wears, you know what his associations are, and how
|
|
he came by his politics, and which breed of newspaper he reads to
|
|
get light, and which breed he diligently avoids, and which breed
|
|
of mass-meetings he attends in order to broaden his political
|
|
knowledge, and which breed of mass-meetings he doesn't attend,
|
|
except to refute its doctrines with brickbats. We are always
|
|
hearing of people who are around SEEKING AFTER TRUTH. I have
|
|
never seen a (permanent) specimen. I think he had never lived.
|
|
But I have seen several entirely sincere people who THOUGHT they
|
|
were (permanent) Seekers after Truth. They sought diligently,
|
|
persistently, carefully, cautiously, profoundly, with perfect
|
|
honesty and nicely adjusted judgment--until they believed that
|
|
without doubt or question they had found the Truth. THAT WAS THE
|
|
END OF THE SEARCH. The man spent the rest of his life hunting up
|
|
shingles wherewith to protect his Truth from the weather. If he
|
|
was seeking after political Truth he found it in one or another
|
|
of the hundred political gospels which govern men in the earth;
|
|
if he was seeking after the Only True Religion he found it in one
|
|
or another of the three thousand that are on the market. In any
|
|
case, when he found the Truth HE SOUGHT NO FURTHER; but from that
|
|
day forth, with his soldering-iron in one hand and his bludgeon
|
|
in the other he tinkered its leaks and reasoned with objectors.
|
|
There have been innumerable Temporary Seekers of Truth--have you
|
|
ever heard of a permanent one? In the very nature of man such a
|
|
person is impossible. However, to drop back to the text--
|
|
training: all training is one from or another of OUTSIDE
|
|
INFLUENCE, and ASSOCIATION is the largest part of it. A man is
|
|
never anything but what his outside influences have made him.
|
|
They train him downward or they train him upward--but they TRAIN
|
|
him; they are at work upon him all the time.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Then if he happen by the accidents of life to be
|
|
evilly placed there is no help for him, according to your
|
|
notions--he must train downward.
|
|
|
|
O.M. No help for him? No help for this chameleon? It is a
|
|
mistake. It is in his chameleonship that his greatest good
|
|
fortune lies. He has only to change his habitat--his
|
|
ASSOCIATIONS. But the impulse to do it must come from the
|
|
OUTSIDE--he cannot originate it himself, with that purpose in
|
|
view. Sometimes a very small and accidental thing can furnish
|
|
him the initiatory impulse and start him on a new road, with a
|
|
new idea. The chance remark of a sweetheart, "I hear that you
|
|
are a coward," may water a seed that shall sprout and bloom and
|
|
flourish, and ended in producing a surprising fruitage--in the
|
|
fields of war. The history of man is full of such accidents.
|
|
The accident of a broken leg brought a profane and ribald soldier
|
|
under religious influences and furnished him a new ideal. From
|
|
that accident sprang the Order of the Jesuits, and it has been
|
|
shaking thrones, changing policies, and doing other tremendous
|
|
work for two hundred years--and will go on. The chance reading
|
|
of a book or of a paragraph in a newspaper can start a man on a
|
|
new track and make him renounce his old associations and seek new
|
|
ones that are IN SYMPATHY WITH HIS NEW IDEAL: and the result,
|
|
for that man, can be an entire change of his way of life.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Are you hinting at a scheme of procedure?
|
|
|
|
O.M. Not a new one--an old one. One as mankind.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. What is it?
|
|
|
|
O.M. Merely the laying of traps for people. Traps baited
|
|
with INITIATORY IMPULSES TOWARD HIGH IDEALS. It is what the
|
|
tract-distributor does. It is what the missionary does. It is
|
|
what governments ought to do.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Don't they?
|
|
|
|
O.M. In one way they do, in another they don't. They
|
|
separate the smallpox patients from the healthy people, but in
|
|
dealing with crime they put the healthy into the pest-house along
|
|
with the sick. That is to say, they put the beginners in with
|
|
the confirmed criminals. This would be well if man were
|
|
naturally inclined to good, but he isn't, and so ASSOCIATION
|
|
makes the beginners worse than they were when they went into
|
|
captivity. It is putting a very severe punishment upon the
|
|
comparatively innocent at times. They hang a man--which is a
|
|
trifling punishment; this breaks the hearts of his family--which
|
|
is a heavy one. They comfortably jail and feed a wife-beater,
|
|
and leave his innocent wife and family to starve.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Do you believe in the doctrine that man is equipped
|
|
with an intuitive perception of good and evil?
|
|
|
|
O.M. Adam hadn't it.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. But has man acquired it since?
|
|
|
|
O.M. No. I think he has no intuitions of any kind. He
|
|
gets ALL his ideas, all his impressions, from the outside. I
|
|
keep repeating this, in the hope that I may impress it upon you
|
|
that you will be interested to observe and examine for yourself
|
|
and see whether it is true or false.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Where did you get your own aggravating notions?
|
|
|
|
O.M. From the OUTSIDE. I did not invent them. They are
|
|
gathered from a thousand unknown sources. Mainly UNCONSCIOUSLY
|
|
gathered.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Don't you believe that God could make an inherently
|
|
honest man?
|
|
|
|
O.M. Yes, I know He could. I also know that He never did
|
|
make one.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. A wiser observer than you has recorded the fact that
|
|
"an honest man's the noblest work of God."
|
|
|
|
O.M. He didn't record a fact, he recorded a falsity. It is windy,
|
|
and sounds well, but it is not true. God makes a man with honest
|
|
and dishonest POSSIBILITIES in him and stops there. The man's
|
|
ASSOCIATIONS develop the possibilities--the one set or the other.
|
|
The result is accordingly an honest man or a dishonest one.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. And the honest one is not entitled to--
|
|
|
|
O.M. Praise? No. How often must I tell you that? HE is
|
|
not the architect of his honesty.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Now then, I will ask you where there is any sense in
|
|
training people to lead virtuous lives. What is gained by it?
|
|
|
|
O.M. The man himself gets large advantages out of it, and
|
|
that is the main thing--to HIM. He is not a peril to his
|
|
neighbors, he is not a damage to them--and so THEY get an
|
|
advantage out of his virtues. That is the main thing to THEM.
|
|
It can make this life comparatively comfortable to the parties
|
|
concerned; the NEGLECT of this training can make this life a
|
|
constant peril and distress to the parties concerned.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. You have said that training is everything; that
|
|
training is the man HIMSELF, for it makes him what he is.
|
|
|
|
O.M. I said training and ANOTHER thing. Let that other
|
|
thing pass, for the moment. What were you going to say?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. We have an old servant. She has been with us twenty-
|
|
two years. Her service used to be faultless, but now she has
|
|
become very forgetful. We are all fond of her; we all recognize
|
|
that she cannot help the infirmity which age has brought her; the
|
|
rest of the family do not scold her for her remissnesses, but at
|
|
times I do--I can't seem to control myself. Don't I try? I do
|
|
try. Now, then, when I was ready to dress, this morning, no
|
|
clean clothes had been put out. I lost my temper; I lose it
|
|
easiest and quickest in the early morning. I rang; and
|
|
immediately began to warn myself not to show temper, and to be
|
|
careful and speak gently. I safe-guarded myself most carefully.
|
|
I even chose the very word I would use: "You've forgotten the
|
|
clean clothes, Jane." When she appeared in the door I opened my
|
|
mouth to say that phrase--and out of it, moved by an instant
|
|
surge of passion which I was not expecting and hadn't time to put
|
|
under control, came the hot rebuke, "You've forgotten them
|
|
again!" You say a man always does the thing which will best
|
|
please his Interior Master. Whence came the impulse to make
|
|
careful preparation to save the girl the humiliation of a rebuke?
|
|
Did that come from the Master, who is always primarily concerned
|
|
about HIMSELF?
|
|
|
|
O.M. Unquestionably. There is no other source for any
|
|
impulse. SECONDARILY you made preparation to save the girl, but
|
|
PRIMARILY its object was to save yourself, by contenting the
|
|
Master.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. How do you mean?
|
|
|
|
O.M. Has any member of the family ever implored you to
|
|
watch your temper and not fly out at the girl?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Yes. My mother.
|
|
|
|
O.M. You love her?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Oh, more than that!
|
|
|
|
O.M. You would always do anything in your power to please her?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. It is a delight to me to do anything to please her!
|
|
|
|
O.M. Why? YOU WOULD DO IT FOR PAY, SOLELY--for PROFIT.
|
|
What profit would you expect and certainly receive from
|
|
the investment?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Personally? None. To please HER is enough.
|
|
|
|
O.M. It appears, then, that your object, primarily, WASN'T
|
|
to save the girl a humiliation, but to PLEASE YOUR MOTHER. It
|
|
also appears that to please your mother gives YOU a strong
|
|
pleasure. Is not that the profit which you get out of the
|
|
investment? Isn't that the REAL profits and FIRST profit?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Oh, well? Go on.
|
|
|
|
O.M. In ALL transactions, the Interior Master looks to it
|
|
that YOU GET THE FIRST PROFIT. Otherwise there is no
|
|
transaction.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Well, then, if I was so anxious to get that profit and
|
|
so intent upon it, why did I threw it away by losing my temper?
|
|
|
|
O.M. In order to get ANOTHER profit which suddenly
|
|
superseded it in value.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Where was it?
|
|
|
|
O.M. Ambushed behind your born temperament, and waiting for
|
|
a chance. Your native warm temper suddenly jumped to the front,
|
|
and FOR THE MOMENT its influence was more powerful than your
|
|
mother's, and abolished it. In that instance you were eager to
|
|
flash out a hot rebuke and enjoy it. You did enjoy it, didn't you?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. For--for a quarter of a second. Yes--I did.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Very well, it is as I have said: the thing which will
|
|
give you the MOST pleasure, the most satisfaction, in any moment
|
|
or FRACTION of a moment, is the thing you will always do. You
|
|
must content the Master's LATEST whim, whatever it may be.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. But when the tears came into the old servant's eyes I
|
|
could have cut my hand off for what I had done.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Right. You had humiliated YOURSELF, you see, you had
|
|
given yourself PAIN. Nothing is of FIRST importance to a man
|
|
except results which damage HIM or profit him--all the rest is
|
|
SECONDARY. Your Master was displeased with you, although you had
|
|
obeyed him. He required a prompt REPENTANCE; you obeyed again;
|
|
you HAD to--there is never any escape from his commands. He is a
|
|
hard master and fickle; he changes his mind in the fraction of a
|
|
second, but you must be ready to obey, and you will obey, ALWAYS.
|
|
If he requires repentance, you content him, you will always
|
|
furnish it. He must be nursed, petted, coddled, and kept
|
|
contented, let the terms be what they may.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Training! Oh, what's the use of it? Didn't I, and
|
|
didn't my mother try to train me up to where I would no longer
|
|
fly out at that girl?
|
|
|
|
O.M. Have you never managed to keep back a scolding?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Oh, certainly--many times.
|
|
|
|
O.M. More times this year than last?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Yes, a good many more.
|
|
|
|
O.M. More times last year than the year before?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Yes.
|
|
|
|
O.M. There is a large improvement, then, in the two years?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Yes, undoubtedly.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Then your question is answered. You see there IS use in
|
|
training. Keep on. Keeping faithfully on. You are doing well.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Will my reform reach perfection?
|
|
|
|
O.M. It will. UP to YOUR limit.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. My limit? What do you mean by that?
|
|
|
|
O.M. You remember that you said that I said training was
|
|
EVERYTHING. I corrected you, and said "training and ANOTHER
|
|
thing." That other thing is TEMPERAMENT--that is, the
|
|
disposition you were born with. YOU CAN'T ERADICATE YOUR
|
|
DISPOSITION NOR ANY RAG OF IT--you can only put a pressure on it
|
|
and keep it down and quiet. You have a warm temper?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Yes.
|
|
|
|
O.M. You will never get rid of it; but by watching it you
|
|
can keep it down nearly all the time. ITS PRESENCE IS YOUR
|
|
LIMIT. Your reform will never quite reach perfection, for your
|
|
temper will beat you now and then, but you come near enough. You
|
|
have made valuable progress and can make more. There IS use in
|
|
training. Immense use. Presently you will reach a new stage of
|
|
development, then your progress will be easier; will proceed on a
|
|
simpler basis, anyway.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Explain.
|
|
|
|
O.M. You keep back your scoldings now, to please YOURSELF
|
|
by pleasing your MOTHER; presently the mere triumphing over your
|
|
temper will delight your vanity and confer a more delicious
|
|
pleasure and satisfaction upon you than even the approbation of
|
|
your MOTHER confers upon you now. You will then labor for
|
|
yourself directly and at FIRST HAND, not by the roundabout way
|
|
through your mother. It simplifies the matter, and it also
|
|
strengthens the impulse.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Ah, dear! But I sha'n't ever reach the point where I
|
|
will spare the girl for HER sake PRIMARILY, not mine?
|
|
|
|
O.M. Why--yes. In heaven.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. (AFTER A REFLECTIVE PAUSE) Temperament. Well, I see
|
|
one must allow for temperament. It is a large factor, sure
|
|
enough. My mother is thoughtful, and not hot-tempered. When I
|
|
was dressed I went to her room; she was not there; I called, she
|
|
answered from the bathroom. I heard the water running. I
|
|
inquired. She answered, without temper, that Jane had forgotten
|
|
her bath, and she was preparing it herself. I offered to ring,
|
|
but she said, "No, don't do that; it would only distress her to
|
|
be confronted with her lapse, and would be a rebuke; she doesn't
|
|
deserve that--she is not to blame for the tricks her memory
|
|
serves her." I say--has my mother an Interior Master?--and where
|
|
was he?
|
|
|
|
O.M. He was there. There, and looking out for his own
|
|
peace and pleasure and contentment. The girl's distress would
|
|
have pained YOUR MOTHER. Otherwise the girl would have been rung
|
|
up, distress and all. I know women who would have gotten a No. 1
|
|
PLEASURE out of ringing Jane up--and so they would infallibly
|
|
have pushed the button and obeyed the law of their make and
|
|
training, which are the servants of their Interior Masters. It
|
|
is quite likely that a part of your mother's forbearance came
|
|
from training. The GOOD kind of training--whose best and highest
|
|
function is to see to it that every time it confers a
|
|
satisfaction upon its pupil a benefit shall fall at second hand
|
|
upon others.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. If you were going to condense into an admonition your
|
|
plan for the general betterment of the race's condition, how
|
|
would you word it?
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Admonition
|
|
|
|
O.M. Diligently train your ideals UPWARD and STILL UPWARD
|
|
toward a summit where you will find your chiefest pleasure in
|
|
conduct which, while contenting you, will be sure to confer
|
|
benefits upon your neighbor and the community.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Is that a new gospel?
|
|
|
|
O.M. No.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. It has been taught before?
|
|
|
|
O.M. For ten thousand years.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. By whom?
|
|
|
|
O.M. All the great religions--all the great gospels.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Then there is nothing new about it?
|
|
|
|
O.M. Oh yes, there is. It is candidly stated, this time.
|
|
That has not been done before.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. How do you mean?
|
|
|
|
O.M. Haven't I put YOU FIRST, and your neighbor and the
|
|
community AFTERWARD?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Well, yes, that is a difference, it is true.
|
|
|
|
O.M. The difference between straight speaking and crooked;
|
|
the difference between frankness and shuffling.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Explain.
|
|
|
|
O.M. The others offer your a hundred bribes to be good,
|
|
thus conceding that the Master inside of you must be conciliated
|
|
and contented first, and that you will do nothing at FIRST HAND
|
|
but for his sake; then they turn square around and require you to
|
|
do good for OTHER'S sake CHIEFLY; and to do your duty for duty's
|
|
SAKE, chiefly; and to do acts of SELF-SACRIFICE. Thus at the
|
|
outset we all stand upon the same ground--recognition of the
|
|
supreme and absolute Monarch that resides in man, and we all
|
|
grovel before him and appeal to him; then those others dodge and
|
|
shuffle, and face around and unfrankly and inconsistently and
|
|
illogically change the form of their appeal and direct its
|
|
persuasions to man's SECOND-PLACE powers and to powers which have
|
|
NO EXISTENCE in him, thus advancing them to FIRST place; whereas
|
|
in my Admonition I stick logically and consistently to the
|
|
original position: I place the Interior Master's requirements
|
|
FIRST, and keep them there.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. If we grant, for the sake of argument, that your
|
|
scheme and the other schemes aim at and produce the same result--
|
|
RIGHT LIVING--has yours an advantage over the others?
|
|
|
|
O.M. One, yes--a large one. It has no concealments, no
|
|
deceptions. When a man leads a right and valuable life under it
|
|
he is not deceived as to the REAL chief motive which impels him
|
|
to it--in those other cases he is.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Is that an advantage? Is it an advantage to live a
|
|
lofty life for a mean reason? In the other cases he lives the
|
|
lofty life under the IMPRESSION that he is living for a lofty
|
|
reason. Is not that an advantage?
|
|
|
|
O.M. Perhaps so. The same advantage he might get out of
|
|
thinking himself a duke, and living a duke's life and parading in
|
|
ducal fuss and feathers, when he wasn't a duke at all, and could
|
|
find it out if he would only examine the herald's records.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. But anyway, he is obliged to do a duke's part; he puts
|
|
his hand in his pocket and does his benevolences on as big a
|
|
scale as he can stand, and that benefits the community.
|
|
|
|
O.M. He could do that without being a duke.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. But would he?
|
|
|
|
O.M. Don't you see where you are arriving?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Where?
|
|
|
|
O.M. At the standpoint of the other schemes: That it is
|
|
good morals to let an ignorant duke do showy benevolences for his
|
|
pride's sake, a pretty low motive, and go on doing them unwarned,
|
|
lest if he were made acquainted with the actual motive which
|
|
prompted them he might shut up his purse and cease to be good?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. But isn't it best to leave him in ignorance, as long
|
|
as he THINKS he is doing good for others' sake?
|
|
|
|
O.M. Perhaps so. It is the position of the other schemes.
|
|
They think humbug is good enough morals when the dividend on it
|
|
is good deeds and handsome conduct.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. It is my opinion that under your scheme of a man's
|
|
doing a good deed for his OWN sake first-off, instead of first
|
|
for the GOOD DEED'S sake, no man would ever do one.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Have you committed a benevolence lately?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Yes. This morning.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Give the particulars.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. The cabin of the old negro woman who used to nurse me
|
|
when I was a child and who saved my life once at the risk of her
|
|
own, was burned last night, and she came mourning this morning,
|
|
and pleading for money to build another one.
|
|
|
|
O.M. You furnished it?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Certainly.
|
|
|
|
O.M. You were glad you had the money?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Money? I hadn't. I sold my horse.
|
|
|
|
O.M. You were glad you had the horse?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Of course I was; for if I hadn't had the horse I
|
|
should have been incapable, and my MOTHER would have captured the
|
|
chance to set old Sally up.
|
|
|
|
O.M. You were cordially glad you were not caught out and
|
|
incapable?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Oh, I just was!
|
|
|
|
O.M. Now, then--
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Stop where you are! I know your whole catalog of
|
|
questions, and I could answer every one of them without your
|
|
wasting the time to ask them; but I will summarize the whole
|
|
thing in a single remark: I did the charity knowing it was
|
|
because the act would give ME a splendid pleasure, and because
|
|
old Sally's moving gratitude and delight would give ME another
|
|
one; and because the reflection that she would be happy now and
|
|
out of her trouble would fill ME full of happiness. I did the
|
|
whole thing with my eyes open and recognizing and realizing that
|
|
I was looking out for MY share of the profits FIRST. Now then, I
|
|
have confessed. Go on.
|
|
|
|
O.M. I haven't anything to offer; you have covered the
|
|
whole ground. Can you have been any MORE strongly moved to help
|
|
Sally out of her trouble--could you have done the deed any more
|
|
eagerly--if you had been under the delusion that you were doing
|
|
it for HER sake and profit only?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. No! Nothing in the world could have made the impulse
|
|
which moved me more powerful, more masterful, more thoroughly
|
|
irresistible. I played the limit!
|
|
|
|
O.M. Very well. You begin to suspect--and I claim to KNOW
|
|
--that when a man is a shade MORE STRONGLY MOVED to do ONE of two
|
|
things or of two dozen things than he is to do any one of the
|
|
OTHERS, he will infallibly do that ONE thing, be it good or be it
|
|
evil; and if it be good, not all the beguilements of all the
|
|
casuistries can increase the strength of the impulse by a single
|
|
shade or add a shade to the comfort and contentment he will get
|
|
out of the act.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Then you believe that such tendency toward doing good
|
|
as is in men's hearts would not be diminished by the removal of
|
|
the delusion that good deeds are done primarily for the sake of
|
|
No. 2 instead of for the sake of No. 1?
|
|
|
|
O.M. That is what I fully believe.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Doesn't it somehow seem to take from the dignity of the deed?
|
|
|
|
O.M. If there is dignity in falsity, it does. It removes that.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. What is left for the moralists to do?
|
|
|
|
O.M. Teach unreservedly what he already teaches with one
|
|
side of his mouth and takes back with the other: Do right FOR
|
|
YOUR OWN SAKE, and be happy in knowing that your NEIGHBOR will
|
|
certainly share in the benefits resulting.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Repeat your Admonition.
|
|
|
|
O.M. DILIGENTLY TRAIN YOUR IDEALS UPWARD AND STILL UPWARD
|
|
TOWARD A SUMMIT WHERE YOU WILL FIND YOUR CHIEFEST PLEASURE IN
|
|
CONDUCT WHICH, WHILE CONTENTING YOU, WILL BE SURE TO CONFER
|
|
BENEFITS UPON YOUR NEIGHBOR AND THE COMMUNITY.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. One's EVERY act proceeds from EXTERIOR INFLUENCES, you think?
|
|
|
|
O.M. Yes.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. If I conclude to rob a person, I am not the ORIGINATOR
|
|
of the idea, but it comes in from the OUTSIDE? I see him
|
|
handling money--for instance--and THAT moves me to the crime?
|
|
|
|
O.M. That, by itself? Oh, certainly not. It is merely the
|
|
LATEST outside influence of a procession of preparatory
|
|
influences stretching back over a period of years. No SINGLE
|
|
outside influence can make a man do a thing which is at war with
|
|
his training. The most it can do is to start his mind on a new
|
|
tract and open it to the reception of NEW influences--as in the
|
|
case of Ignatius Loyola. In time these influences can train him
|
|
to a point where it will be consonant with his new character to
|
|
yield to the FINAL influence and do that thing. I will put the
|
|
case in a form which will make my theory clear to you, I think.
|
|
Here are two ingots of virgin gold. They shall represent a
|
|
couple of characters which have been refined and perfected in the
|
|
virtues by years of diligent right training. Suppose you wanted
|
|
to break down these strong and well-compacted characters--what
|
|
influence would you bring to bear upon the ingots?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Work it out yourself. Proceed.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Suppose I turn upon one of them a steam-jet during a
|
|
long succession of hours. Will there be a result?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. None that I know of.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Why?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. A steam-jet cannot break down such a substance.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Very well. The steam is an OUTSIDE INFLUENCE, but it
|
|
is ineffective because the gold TAKES NO INTEREST IN IT. The
|
|
ingot remains as it was. Suppose we add to the steam some
|
|
quicksilver in a vaporized condition, and turn the jet upon the
|
|
ingot, will there be an instantaneous result?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. No.
|
|
|
|
O.M. The QUICKSILVER is an outside influence which gold (by
|
|
its peculiar nature--say TEMPERAMENT, DISPOSITION) CANNOT BE
|
|
INDIFFERENT TO. It stirs up the interest of the gold, although
|
|
we do not perceive it; but a SINGLE application of the influence
|
|
works no damage. Let us continue the application in a steady
|
|
stream, and call each minute a year. By the end of ten or twenty
|
|
minutes--ten or twenty years--the little ingot is sodden with
|
|
quicksilver, its virtues are gone, its character is degraded. At
|
|
last it is ready to yield to a temptation which it would have
|
|
taken no notice of, ten or twenty years ago. We will apply that
|
|
temptation in the form of a pressure of my finger. You note the
|
|
result?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Yes; the ingot has crumbled to sand. I understand,
|
|
now. It is not the SINGLE outside influence that does the work,
|
|
but only the LAST one of a long and disintegrating accumulation
|
|
of them. I see, now, how my SINGLE impulse to rob the man is not
|
|
the one that makes me do it, but only the LAST one of a
|
|
preparatory series. You might illustrate with a parable.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
A Parable
|
|
|
|
O.M. I will. There was once a pair of New England boys--
|
|
twins. They were alike in good dispositions, feckless morals,
|
|
and personal appearance. They were the models of the Sunday-
|
|
school. At fifteen George had the opportunity to go as cabin-boy
|
|
in a whale-ship, and sailed away for the Pacific. Henry remained
|
|
at home in the village. At eighteen George was a sailor before
|
|
the mast, and Henry was teacher of the advanced Bible class. At
|
|
twenty-two George, through fighting-habits and drinking-habits
|
|
acquired at sea and in the sailor boarding-houses of the European
|
|
and Oriental ports, was a common rough in Hong-Kong, and out of a
|
|
job; and Henry was superintendent of the Sunday-school. At
|
|
twenty-six George was a wanderer, a tramp, and Henry was pastor
|
|
of the village church. Then George came home, and was Henry's
|
|
guest. One evening a man passed by and turned down the lane, and
|
|
Henry said, with a pathetic smile, "Without intending me a
|
|
discomfort, that man is always keeping me reminded of my pinching
|
|
poverty, for he carries heaps of money about him, and goes by
|
|
here every evening of his life." That OUTSIDE INFLUENCE--that
|
|
remark--was enough for George, but IT was not the one that made
|
|
him ambush the man and rob him, it merely represented the eleven
|
|
years' accumulation of such influences, and gave birth to the act
|
|
for which their long gestation had made preparation. It had
|
|
never entered the head of Henry to rob the man--his ingot had
|
|
been subjected to clean steam only; but George's had been
|
|
subjected to vaporized quicksilver.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
V
|
|
|
|
More About the Machine
|
|
|
|
Note.--When Mrs. W. asks how can a millionaire give a single
|
|
dollar to colleges and museums while one human being is destitute
|
|
of bread, she has answered her question herself. Her feeling for
|
|
the poor shows that she has a standard of benevolence; there she
|
|
has conceded the millionaire's privilege of having a standard;
|
|
since she evidently requires him to adopt her standard, she is by
|
|
that act requiring herself to adopt his. The human being always
|
|
looks down when he is examining another person's standard; he
|
|
never find one that he has to examine by looking up.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
The Man-Machine Again
|
|
|
|
|
|
Young Man. You really think man is a mere machine?
|
|
|
|
Old Man. I do.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. And that his mind works automatically and is
|
|
independent of his control--carries on thought on its own hook?
|
|
|
|
O.M. Yes. It is diligently at work, unceasingly at work,
|
|
during every waking moment. Have you never tossed about all
|
|
night, imploring, beseeching, commanding your mind to stop work
|
|
and let you go to sleep?--you who perhaps imagine that your mind
|
|
is your servant and must obey your orders, think what you tell it
|
|
to think, and stop when you tell it to stop. When it chooses to
|
|
work, there is no way to keep it still for an instant. The
|
|
brightest man would not be able to supply it with subjects if he
|
|
had to hunt them up. If it needed the man's help it would wait
|
|
for him to give it work when he wakes in the morning.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Maybe it does.
|
|
|
|
O.M. No, it begins right away, before the man gets wide
|
|
enough awake to give it a suggestion. He may go to sleep saying,
|
|
"The moment I wake I will think upon such and such a subject,"
|
|
but he will fail. His mind will be too quick for him; by the
|
|
time he has become nearly enough awake to be half conscious, he
|
|
will find that it is already at work upon another subject. Make
|
|
the experiment and see.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. At any rate, he can make it stick to a subject if he
|
|
wants to.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Not if it find another that suits it better. As a
|
|
rule it will listen to neither a dull speaker nor a bright one.
|
|
It refuses all persuasion. The dull speaker wearies it and sends
|
|
it far away in idle dreams; the bright speaker throws out
|
|
stimulating ideas which it goes chasing after and is at once
|
|
unconscious of him and his talk. You cannot keep your mind from
|
|
wandering, if it wants to; it is master, not you.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
After an Interval of Days
|
|
|
|
|
|
O.M. Now, dreams--but we will examine that later.
|
|
Meantime, did you try commanding your mind to wait for orders
|
|
from you, and not do any thinking on its own hook?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Yes, I commanded it to stand ready to take orders when
|
|
I should wake in the morning.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Did it obey?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. No. It went to thinking of something of its own
|
|
initiation, without waiting for me. Also--as you suggested--at
|
|
night I appointed a theme for it to begin on in the morning, and
|
|
commanded it to begin on that one and no other.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Did it obey?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. No.
|
|
|
|
O.M. How many times did you try the experiment?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Ten.
|
|
|
|
O.M. How many successes did you score?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Not one.
|
|
|
|
O.M. It is as I have said: the mind is independent of the
|
|
man. He has no control over it; it does as it pleases. It will
|
|
take up a subject in spite of him; it will stick to it in spite
|
|
of him; it will throw it aside in spite of him. It is entirely
|
|
independent of him.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Go on. Illustrate.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Do you know chess?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. I learned it a week ago.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Did your mind go on playing the game all night that
|
|
first night?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Don't mention it!
|
|
|
|
O.M. It was eagerly, unsatisfiably interested; it rioted in
|
|
the combinations; you implored it to drop the game and let you
|
|
get some sleep?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Yes. It wouldn't listen; it played right along. It
|
|
wore me out and I got up haggard and wretched in the morning.
|
|
|
|
O.M. At some time or other you have been captivated by a
|
|
ridiculous rhyme-jingle?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Indeed, yes!
|
|
|
|
"I saw Esau kissing Kate,
|
|
And she saw I saw Esau;
|
|
I saw Esau, he saw Kate,
|
|
And she saw--"
|
|
|
|
And so on. My mind went mad with joy over it. It repeated it
|
|
all day and all night for a week in spite of all I could do to
|
|
stop it, and it seemed to me that I must surely go crazy.
|
|
|
|
O.M. And the new popular song?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Oh yes! "In the Swee-eet By and By"; etc. Yes, the
|
|
new popular song with the taking melody sings through one's head
|
|
day and night, asleep and awake, till one is a wreck. There is
|
|
no getting the mind to let it alone.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Yes, asleep as well as awake. The mind is quite
|
|
independent. It is master. You have nothing to do with it. It
|
|
is so apart from you that it can conduct its affairs, sing its
|
|
songs, play its chess, weave its complex and ingeniously
|
|
constructed dreams, while you sleep. It has no use for your
|
|
help, no use for your guidance, and never uses either, whether
|
|
you be asleep or awake. You have imagined that you could
|
|
originate a thought in your mind, and you have sincerely believed
|
|
you could do it.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Yes, I have had that idea.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Yet you can't originate a dream-thought for it to work
|
|
out, and get it accepted?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. No.
|
|
|
|
O.M. And you can't dictate its procedure after it has
|
|
originated a dream-thought for itself?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. No. No one can do it. Do you think the waking mind
|
|
and the dream mind are the same machine?
|
|
|
|
O.M. There is argument for it. We have wild and fantastic
|
|
day-thoughts? Things that are dream-like?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Yes--like Mr. Wells's man who invented a drug that made
|
|
him invisible; and like the Arabian tales of the Thousand Nights.
|
|
|
|
O.M. And there are dreams that are rational, simple,
|
|
consistent, and unfantastic?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Yes. I have dreams that are like that. Dreams that
|
|
are just like real life; dreams in which there are several
|
|
persons with distinctly differentiated characters--inventions of
|
|
my mind and yet strangers to me: a vulgar person; a refined one;
|
|
a wise person; a fool; a cruel person; a kind and compassionate
|
|
one; a quarrelsome person; a peacemaker; old persons and young;
|
|
beautiful girls and homely ones. They talk in character, each
|
|
preserves his own characteristics. There are vivid fights, vivid
|
|
and biting insults, vivid love-passages; there are tragedies and
|
|
comedies, there are griefs that go to one's heart, there are
|
|
sayings and doings that make you laugh: indeed, the whole thing
|
|
is exactly like real life.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Your dreaming mind originates the scheme, consistently
|
|
and artistically develops it, and carries the little drama
|
|
creditably through--all without help or suggestion from you?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Yes.
|
|
|
|
O.M. It is argument that it could do the like awake without help
|
|
or suggestion from you--and I think it does. It is argument that
|
|
it is the same old mind in both cases, and never needs your help.
|
|
I think the mind is purely a machine, a thoroughly independent
|
|
machine, an automatic machine. Have you tried the other
|
|
experiment which I suggested to you?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Which one?
|
|
|
|
O.M. The one which was to determine how much influence you
|
|
have over your mind--if any.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Yes, and got more or less entertainment out of it. I
|
|
did as you ordered: I placed two texts before my eyes--one a
|
|
dull one and barren of interest, the other one full of interest,
|
|
inflamed with it, white-hot with it. I commanded my mind to busy
|
|
itself solely with the dull one.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Did it obey?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Well, no, it didn't. It busied itself with the other one.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Did you try hard to make it obey?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Yes, I did my honest best.
|
|
|
|
O.M. What was the text which it refused to be interested in
|
|
or think about?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. It was this question: If A owes B a dollar and a
|
|
half, and B owes C two and three-quarter, and C owes A thirty-
|
|
five cents, and D and A together owe E and B three-sixteenths of
|
|
--of--I don't remember the rest, now, but anyway it was wholly
|
|
uninteresting, and I could not force my mind to stick to it even
|
|
half a minute at a time; it kept flying off to the other text.
|
|
|
|
O.M. What was the other text?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. It is no matter about that.
|
|
|
|
O.M. But what was it?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. A photograph.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Your own?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. No. It was hers.
|
|
|
|
O.M. You really made an honest good test. Did you make a
|
|
second trial?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Yes. I commanded my mind to interest itself in the
|
|
morning paper's report of the pork-market, and at the same time I
|
|
reminded it of an experience of mine of sixteen years ago. It
|
|
refused to consider the pork and gave its whole blazing interest
|
|
to that ancient incident.
|
|
|
|
O.M. What was the incident?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. An armed desperado slapped my face in the presence of
|
|
twenty spectators. It makes me wild and murderous every time I
|
|
think of it.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Good tests, both; very good tests. Did you try my
|
|
other suggestion?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. The one which was to prove to me that if I would leave
|
|
my mind to its own devices it would find things to think about
|
|
without any of my help, and thus convince me that it was a
|
|
machine, an automatic machine, set in motion by exterior
|
|
influences, and as independent of me as it could be if it were in
|
|
some one else's skull. Is that the one?
|
|
|
|
O.M. Yes.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. I tried it. I was shaving. I had slept well, and my
|
|
mind was very lively, even gay and frisky. It was reveling in a
|
|
fantastic and joyful episode of my remote boyhood which had
|
|
suddenly flashed up in my memory--moved to this by the spectacle
|
|
of a yellow cat picking its way carefully along the top of the
|
|
garden wall. The color of this cat brought the bygone cat before
|
|
me, and I saw her walking along the side-step of the pulpit; saw
|
|
her walk on to a large sheet of sticky fly-paper and get all her
|
|
feet involved; saw her struggle and fall down, helpless and
|
|
dissatisfied, more and more urgent, more and more unreconciled,
|
|
more and more mutely profane; saw the silent congregation
|
|
quivering like jelly, and the tears running down their faces. I
|
|
saw it all. The sight of the tears whisked my mind to a far
|
|
distant and a sadder scene--in Terra del Fuego--and with Darwin's
|
|
eyes I saw a naked great savage hurl his little boy against the
|
|
rocks for a trifling fault; saw the poor mother gather up her
|
|
dying child and hug it to her breast and weep, uttering no word.
|
|
Did my mind stop to mourn with that nude black sister of mine?
|
|
No--it was far away from that scene in an instant, and was
|
|
busying itself with an ever-recurring and disagreeable dream of
|
|
mine. In this dream I always find myself, stripped to my shirt,
|
|
cringing and dodging about in the midst of a great drawing-room
|
|
throng of finely dressed ladies and gentlemen, and wondering how
|
|
I got there. And so on and so on, picture after picture,
|
|
incident after incident, a drifting panorama of ever-changing,
|
|
ever-dissolving views manufactured by my mind without any help
|
|
from me--why, it would take me two hours to merely name the
|
|
multitude of things my mind tallied off and photographed in
|
|
fifteen minutes, let alone describe them to you.
|
|
|
|
O.M. A man's mind, left free, has no use for his help. But
|
|
there is one way whereby he can get its help when he desires it.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. What is that way?
|
|
|
|
O.M. When your mind is racing along from subject to subject
|
|
and strikes an inspiring one, open your mouth and begin talking
|
|
upon that matter--or--take your pen and use that. It will
|
|
interest your mind and concentrate it, and it will pursue the
|
|
subject with satisfaction. It will take full charge, and furnish
|
|
the words itself.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. But don't I tell it what to say?
|
|
|
|
O.M. There are certainly occasions when you haven't time.
|
|
The words leap out before you know what is coming.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. For instance?
|
|
|
|
O.M. Well, take a "flash of wit"--repartee. Flash is the
|
|
right word. It is out instantly. There is no time to arrange
|
|
the words. There is no thinking, no reflecting. Where there is
|
|
a wit-mechanism it is automatic in its action and needs no help.
|
|
Where the whit-mechanism is lacking, no amount of study and
|
|
reflection can manufacture the product.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. You really think a man originates nothing, creates nothing.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
The Thinking-Process
|
|
|
|
O.M. I do. Men perceive, and their brain-machines
|
|
automatically combine the things perceived. That is all.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. The steam-engine?
|
|
|
|
O.M. It takes fifty men a hundred years to invent it. One
|
|
meaning of invent is discover. I use the word in that sense.
|
|
Little by little they discover and apply the multitude of details
|
|
that go to make the perfect engine. Watt noticed that confined
|
|
steam was strong enough to lift the lid of the teapot. He didn't
|
|
create the idea, he merely discovered the fact; the cat had
|
|
noticed it a hundred times. From the teapot he evolved the
|
|
cylinder--from the displaced lid he evolved the piston-rod. To
|
|
attach something to the piston-rod to be moved by it, was a
|
|
simple matter--crank and wheel. And so there was a working
|
|
engine. [1]
|
|
|
|
One by one, improvements were discovered by men who used
|
|
their eyes, not their creating powers--for they hadn't any--and
|
|
now, after a hundred years the patient contributions of fifty or
|
|
a hundred observers stand compacted in the wonderful machine
|
|
which drives the ocean liner.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. A Shakespearean play?
|
|
|
|
O.M. The process is the same. The first actor was a
|
|
savage. He reproduced in his theatrical war-dances, scalp-
|
|
dances, and so on, incidents which he had seen in real life. A
|
|
more advanced civilization produced more incidents, more
|
|
episodes; the actor and the story-teller borrowed them. And so
|
|
the drama grew, little by little, stage by stage. It is made up
|
|
of the facts of life, not creations. It took centuries to
|
|
develop the Greek drama. It borrowed from preceding ages; it
|
|
lent to the ages that came after. Men observe and combine, that
|
|
is all. So does a rat.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. How?
|
|
|
|
O.M. He observes a smell, he infers a cheese, he seeks and
|
|
finds. The astronomer observes this and that; adds his this and
|
|
that to the this-and-thats of a hundred predecessors, infers an
|
|
invisible planet, seeks it and finds it. The rat gets into a
|
|
trap; gets out with trouble; infers that cheese in traps lacks
|
|
value, and meddles with that trap no more. The astronomer is
|
|
very proud of his achievement, the rat is proud of his. Yet both
|
|
are machines; they have done machine work, they have originated
|
|
nothing, they have no right to be vain; the whole credit belongs
|
|
to their Maker. They are entitled to no honors, no praises, no
|
|
monuments when they die, no remembrance. One is a complex and
|
|
elaborate machine, the other a simple and limited machine, but
|
|
they are alike in principle, function, and process, and neither
|
|
of them works otherwise than automatically, and neither of them
|
|
may righteously claim a PERSONAL superiority or a personal
|
|
dignity above the other.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. In earned personal dignity, then, and in personal merit
|
|
for what he does, it follows of necessity that he is on the
|
|
same level as a rat?
|
|
|
|
O.M. His brother the rat; yes, that is how it seems to me.
|
|
Neither of them being entitled to any personal merit for what he
|
|
does, it follows of necessity that neither of them has a right to
|
|
arrogate to himself (personally created) superiorities over his
|
|
brother.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Are you determined to go on believing in these
|
|
insanities? Would you go on believing in them in the face of
|
|
able arguments backed by collated facts and instances?
|
|
|
|
O.M. I have been a humble, earnest, and sincere Truth-Seeker.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Very well?
|
|
|
|
O.M. The humble, earnest, and sincere Truth-Seeker is
|
|
always convertible by such means.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. I am thankful to God to hear you say this, for now I
|
|
know that your conversion--
|
|
|
|
O.M. Wait. You misunderstand. I said I have BEEN a Truth-Seeker.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Well?
|
|
|
|
O.M. I am not that now. Have your forgotten? I told you
|
|
that there are none but temporary Truth-Seekers; that a permanent
|
|
one is a human impossibility; that as soon as the Seeker finds
|
|
what he is thoroughly convinced is the Truth, he seeks no
|
|
further, but gives the rest of his days to hunting junk to patch
|
|
it and caulk it and prop it with, and make it weather-proof and
|
|
keep it from caving in on him. Hence the Presbyterian remains a
|
|
Presbyterian, the Mohammedan a Mohammedan, the Spiritualist a
|
|
Spiritualist, the Democrat a Democrat, the Republican a
|
|
Republican, the Monarchist a Monarchist; and if a humble,
|
|
earnest, and sincere Seeker after Truth should find it in the
|
|
proposition that the moon is made of green cheese nothing could
|
|
ever budge him from that position; for he is nothing but an
|
|
automatic machine, and must obey the laws of his construction.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. After so--
|
|
|
|
O.M. Having found the Truth; perceiving that beyond question
|
|
man has but one moving impulse--the contenting of his own spirit--
|
|
and is merely a machine and entitled to no personal merit for
|
|
anything he does, it is not humanly possible for me to seek further.
|
|
The rest of my days will be spent in patching and painting and
|
|
puttying and caulking my priceless possession and in looking the
|
|
other way when an imploring argument or a damaging fact approaches.
|
|
|
|
-----
|
|
1. The Marquess of Worcester had done all of this more than a
|
|
century earlier.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
VI
|
|
|
|
|
|
Instinct and Thought
|
|
|
|
Young Man. It is odious. Those drunken theories of yours,
|
|
advanced a while ago--concerning the rat and all that--strip Man
|
|
bare of all his dignities, grandeurs, sublimities.
|
|
|
|
Old Man. He hasn't any to strip--they are shams, stolen
|
|
clothes. He claims credits which belong solely to his Maker.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. But you have no right to put him on a level with a rat.
|
|
|
|
O.M. I don't--morally. That would not be fair to the rat.
|
|
The rat is well above him, there.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Are you joking?
|
|
|
|
O.M. No, I am not.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Then what do you mean?
|
|
|
|
O.M. That comes under the head of the Moral Sense. It is a
|
|
large question. Let us finish with what we are about now, before
|
|
we take it up.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Very well. You have seemed to concede that you place
|
|
Man and the rat on A level. What is it? The intellectual?
|
|
|
|
O.M. In form--not a degree.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Explain.
|
|
|
|
O.M. I think that the rat's mind and the man's mind are the
|
|
same machine, but of unequal capacities--like yours and Edison's;
|
|
like the African pygmy's and Homer's; like the Bushman's and Bismarck's.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. How are you going to make that out, when the lower animals
|
|
have no mental quality but instinct, while man possesses reason?
|
|
|
|
O.M. What is instinct?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. It is merely unthinking and mechanical exercise of
|
|
inherited habit.
|
|
|
|
O.M. What originated the habit?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. The first animal started it, its descendants have
|
|
inherited it.
|
|
|
|
O.M. How did the first one come to start it?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. I don't know; but it didn't THINK it out.
|
|
|
|
O.M. How do you know it didn't?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Well--I have a right to suppose it didn't, anyway.
|
|
|
|
O.M. I don't believe you have. What is thought?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. I know what you call it: the mechanical and automatic
|
|
putting together of impressions received from outside, and
|
|
drawing an inference from them.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Very good. Now my idea of the meaningless term "instinct" is,
|
|
that it is merely PETRIFIED THOUGHT; solidified and made inanimate
|
|
by habit; thought which was once alive and awake, but it become
|
|
unconscious--walks in its sleep, so to speak.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Illustrate it.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Take a herd of cows, feeding in a pasture. Their
|
|
heads are all turned in one direction. They do that
|
|
instinctively; they gain nothing by it, they have no reason for
|
|
it, they don't know why they do it. It is an inherited habit
|
|
which was originally thought--that is to say, observation of an
|
|
exterior fact, and a valuable inference drawn from that
|
|
observation and confirmed by experience. The original wild ox
|
|
noticed that with the wind in his favor he could smell his enemy
|
|
in time to escape; then he inferred that it was worth while to
|
|
keep his nose to the wind. That is the process which man calls
|
|
reasoning. Man's thought-machine works just like the other
|
|
animals', but it is a better one and more Edisonian. Man, in the
|
|
ox's place, would go further, reason wider: he would face part
|
|
of the herd the other way and protect both front and rear.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Did you stay the term instinct is meaningless?
|
|
|
|
O.M. I think it is a bastard word. I think it confuses us;
|
|
for as a rule it applies itself to habits and impulses which had
|
|
a far-off origin in thought, and now and then breaks the rule and
|
|
applies itself to habits which can hardly claim a thought-origin.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Give an instance.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Well, in putting on trousers a man always inserts the same old
|
|
leg first--never the other one. There is no advantage in that,
|
|
and no sense in it. All men do it, yet no man thought it out
|
|
and adopted it of set purpose, I imagine. But it is a habit which
|
|
is transmitted, no doubt, and will continue to be transmitted.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Can you prove that the habit exists?
|
|
|
|
O.M. You can prove it, if you doubt. If you will take a
|
|
man to a clothing-store and watch him try on a dozen pairs of
|
|
trousers, you will see.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. The cow illustration is not--
|
|
|
|
O.M. Sufficient to show that a dumb animal's mental machine
|
|
is just the same as a man's and its reasoning processes the same?
|
|
I will illustrate further. If you should hand Mr. Edison a box
|
|
which you caused to fly open by some concealed device he would
|
|
infer a spring, and would hunt for it and find it. Now an uncle
|
|
of mine had an old horse who used to get into the closed lot
|
|
where the corn-crib was and dishonestly take the corn. I got the
|
|
punishment myself, as it was supposed that I had heedlessly
|
|
failed to insert the wooden pin which kept the gate closed.
|
|
These persistent punishments fatigued me; they also caused me to
|
|
infer the existence of a culprit, somewhere; so I hid myself and
|
|
watched the gate. Presently the horse came and pulled the pin
|
|
out with his teeth and went in. Nobody taught him that; he had
|
|
observed--then thought it out for himself. His process did not
|
|
differ from Edison's; he put this and that together and drew an
|
|
inference--and the peg, too; but I made him sweat for it.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. It has something of the seeming of thought about it.
|
|
Still it is not very elaborate. Enlarge.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Suppose Mr. Edison has been enjoying some one's
|
|
hospitalities. He comes again by and by, and the house is
|
|
vacant. He infers that his host has moved. A while afterward,
|
|
in another town, he sees the man enter a house; he infers that
|
|
that is the new home, and follows to inquire. Here, now, is the
|
|
experience of a gull, as related by a naturalist. The scene is a
|
|
Scotch fishing village where the gulls were kindly treated. This
|
|
particular gull visited a cottage; was fed; came next day and was
|
|
fed again; came into the house, next time, and ate with the
|
|
family; kept on doing this almost daily, thereafter. But, once
|
|
the gull was away on a journey for a few days, and when it
|
|
returned the house was vacant. Its friends had removed to a
|
|
village three miles distant. Several months later it saw the
|
|
head of the family on the street there, followed him home,
|
|
entered the house without excuse or apology, and became a daily
|
|
guest again. Gulls do not rank high mentally, but this one had
|
|
memory and the reasoning faculty, you see, and applied them
|
|
Edisonially.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Yet it was not an Edison and couldn't be developed into one.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Perhaps not. Could you?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. That is neither here nor there. Go on.
|
|
|
|
O.M. If Edison were in trouble and a stranger helped him
|
|
out of it and next day he got into the same difficulty again, he
|
|
would infer the wise thing to do in case he knew the stranger's
|
|
address. Here is a case of a bird and a stranger as related by a
|
|
naturalist. An Englishman saw a bird flying around about his
|
|
dog's head, down in the grounds, and uttering cries of distress.
|
|
He went there to see about it. The dog had a young bird in his
|
|
mouth--unhurt. The gentleman rescued it and put it on a bush and
|
|
brought the dog away. Early the next morning the mother bird
|
|
came for the gentleman, who was sitting on his veranda, and by
|
|
its maneuvers persuaded him to follow it to a distant part of the
|
|
grounds--flying a little way in front of him and waiting for him
|
|
to catch up, and so on; and keeping to the winding path, too,
|
|
instead of flying the near way across lots. The distance covered
|
|
was four hundred yards. The same dog was the culprit; he had the
|
|
young bird again, and once more he had to give it up. Now the
|
|
mother bird had reasoned it all out: since the stranger had
|
|
helped her once, she inferred that he would do it again; she knew
|
|
where to find him, and she went upon her errand with confidence.
|
|
Her mental processes were what Edison's would have been. She put
|
|
this and that together--and that is all that thought IS--and out
|
|
of them built her logical arrangement of inferences. Edison
|
|
couldn't have done it any better himself.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Do you believe that many of the dumb animals can think?
|
|
|
|
O.M. Yes--the elephant, the monkey, the horse, the dog, the
|
|
parrot, the macaw, the mocking-bird, and many others. The
|
|
elephant whose mate fell into a pit, and who dumped dirt and
|
|
rubbish into the pit till bottom was raised high enough to enable
|
|
the captive to step out, was equipped with the reasoning quality.
|
|
I conceive that all animals that can learn things through
|
|
teaching and drilling have to know how to observe, and put this
|
|
and that together and draw an inference--the process of thinking.
|
|
Could you teach an idiot of manuals of arms, and to advance,
|
|
retreat, and go through complex field maneuvers at the word of
|
|
command?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Not if he were a thorough idiot.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Well, canary-birds can learn all that; dogs and elephants
|
|
learn all sorts of wonderful things. They must surely be able
|
|
to notice, and to put things together, and say to themselves,
|
|
"I get the idea, now: when I do so and so, as per order,
|
|
I am praised and fed; when I do differently I am punished."
|
|
Fleas can be taught nearly anything that a Congressman can.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Granting, then, that dumb animals are able to think
|
|
upon a low plane, is there any that can think upon a high one?
|
|
Is there one that is well up toward man?
|
|
|
|
O.M. Yes. As a thinker and planner the ant is the equal of
|
|
any savage race of men; as a self-educated specialist in several
|
|
arts she is the superior of any savage race of men; and in one or
|
|
two high mental qualities she is above the reach of any man,
|
|
savage or civilized!
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Oh, come! you are abolishing the intellectual frontier
|
|
which separates man and beast.
|
|
|
|
O.M. I beg your pardon. One cannot abolish what does not exist.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. You are not in earnest, I hope. You cannot mean to
|
|
seriously say there is no such frontier.
|
|
|
|
O.M. I do say it seriously. The instances of the horse, the
|
|
gull, the mother bird, and the elephant show that those creatures
|
|
put their this's and thats together just as Edison would have
|
|
done it and drew the same inferences that he would have drawn.
|
|
Their mental machinery was just like his, also its manner of
|
|
working. Their equipment was as inferior to the Strasburg clock,
|
|
but that is the only difference--there is no frontier.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. It looks exasperatingly true; and is distinctly
|
|
offensive. It elevates the dumb beasts to--to--
|
|
|
|
O.M. Let us drop that lying phrase, and call them the
|
|
Unrevealed Creatures; so far as we can know, there is no such
|
|
thing as a dumb beast.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. On what grounds do you make that assertion?
|
|
|
|
O.M. On quite simple ones. "Dumb" beast suggests an animal
|
|
that has no thought-machinery, no understanding, no speech, no
|
|
way of communicating what is in its mind. We know that a hen HAS
|
|
speech. We cannot understand everything she says, but we easily
|
|
learn two or three of her phrases. We know when she is saying,
|
|
"I have laid an egg"; we know when she is saying to the chicks,
|
|
"Run here, dears, I've found a worm"; we know what she is saying
|
|
when she voices a warning: "Quick! hurry! gather yourselves
|
|
under mamma, there's a hawk coming!" We understand the cat when
|
|
she stretches herself out, purring with affection and contentment
|
|
and lifts up a soft voice and says, "Come, kitties, supper's
|
|
ready"; we understand her when she goes mourning about and says,
|
|
"Where can they be? They are lost. Won't you help me hunt for
|
|
them?" and we understand the disreputable Tom when he challenges
|
|
at midnight from his shed, "You come over here, you product of
|
|
immoral commerce, and I'll make your fur fly!" We understand a
|
|
few of a dog's phrases and we learn to understand a few of the
|
|
remarks and gestures of any bird or other animal that we
|
|
domesticate and observe. The clearness and exactness of the few
|
|
of the hen's speeches which we understand is argument that she
|
|
can communicate to her kind a hundred things which we cannot
|
|
comprehend--in a word, that she can converse. And this argument
|
|
is also applicable in the case of others of the great army of the
|
|
Unrevealed. It is just like man's vanity and impertinence to
|
|
call an animal dumb because it is dumb to his dull perceptions.
|
|
Now as to the ant--
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Yes, go back to the ant, the creature that--as you
|
|
seem to think--sweeps away the last vestige of an intellectual
|
|
frontier between man and the Unrevealed.
|
|
|
|
O.M. That is what she surely does. In all his history the
|
|
aboriginal Australian never thought out a house for himself and
|
|
built it. The ant is an amazing architect. She is a wee little
|
|
creature, but she builds a strong and enduring house eight feet
|
|
high--a house which is as large in proportion to her size as is
|
|
the largest capitol or cathedral in the world compared to man's
|
|
size. No savage race has produced architects who could approach
|
|
the air in genius or culture. No civilized race has produced
|
|
architects who could plan a house better for the uses proposed
|
|
than can hers. Her house contains a throne-room; nurseries for
|
|
her young; granaries; apartments for her soldiers, her workers,
|
|
etc.; and they and the multifarious halls and corridors which
|
|
communicate with them are arranged and distributed with an
|
|
educated and experienced eye for convenience and adaptability.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. That could be mere instinct.
|
|
|
|
O.M. It would elevate the savage if he had it. But let us
|
|
look further before we decide. The ant has soldiers--battalions,
|
|
regiments, armies; and they have their appointed captains and
|
|
generals, who lead them to battle.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. That could be instinct, too.
|
|
|
|
O.M. We will look still further. The ant has a system of
|
|
government; it is well planned, elaborate, and is well carried on.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Instinct again.
|
|
|
|
O.M. She has crowds of slaves, and is a hard and unjust
|
|
employer of forced labor.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Instinct.
|
|
|
|
O.M. She has cows, and milks them.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Instinct, of course.
|
|
|
|
O.M. In Texas she lays out a farm twelve feet square, plants it,
|
|
weeds it, cultivates it, gathers the crop and stores it away.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Instinct, all the same.
|
|
|
|
O.M. The ant discriminates between friend and stranger.
|
|
Sir John Lubbock took ants from two different nests, made them
|
|
drunk with whiskey and laid them, unconscious, by one of the
|
|
nests, near some water. Ants from the nest came and examined and
|
|
discussed these disgraced creatures, then carried their friends
|
|
home and threw the strangers overboard. Sir John repeated the
|
|
experiment a number of times. For a time the sober ants did as
|
|
they had done at first--carried their friends home and threw the
|
|
strangers overboard. But finally they lost patience, seeing that
|
|
their reformatory efforts went for nothing, and threw both
|
|
friends and strangers overboard. Come--is this instinct, or is
|
|
it thoughtful and intelligent discussion of a thing new--
|
|
absolutely new--to their experience; with a verdict arrived at,
|
|
sentence passed, and judgment executed? Is it instinct?--thought
|
|
petrified by ages of habit--or isn't it brand-new thought,
|
|
inspired by the new occasion, the new circumstances?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. I have to concede it. It was not a result of habit;
|
|
it has all the look of reflection, thought, putting this and that
|
|
together, as you phrase it. I believe it was thought.
|
|
|
|
O.M. I will give you another instance of thought. Franklin
|
|
had a cup of sugar on a table in his room. The ants got at it.
|
|
He tried several preventives; and ants rose superior to them.
|
|
Finally he contrived one which shut off access--probably set the
|
|
table's legs in pans of water, or drew a circle of tar around the
|
|
cup, I don't remember. At any rate, he watched to see what they
|
|
would do. They tried various schemes--failures, every one. The
|
|
ants were badly puzzled. Finally they held a consultation,
|
|
discussed the problem, arrived at a decision--and this time they
|
|
beat that great philosopher. They formed in procession, cross
|
|
the floor, climbed the wall, marched across the ceiling to a
|
|
point just over the cup, then one by one they let go and fell
|
|
down into it! Was that instinct--thought petrified by ages of
|
|
inherited habit?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. No, I don't believe it was. I believe it was a newly
|
|
reasoned scheme to meet a new emergency.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Very well. You have conceded the reasoning power in
|
|
two instances. I come now to a mental detail wherein the ant is
|
|
a long way the superior of any human being. Sir John Lubbock
|
|
proved by many experiments that an ant knows a stranger ant of
|
|
her own species in a moment, even when the stranger is disguised
|
|
--with paint. Also he proved that an ant knows every individual
|
|
in her hive of five hundred thousand souls. Also, after a year's
|
|
absence one of the five hundred thousand she will straightway
|
|
recognize the returned absentee and grace the recognition with a
|
|
affectionate welcome. How are these recognitions made? Not by
|
|
color, for painted ants were recognized. Not by smell, for ants
|
|
that had been dipped in chloroform were recognized. Not by
|
|
speech and not by antennae signs nor contacts, for the drunken
|
|
and motionless ants were recognized and the friend discriminated
|
|
from the stranger. The ants were all of the same species,
|
|
therefore the friends had to be recognized by form and feature--
|
|
friends who formed part of a hive of five hundred thousand! Has
|
|
any man a memory for form and feature approaching that?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Franklin's ants and Lubbuck's ants show fine
|
|
capacities of putting this and that together in new and untried
|
|
emergencies and deducting smart conclusions from the
|
|
combinations--a man's mental process exactly. With memory to
|
|
help, man preserves his observations and reasonings, reflects
|
|
upon them, adds to them, recombines, and so proceeds, stage by
|
|
stage, to far results--from the teakettle to the ocean
|
|
greyhound's complex engine; from personal labor to slave labor;
|
|
from wigwam to palace; from the capricious chase to agriculture
|
|
and stored food; from nomadic life to stable government and
|
|
concentrated authority; from incoherent hordes to massed armies.
|
|
The ant has observation, the reasoning faculty, and the
|
|
preserving adjunct of a prodigious memory; she has duplicated
|
|
man's development and the essential features of his civilization,
|
|
and you call it all instinct!
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Perhaps I lacked the reasoning faculty myself.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Well, don't tell anybody, and don't do it again.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. We have come a good way. As a result--as I understand it--
|
|
I am required to concede that there is absolutely no intellectual
|
|
frontier separating Man and the Unrevealed Creatures?
|
|
|
|
O.M. That is what you are required to concede. There is no
|
|
such frontier--there is no way to get around that. Man has a
|
|
finer and more capable machine in him than those others, but it
|
|
is the same machine and works in the same way. And neither he
|
|
nor those others can command the machine--it is strictly
|
|
automatic, independent of control, works when it pleases, and
|
|
when it doesn't please, it can't be forced.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Then man and the other animals are all alike, as to mental
|
|
machinery, and there isn't any difference of any stupendous
|
|
magnitude between them, except in quality, not in kind.
|
|
|
|
O.M. That is about the state of it--intellectuality. There
|
|
are pronounced limitations on both sides. We can't learn to
|
|
understand much of their language, but the dog, the elephant,
|
|
etc., learn to understand a very great deal of ours. To that
|
|
extent they are our superiors. On the other hand, they can't
|
|
learn reading, writing, etc., nor any of our fine and high
|
|
things, and there we have a large advantage over them.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Very well, let them have what they've got, and welcome;
|
|
there is still a wall, and a lofty one. They haven't got the
|
|
Moral Sense; we have it, and it lifts us immeasurably above them.
|
|
|
|
O.M. What makes you think that?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Now look here--let's call a halt. I have stood the
|
|
other infamies and insanities and that is enough; I am not going
|
|
to have man and the other animals put on the same level morally.
|
|
|
|
O.M. I wasn't going to hoist man up to that.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. This is too much! I think it is not right to jest
|
|
about such things.
|
|
|
|
O.M. I am not jesting, I am merely reflecting a plain and
|
|
simple truth--and without uncharitableness. The fact that man
|
|
knows right from wrong proves his INTELLECTUAL superiority to the
|
|
other creatures; but the fact that he can DO wrong proves his
|
|
MORAL inferiority to any creature that CANNOT. It is my belief
|
|
that this position is not assailable.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Free Will
|
|
|
|
Y.M. What is your opinion regarding Free Will?
|
|
|
|
O.M. That there is no such thing. Did the man possess it
|
|
who gave the old woman his last shilling and trudged home in the
|
|
storm?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. He had the choice between succoring the old woman and
|
|
leaving her to suffer. Isn't it so?
|
|
|
|
O.M. Yes, there was a choice to be made, between bodily
|
|
comfort on the one hand and the comfort of the spirit on the
|
|
other. The body made a strong appeal, of course--the body would
|
|
be quite sure to do that; the spirit made a counter appeal. A
|
|
choice had to be made between the two appeals, and was made. Who
|
|
or what determined that choice?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Any one but you would say that the man determined it,
|
|
and that in doing it he exercised Free Will.
|
|
|
|
O.M. We are constantly assured that every man is endowed
|
|
with Free Will, and that he can and must exercise it where he is
|
|
offered a choice between good conduct and less-good conduct. Yet
|
|
we clearly saw that in that man's case he really had no Free
|
|
Will: his temperament, his training, and the daily influences
|
|
which had molded him and made him what he was, COMPELLED him to
|
|
rescue the old woman and thus save HIMSELF--save himself from
|
|
spiritual pain, from unendurable wretchedness. He did not make
|
|
the choice, it was made FOR him by forces which he could not
|
|
control. Free Will has always existed in WORDS, but it stops
|
|
there, I think--stops short of FACT. I would not use those
|
|
words--Free Will--but others.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. What others?
|
|
|
|
O.M. Free Choice.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. What is the difference?
|
|
|
|
O.M. The one implies untrammeled power to ACT as you please,
|
|
the other implies nothing beyond a mere MENTAL PROCESS:
|
|
the critical ability to determine which of two things
|
|
is nearest right and just.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Make the difference clear, please.
|
|
|
|
O.M. The mind can freely SELECT, CHOOSE, POINT OUT the
|
|
right and just one--its function stops there. It can go no
|
|
further in the matter. It has no authority to say that the right
|
|
one shall be acted upon and the wrong one discarded.
|
|
That authority is in other hands.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. The man's?
|
|
|
|
O.M. In the machine which stands for him. In his born
|
|
disposition and the character which has been built around it by
|
|
training and environment.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. It will act upon the right one of the two?
|
|
|
|
O.M. It will do as it pleases in the matter. George Washington's
|
|
machine would act upon the right one; Pizarro would act upon the wrong one.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Then as I understand it a bad man's mental machinery calmly
|
|
and judicially points out which of two things is right and just--
|
|
|
|
O.M. Yes, and his MORAL machinery will freely act upon
|
|
the other or the other, according to its make, and be quite
|
|
indifferent to the MIND'S feeling concerning the matter--that is,
|
|
WOULD be, if the mind had any feelings; which it hasn't.
|
|
It is merely a thermometer: it registers the heat and the cold,
|
|
and cares not a farthing about either.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Then we must not claim that if a man KNOWS which of
|
|
two things is right he is absolutely BOUND to do that thing?
|
|
|
|
O.M. His temperament and training will decide what he shall
|
|
do, and he will do it; he cannot help himself, he has no
|
|
authority over the mater. Wasn't it right for David to go out
|
|
and slay Goliath?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Yes.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Then it would have been equally RIGHT for any one else to do it?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Certainly.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Then it would have been RIGHT for a born coward to attempt it?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. It would--yes.
|
|
|
|
O.M. You know that no born coward ever would have attempted it, don't you?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Yes.
|
|
|
|
O.M. You know that a born coward's make and temperament
|
|
would be an absolute and insurmountable bar to his ever essaying
|
|
such a thing, don't you?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Yes, I know it.
|
|
|
|
O.M. He clearly perceives that it would be RIGHT to try it?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Yes.
|
|
|
|
O.M. His mind has Free Choice in determining that it would
|
|
be RIGHT to try it?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Yes.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Then if by reason of his inborn cowardice he simply
|
|
can NOT essay it, what becomes of his Free Will? Where is his
|
|
Free Will? Why claim that he has Free Will when the plain facts
|
|
show that he hasn't? Why content that because he and David SEE
|
|
the right alike, both must ACT alike? Why impose the same laws
|
|
upon goat and lion?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. There is really no such thing as Free Will?
|
|
|
|
O.M. It is what I think. There is WILL. But it has
|
|
nothing to do with INTELLECTUAL PERCEPTIONS OF RIGHT AND WRONG,
|
|
and is not under their command. David's temperament and training
|
|
had Will, and it was a compulsory force; David had to obey its
|
|
decrees, he had no choice. The coward's temperament and training
|
|
possess Will, and IT is compulsory; it commands him to avoid
|
|
danger, and he obeys, he has no choice. But neither the Davids
|
|
nor the cowards possess Free Will--will that may do the right or
|
|
do the wrong, as their MENTAL verdict shall decide.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Not Two Values, But Only One
|
|
|
|
Y.M. There is one thing which bothers me: I can't tell
|
|
where you draw the line between MATERIAL covetousness and
|
|
SPIRITUAL covetousness.
|
|
|
|
O.M. I don't draw any.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. How do you mean?
|
|
|
|
O.M. There is no such thing as MATERIAL covetousness.
|
|
All covetousness is spiritual
|
|
|
|
Y.M. ALL longings, desires, ambitions SPIRITUAL, never material?
|
|
|
|
O.M. Yes. The Master in you requires that in ALL cases you
|
|
shall content his SPIRIT--that alone. He never requires anything
|
|
else, he never interests himself in any other matter.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Ah, come! When he covets somebody's money--isn't that
|
|
rather distinctly material and gross?
|
|
|
|
O.M. No. The money is merely a symbol--it represents in
|
|
visible and concrete form a SPIRITUAL DESIRE. Any so-called
|
|
material thing that you want is merely a symbol: you want it not
|
|
for ITSELF, but because it will content your spirit for the moment.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Please particularize.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Very well. Maybe the thing longed for is a new hat.
|
|
You get it and your vanity is pleased, your spirit contented.
|
|
Suppose your friends deride the hat, make fun of it: at once it
|
|
loses its value; you are ashamed of it, you put it out of your
|
|
sight, you never want to see it again.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. I think I see. Go on.
|
|
|
|
O.M. It is the same hat, isn't it? It is in no way
|
|
altered. But it wasn't the HAT you wanted, but only what it
|
|
stood for--a something to please and content your SPIRIT. When
|
|
it failed of that, the whole of its value was gone. There are no
|
|
MATERIAL values; there are only spiritual ones. You will hunt in
|
|
vain for a material value that is ACTUAL, REAL--there is no such
|
|
thing. The only value it possesses, for even a moment, is the
|
|
spiritual value back of it: remove that end and it is at once
|
|
worthless--like the hat.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Can you extend that to money?
|
|
|
|
O.M. Yes. It is merely a symbol, it has no MATERIAL value;
|
|
you think you desire it for its own sake, but it is not so. You
|
|
desire it for the spiritual content it will bring; if it fail of
|
|
that, you discover that its value is gone. There is that
|
|
pathetic tale of the man who labored like a slave, unresting,
|
|
unsatisfied, until he had accumulated a fortune, and was happy
|
|
over it, jubilant about it; then in a single week a pestilence
|
|
swept away all whom he held dear and left him desolate. His
|
|
money's value was gone. He realized that his joy in it came not
|
|
from the money itself, but from the spiritual contentment he got
|
|
out of his family's enjoyment of the pleasures and delights it
|
|
lavished upon them. Money has no MATERIAL value; if you remove
|
|
its spiritual value nothing is left but dross. It is so with all
|
|
things, little or big, majestic or trivial--there are no
|
|
exceptions. Crowns, scepters, pennies, paste jewels, village
|
|
notoriety, world-wide fame--they are all the same, they have no
|
|
MATERIAL value: while they content the SPIRIT they are precious,
|
|
when this fails they are worthless.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
A Difficult Question
|
|
|
|
Y.M. You keep me confused and perplexed all the time by
|
|
your elusive terminology. Sometimes you divide a man up into two
|
|
or three separate personalities, each with authorities,
|
|
jurisdictions, and responsibilities of its own, and when he is in
|
|
that condition I can't grasp it. Now when _I_ speak of a man, he
|
|
is THE WHOLE THING IN ONE, and easy to hold and contemplate.
|
|
|
|
O.M. That is pleasant and convenient, if true. When you
|
|
speak of "my body" who is the "my"?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. It is the "me."
|
|
|
|
O.M. The body is a property then, and the Me owns it.
|
|
Who is the Me?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. The Me is THE WHOLE THING; it is a common property; an
|
|
undivided ownership, vested in the whole entity.
|
|
|
|
O.M. If the Me admires a rainbow, is it the whole Me that
|
|
admires it, including the hair, hands, heels, and all?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Certainly not. It is my MIND that admires it.
|
|
|
|
O.M. So YOU divide the Me yourself. Everybody does;
|
|
everybody must. What, then, definitely, is the Me?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. I think it must consist of just those two parts--
|
|
the body and the mind.
|
|
|
|
O.M. You think so? If you say "I believe the world is round,"
|
|
who is the "I" that is speaking?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. The mind.
|
|
|
|
O.M. If you say "I grieve for the loss of my father,"
|
|
who is the "I"?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. The mind.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Is the mind exercising an intellectual function when
|
|
it examines and accepts the evidence that the world is round?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Yes.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Is it exercising an intellectual function when it
|
|
grieves for the loss of your father?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. That is not cerebration, brain-work, it is a matter of FEELING.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Then its source is not in your mind, but in your MORAL territory?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. I have to grant it.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Is your mind a part of your PHYSICAL equipment?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. No. It is independent of it; it is spiritual.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Being spiritual, it cannot be affected by physical influences?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. No.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Does the mind remain sober with the body is drunk?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Well--no.
|
|
|
|
O.M. There IS a physical effect present, then?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. It looks like it.
|
|
|
|
O.M. A cracked skull has resulted in a crazy mind. Why
|
|
should it happen if the mind is spiritual, and INDEPENDENT of
|
|
physical influences?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Well--I don't know.
|
|
|
|
O.M. When you have a pain in your foot, how do you know it?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. I feel it.
|
|
|
|
O.M. But you do not feel it until a nerve reports the hurt
|
|
to the brain. Yet the brain is the seat of the mind, is it not?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. I think so.
|
|
|
|
O.M. But isn't spiritual enough to learn what is happening
|
|
in the outskirts without the help of the PHYSICAL messenger? You
|
|
perceive that the question of who or what the Me is, is not a
|
|
simple one at all. You say "I admire the rainbow," and "I
|
|
believe the world is round," and in these cases we find that the
|
|
Me is not speaking, but only the MENTAL part. You say, "I
|
|
grieve," and again the Me is not all speaking, but only the MORAL
|
|
part. You say the mind is wholly spiritual; then you say "I have
|
|
a pain" and find that this time the Me is mental AND spiritual
|
|
combined. We all use the "I" in this indeterminate fashion,
|
|
there is no help for it. We imagine a Master and King over what
|
|
you call The Whole Thing, and we speak of him as "I," but when we
|
|
try to define him we find we cannot do it. The intellect and the
|
|
feelings can act quite INDEPENDENTLY of each other; we recognize
|
|
that, and we look around for a Ruler who is master over both, and
|
|
can serve as a DEFINITE AND INDISPUTABLE "I," and enable us to
|
|
know what we mean and who or what we are talking about when we
|
|
use that pronoun, but we have to give it up and confess that we
|
|
cannot find him. To me, Man is a machine, made up of many
|
|
mechanisms, the moral and mental ones acting automatically in
|
|
accordance with the impulses of an interior Master who is built
|
|
out of born-temperament and an accumulation of multitudinous
|
|
outside influences and trainings; a machine whose ONE function is
|
|
to secure the spiritual contentment of the Master, be his desires
|
|
good or be they evil; a machine whose Will is absolute and must
|
|
be obeyed, and always IS obeyed.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Maybe the Me is the Soul?
|
|
|
|
O.M. Maybe it is. What is the Soul?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. I don't know.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Neither does any one else.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
The Master Passion
|
|
|
|
|
|
Y.M. What is the Master?--or, in common speech, the
|
|
Conscience? Explain it.
|
|
|
|
O.M. It is that mysterious autocrat, lodged in a man, which
|
|
compels the man to content its desires. It may be called the
|
|
Master Passion--the hunger for Self-Approval.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Where is its seat?
|
|
|
|
O.M. In man's moral constitution.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Are its commands for the man's good?
|
|
|
|
O.M. It is indifferent to the man's good; it never concerns
|
|
itself about anything but the satisfying of its own desires. It
|
|
can be TRAINED to prefer things which will be for the man's good,
|
|
but it will prefer them only because they will content IT better
|
|
than other things would.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Then even when it is trained to high ideals it is still
|
|
looking out for its own contentment, and not for the man's good.
|
|
|
|
O.M. True. Trained or untrained, it cares nothing for the man's good,
|
|
and never concerns itself about it.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. It seems to be an IMMORAL force seated in the man's
|
|
moral constitution.
|
|
|
|
O.M. It is a COLORLESS force seated in the man's moral constitution.
|
|
Let us call it an instinct--a blind, unreasoning instinct, which cannot
|
|
and does not distinguish between good morals and bad ones, and cares
|
|
nothing for results to the man provided its own contentment be secured;
|
|
and it will ALWAYS secure that.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. It seeks money, and it probably considers that that is
|
|
an advantage for the man?
|
|
|
|
O.M. It is not always seeking money, it is not always
|
|
seeking power, nor office, nor any other MATERIAL advantage. In
|
|
ALL cases it seeks a SPIRITUAL contentment, let the MEANS be what
|
|
they may. Its desires are determined by the man's temperament--
|
|
and it is lord over that. Temperament, Conscience,
|
|
Susceptibility, Spiritual Appetite, are, in fact, the same thing.
|
|
Have you ever heard of a person who cared nothing for money?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Yes. A scholar who would not leave his garret and his
|
|
books to take a place in a business house at a large salary.
|
|
|
|
O.M. He had to satisfy his master--that is to say, his temperament,
|
|
his Spiritual Appetite--and it preferred books to money. Are there
|
|
other cases?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Yes, the hermit.
|
|
|
|
O.M. It is a good instance. The hermit endures solitude,
|
|
hunger, cold, and manifold perils, to content his autocrat, who
|
|
prefers these things, and prayer and contemplation, to money or
|
|
to any show or luxury that money can buy. Are there others?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Yes. The artist, the poet, the scientist.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Their autocrat prefers the deep pleasures of these
|
|
occupations, either well paid or ill paid, to any others in the
|
|
market, at any price. You REALIZE that the Master Passion--the
|
|
contentment of the spirit--concerns itself with many things
|
|
besides so-called material advantage, material prosperity, cash,
|
|
and all that?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. I think I must concede it.
|
|
|
|
O.M. I believe you must. There are perhaps as many
|
|
Temperaments that would refuse the burdens and vexations and
|
|
distinctions of public office as there are that hunger after
|
|
them. The one set of Temperaments seek the contentment of the
|
|
spirit, and that alone; and this is exactly the case with the
|
|
other set. Neither set seeks anything BUT the contentment of the
|
|
spirit. If the one is sordid, both are sordid; and equally so,
|
|
since the end in view is precisely the same in both cases. And
|
|
in both cases Temperament decides the preference--and Temperament
|
|
is BORN, not made.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Conclusion
|
|
|
|
O.M. You have been taking a holiday?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Yes; a mountain tramp covering a week. Are you ready to talk?
|
|
|
|
O.M. Quite ready. What shall we begin with?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Well, lying abed resting up, two days and nights, I
|
|
have thought over all these talks, and passed them carefully in
|
|
review. With this result: that . . . that . . . are you
|
|
intending to publish your notions about Man some day?
|
|
|
|
O.M. Now and then, in these past twenty years, the Master
|
|
inside of me has half-intended to order me to set them to paper
|
|
and publish them. Do I have to tell you why the order has
|
|
remained unissued, or can you explain so simply a thing without
|
|
my help?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. By your doctrine, it is simplicity itself: outside
|
|
influences moved your interior Master to give the order; stronger
|
|
outside influences deterred him. Without the outside influences,
|
|
neither of these impulses could ever have been born, since a
|
|
person's brain is incapable or originating an idea within itself.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Correct. Go on.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. The matter of publishing or withholding is still in your
|
|
Master's hands. If some day an outside influence shall determine
|
|
him to publish, he will give the order, and it will be obeyed.
|
|
|
|
O.M. That is correct. Well?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Upon reflection I have arrived at the conviction
|
|
that the publication of your doctrines would be harmful.
|
|
Do you pardon me?
|
|
|
|
O.M. Pardon YOU? You have done nothing. You are an
|
|
instrument--a speaking-trumpet. Speaking-trumpets are not
|
|
responsible for what is said through them. Outside influences--
|
|
in the form of lifelong teachings, trainings, notions,
|
|
prejudices, and other second-hand importations--have persuaded
|
|
the Master within you that the publication of these doctrines
|
|
would be harmful. Very well, this is quite natural, and was to
|
|
be expected; in fact, was inevitable. Go on; for the sake of
|
|
ease and convenience, stick to habit: speak in the first person,
|
|
and tell me what your Master thinks about it.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Well, to begin: it is a desolating doctrine; it is
|
|
not inspiring, enthusing, uplifting. It takes the glory out of
|
|
man, it takes the pride out of him, it takes the heroism out of
|
|
him, it denies him all personal credit, all applause; it not only
|
|
degrades him to a machine, but allows him no control over the
|
|
machine; makes a mere coffee-mill of him, and neither permits him
|
|
to supply the coffee nor turn the crank, his sole and piteously
|
|
humble function being to grind coarse or fine, according to his
|
|
make, outside impulses doing the rest.
|
|
|
|
O.M. It is correctly stated. Tell me--what do men admire
|
|
most in each other?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Intellect, courage, majesty of build, beauty of
|
|
countenance, charity, benevolence, magnanimity, kindliness,
|
|
heroism, and--and--
|
|
|
|
O.M. I would not go any further. These are ELEMENTALS.
|
|
Virtue, fortitude, holiness, truthfulness, loyalty, high ideals--
|
|
these, and all the related qualities that are named in the
|
|
dictionary, are MADE OF THE ELEMENTALS, by blendings,
|
|
combinations, and shadings of the elementals, just as one makes
|
|
green by blending blue and yellow, and makes several shades and
|
|
tints of red by modifying the elemental red. There are several
|
|
elemental colors; they are all in the rainbow; out of them we
|
|
manufacture and name fifty shades of them. You have named the
|
|
elementals of the human rainbow, and also one BLEND--heroism,
|
|
which is made out of courage and magnanimity. Very well, then;
|
|
which of these elements does the possessor of it manufacture for
|
|
himself? Is it intellect?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. No.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Why?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. He is born with it.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Is it courage?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. No. He is born with it.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Is it majesty of build, beauty of countenance?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. No. They are birthrights.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Take those others--the elemental moral qualities--
|
|
charity, benevolence, magnanimity, kindliness; fruitful seeds,
|
|
out of which spring, through cultivation by outside influences,
|
|
all the manifold blends and combinations of virtues named in the
|
|
dictionaries: does man manufacture any of those seeds, or are
|
|
they all born in him?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Born in him.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Who manufactures them, then?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. God.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Where does the credit of it belong?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. To God.
|
|
|
|
O.M. And the glory of which you spoke, and the applause?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. To God.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Then it is YOU who degrade man. You make him claim
|
|
glory, praise, flattery, for every valuable thing he possesses--
|
|
BORROWED finery, the whole of it; no rag of it earned by himself,
|
|
not a detail of it produced by his own labor. YOU make man a
|
|
humbug; have I done worse by him?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. You have made a machine of him.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Who devised that cunning and beautiful mechanism, a
|
|
man's hand?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. God.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Who devised the law by which it automatically hammers
|
|
out of a piano an elaborate piece of music, without error, while
|
|
the man is thinking about something else, or talking to a friend?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. God.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Who devised the blood? Who devised the wonderful
|
|
machinery which automatically drives its renewing and refreshing
|
|
streams through the body, day and night, without assistance or
|
|
advice from the man? Who devised the man's mind, whose machinery
|
|
works automatically, interests itself in what it pleases,
|
|
regardless of its will or desire, labors all night when it likes,
|
|
deaf to his appeals for mercy? God devised all these things.
|
|
_I_ have not made man a machine, God made him a machine. I am
|
|
merely calling attention to the fact, nothing more. Is it wrong
|
|
to call attention to the fact? Is it a crime?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. I think it is wrong to EXPOSE a fact when harm can
|
|
come of it.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Go on.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Look at the matter as it stands now. Man has been
|
|
taught that he is the supreme marvel of the Creation; he believes
|
|
it; in all the ages he has never doubted it, whether he was a
|
|
naked savage, or clothed in purple and fine linen, and civilized.
|
|
This has made his heart buoyant, his life cheery. His pride in
|
|
himself, his sincere admiration of himself, his joy in what he
|
|
supposed were his own and unassisted achievements, and his
|
|
exultation over the praise and applause which they evoked--these
|
|
have exalted him, enthused him, ambitioned him to higher and
|
|
higher flights; in a word, made his life worth the living. But
|
|
by your scheme, all this is abolished; he is degraded to a
|
|
machine, he is a nobody, his noble prides wither to mere
|
|
vanities; let him strive as he may, he can never be any better
|
|
than his humblest and stupidest neighbor; he would never be
|
|
cheerful again, his life would not be worth the living.
|
|
|
|
O.M. You really think that?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. I certainly do.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Have you ever seen me uncheerful, unhappy.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. No.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Well, _I_ believe these things. Why have they not
|
|
made me unhappy?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Oh, well--temperament, of course! You never let THAT
|
|
escape from your scheme.
|
|
|
|
O.M. That is correct. If a man is born with an unhappy
|
|
temperament, nothing can make him happy; if he is born with a
|
|
happy temperament, nothing can make him unhappy.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. What--not even a degrading and heart-chilling system
|
|
of beliefs?
|
|
|
|
O.M. Beliefs? Mere beliefs? Mere convictions? They are
|
|
powerless. They strive in vain against inborn temperament.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. I can't believe that, and I don't.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Now you are speaking hastily. It shows that you have
|
|
not studiously examined the facts. Of all your intimates, which
|
|
one is the happiest? Isn't it Burgess?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Easily.
|
|
|
|
O.M. And which one is the unhappiest? Henry Adams?
|
|
|
|
Y.M. Without a question!
|
|
|
|
O.M. I know them well. They are extremes, abnormals; their
|
|
temperaments are as opposite as the poles. Their life-histories
|
|
are about alike--but look at the results! Their ages are about
|
|
the same--about around fifty. Burgess had always been buoyant,
|
|
hopeful, happy; Adams has always been cheerless, hopeless,
|
|
despondent. As young fellows both tried country journalism--and
|
|
failed. Burgess didn't seem to mind it; Adams couldn't smile, he
|
|
could only mourn and groan over what had happened and torture
|
|
himself with vain regrets for not having done so and so instead
|
|
of so and so--THEN he would have succeeded. They tried the law--
|
|
and failed. Burgess remained happy--because he couldn't help it.
|
|
Adams was wretched--because he couldn't help it. From that day
|
|
to this, those two men have gone on trying things and failing:
|
|
Burgess has come out happy and cheerful every time; Adams the
|
|
reverse. And we do absolutely know that these men's inborn
|
|
temperaments have remained unchanged through all the vicissitudes
|
|
of their material affairs. Let us see how it is with their
|
|
immaterials. Both have been zealous Democrats; both have been
|
|
zealous Republicans; both have been zealous Mugwumps. Burgess
|
|
has always found happiness and Adams unhappiness in these several
|
|
political beliefs and in their migrations out of them. Both of
|
|
these men have been Presbyterians, Universalists, Methodists,
|
|
Catholics--then Presbyterians again, then Methodists again.
|
|
Burgess has always found rest in these excursions, and Adams
|
|
unrest. They are trying Christian Science, now, with the
|
|
customary result, the inevitable result. No political or
|
|
religious belief can make Burgess unhappy or the other man happy.
|
|
I assure you it is purely a matter of temperament. Beliefs are
|
|
ACQUIREMENTS, temperaments are BORN; beliefs are subject to
|
|
change, nothing whatever can change temperament.
|
|
|
|
Y.M. You have instanced extreme temperaments.
|
|
|
|
O.M. Yes, the half-dozen others are modifications of the
|
|
extremes. But the law is the same. Where the temperament is
|
|
two-thirds happy, or two-thirds unhappy, no political or
|
|
religious beliefs can change the proportions. The vast majority
|
|
of temperaments are pretty equally balanced; the intensities are
|
|
absent, and this enables a nation to learn to accommodate itself
|
|
to its political and religious circumstances and like them, be
|
|
satisfied with them, at last prefer them. Nations do not THINK,
|
|
they only FEEL. They get their feelings at second hand through
|
|
their temperaments, not their brains. A nation can be brought--
|
|
by force of circumstances, not argument--to reconcile itself to
|
|
ANY KIND OF GOVERNMENT OR RELIGION THAT CAN BE DEVISED; in time
|
|
it will fit itself to the required conditions; later, it will
|
|
prefer them and will fiercely fight for them. As instances, you
|
|
have all history: the Greeks, the Romans, the Persians, the
|
|
Egyptians, the Russians, the Germans, the French, the English,
|
|
the Spaniards, the Americans, the South Americans, the Japanese,
|
|
the Chinese, the Hindus, the Turks--a thousand wild and tame
|
|
religions, every kind of government that can be thought of, from
|
|
tiger to house-cat, each nation KNOWING it has the only true
|
|
religion and the only sane system of government, each despising
|
|
all the others, each an ass and not suspecting it, each proud of
|
|
its fancied supremacy, each perfectly sure it is the pet of God,
|
|
each without undoubting confidence summoning Him to take command
|
|
in time of war, each surprised when He goes over to the enemy,
|
|
but by habit able to excuse it and resume compliments--in a word,
|
|
the whole human race content, always content, persistently
|
|
content, indestructibly content, happy, thankful, proud, NO
|
|
MATTER WHAT ITS RELIGION IS, NOR WHETHER ITS MASTER BE TIGER OR
|
|
HOUSE-CAT. Am I stating facts? You know I am. Is the human
|
|
race cheerful? You know it is. Considering what it can stand,
|
|
and be happy, you do me too much honor when you think that _I_
|
|
can place before it a system of plain cold facts that can take
|
|
the cheerfulness out of it. Nothing can do that. Everything has
|
|
been tried. Without success. I beg you not to be troubled.
|
|
|
|
-----------------------------------------------------------------
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
THE DEATH OF JEAN
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
The death of Jean Clemens occurred early in the morning of
|
|
December 24, 1909. Mr. Clemens was in great stress of mind when
|
|
I first saw him, but a few hours later I found him writing
|
|
steadily.
|
|
|
|
"I am setting it down," he said, "everything. It is a
|
|
relief to me to write it. It furnishes me an excuse for
|
|
thinking." At intervals during that day and the next I looked
|
|
in, and usually found him writing. Then on the evening of the
|
|
26th, when he knew that Jean had been laid to rest in Elmira, he
|
|
came to my room with the manuscript in his hand.
|
|
|
|
"I have finished it," he said; "read it. I can form no
|
|
opinion of it myself. If you think it worthy, some day--at the
|
|
proper time--it can end my autobiography. It is the final
|
|
chapter."
|
|
|
|
Four months later--almost to the day--(April 21st) he was
|
|
with Jean.
|
|
|
|
|
|
Albert Bigelow Paine.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Stormfield, Christmas Eve, 11 A.M., 1909.
|
|
|
|
|
|
JEAN IS DEAD!
|
|
|
|
Has any one ever tried to put upon paper all the little
|
|
happenings connected with a dear one--happenings of the twenty-
|
|
four hours preceding the sudden and unexpected death of that dear
|
|
one? Would a book contain them? Would two books contain them?
|
|
I think not. They pour into the mind in a flood. They are
|
|
little things that have been always happening every day, and were
|
|
always so unimportant and easily forgettable before--but now!
|
|
Now, how different! how precious they are, now dear, how
|
|
unforgettable, how pathetic, how sacred, how clothed with dignity!
|
|
|
|
Last night Jean, all flushed with splendid health, and I the
|
|
same, from the wholesome effects of my Bermuda holiday, strolled
|
|
hand in hand from the dinner-table and sat down in the library
|
|
and chatted, and planned, and discussed, cheerily and happily
|
|
(and how unsuspectingly!)--until nine--which is late for us--then
|
|
went upstairs, Jean's friendly German dog following. At my door
|
|
Jean said, "I can't kiss you good night, father: I have a cold,
|
|
and you could catch it." I bent and kissed her hand. She was
|
|
moved--I saw it in her eyes--and she impulsively kissed my hand
|
|
in return. Then with the usual gay "Sleep well, dear!" from
|
|
both, we parted.
|
|
|
|
At half past seven this morning I woke, and heard voices
|
|
outside my door. I said to myself, "Jean is starting on her
|
|
usual horseback flight to the station for the mail." Then Katy
|
|
[1] entered, stood quaking and gasping at my bedside a moment,
|
|
then found her tongue:
|
|
|
|
"MISS JEAN IS DEAD!"
|
|
|
|
Possibly I know now what the soldier feels when a bullet
|
|
crashes through his heart.
|
|
|
|
In her bathroom there she lay, the fair young creature,
|
|
stretched upon the floor and covered with a sheet. And looking
|
|
so placid, so natural, and as if asleep. We knew what had
|
|
happened. She was an epileptic: she had been seized with a
|
|
convulsion and heart failure in her bath. The doctor had to come
|
|
several miles. His efforts, like our previous ones, failed to
|
|
bring her back to life.
|
|
|
|
It is noon, now. How lovable she looks, how sweet and how
|
|
tranquil! It is a noble face, and full of dignity; and that was
|
|
a good heart that lies there so still.
|
|
|
|
In England, thirteen years ago, my wife and I were stabbed
|
|
to the heart with a cablegram which said, "Susy was mercifully
|
|
released today." I had to send a like shot to Clara, in Berlin,
|
|
this morning. With the peremptory addition, "You must not come
|
|
home." Clara and her husband sailed from here on the 11th of
|
|
this month. How will Clara bear it? Jean, from her babyhood,
|
|
was a worshiper of Clara.
|
|
|
|
Four days ago I came back from a month's holiday in Bermuda
|
|
in perfected health; but by some accident the reporters failed to
|
|
perceive this. Day before yesterday, letters and telegrams began
|
|
to arrive from friends and strangers which indicated that I was
|
|
supposed to be dangerously ill. Yesterday Jean begged me to
|
|
explain my case through the Associated Press. I said it was not
|
|
important enough; but she was distressed and said I must think of
|
|
Clara. Clara would see the report in the German papers, and as
|
|
she had been nursing her husband day and night for four months
|
|
[2] and was worn out and feeble, the shock might be disastrous.
|
|
There was reason in that; so I sent a humorous paragraph by
|
|
telephone to the Associated Press denying the "charge" that I was
|
|
"dying," and saying "I would not do such a thing at my time of
|
|
life."
|
|
|
|
Jean was a little troubled, and did not like to see me treat
|
|
the matter so lightly; but I said it was best to treat it so, for
|
|
there was nothing serious about it. This morning I sent the
|
|
sorrowful facts of this day's irremediable disaster to the
|
|
Associated Press. Will both appear in this evening's papers?--
|
|
the one so blithe, the other so tragic?
|
|
|
|
|
|
I lost Susy thirteen years ago; I lost her mother--her
|
|
incomparable mother!--five and a half years ago; Clara has gone
|
|
away to live in Europe; and now I have lost Jean. How poor I am,
|
|
who was once so rich! Seven months ago Mr. Roger died--one of
|
|
the best friends I ever had, and the nearest perfect, as man and
|
|
gentleman, I have yet met among my race; within the last six
|
|
weeks Gilder has passed away, and Laffan--old, old friends of
|
|
mine. Jean lies yonder, I sit here; we are strangers under our
|
|
own roof; we kissed hands good-by at this door last night--and it
|
|
was forever, we never suspecting it. She lies there, and I sit
|
|
here--writing, busying myself, to keep my heart from breaking.
|
|
How dazzlingly the sunshine is flooding the hills around! It is
|
|
like a mockery.
|
|
|
|
Seventy-four years ago twenty-four days ago. Seventy-four
|
|
years old yesterday. Who can estimate my age today?
|
|
|
|
I have looked upon her again. I wonder I can bear it. She
|
|
looks just as her mother looked when she lay dead in that
|
|
Florentine villa so long ago. The sweet placidity of death! it
|
|
is more beautiful than sleep.
|
|
|
|
I saw her mother buried. I said I would never endure that
|
|
horror again; that I would never again look into the grave of any
|
|
one dear to me. I have kept to that. They will take Jean from
|
|
this house tomorrow, and bear her to Elmira, New York, where lie
|
|
those of us that have been released, but I shall not follow.
|
|
|
|
Jean was on the dock when the ship came in, only four days
|
|
ago. She was at the door, beaming a welcome, when I reached this
|
|
house the next evening. We played cards, and she tried to teach
|
|
me a new game called "Mark Twain." We sat chatting cheerily in
|
|
the library last night, and she wouldn't let me look into the
|
|
loggia, where she was making Christmas preparations. She said
|
|
she would finish them in the morning, and then her little French
|
|
friend would arrive from New York--the surprise would follow; the
|
|
surprise she had been working over for days. While she was out
|
|
for a moment I disloyally stole a look. The loggia floor was
|
|
clothed with rugs and furnished with chairs and sofas; and the
|
|
uncompleted surprise was there: in the form of a Christmas tree
|
|
that was drenched with silver film in a most wonderful way; and
|
|
on a table was prodigal profusion of bright things which she was
|
|
going to hang upon it today. What desecrating hand will ever
|
|
banish that eloquent unfinished surprise from that place? Not
|
|
mine, surely. All these little matters have happened in the last
|
|
four days. "Little." Yes--THEN. But not now. Nothing she said
|
|
or thought or did is little now. And all the lavish humor!--what
|
|
is become of it? It is pathos, now. Pathos, and the thought of
|
|
it brings tears.
|
|
|
|
All these little things happened such a few hours ago--and
|
|
now she lies yonder. Lies yonder, and cares for nothing any
|
|
more. Strange--marvelous--incredible! I have had this
|
|
experience before; but it would still be incredible if I had had
|
|
it a thousand times.
|
|
|
|
|
|
"MISS JEAN IS DEAD!"
|
|
|
|
That is what Katy said. When I heard the door open behind
|
|
the bed's head without a preliminary knock, I supposed it was
|
|
Jean coming to kiss me good morning, she being the only person
|
|
who was used to entering without formalities.
|
|
|
|
And so--
|
|
|
|
I have been to Jean's parlor. Such a turmoil of Christmas
|
|
presents for servants and friends! They are everywhere; tables,
|
|
chairs, sofas, the floor--everything is occupied, and over-
|
|
occupied. It is many and many a year since I have seen the like.
|
|
In that ancient day Mrs. Clemens and I used to slip softly into
|
|
the nursery at midnight on Christmas Eve and look the array of
|
|
presents over. The children were little then. And now here is
|
|
Jean's parlor looking just as that nursery used to look. The
|
|
presents are not labeled--the hands are forever idle that would
|
|
have labeled them today. Jean's mother always worked herself
|
|
down with her Christmas preparations. Jean did the same
|
|
yesterday and the preceding days, and the fatigue has cost her
|
|
her life. The fatigue caused the convulsion that attacked her
|
|
this morning. She had had no attack for months.
|
|
|
|
|
|
Jean was so full of life and energy that she was constantly
|
|
is danger of overtaxing her strength. Every morning she was in
|
|
the saddle by half past seven, and off to the station for her
|
|
mail. She examined the letters and I distributed them: some to
|
|
her, some to Mr. Paine, the others to the stenographer and
|
|
myself. She dispatched her share and then mounted her horse
|
|
again and went around superintending her farm and her poultry the
|
|
rest of the day. Sometimes she played billiards with me after
|
|
dinner, but she was usually too tired to play, and went early to
|
|
bed.
|
|
|
|
Yesterday afternoon I told her about some plans I had been
|
|
devising while absent in Bermuda, to lighten her burdens. We
|
|
would get a housekeeper; also we would put her share of the
|
|
secretary-work into Mr. Paine's hands.
|
|
|
|
No--she wasn't willing. She had been making plans herself.
|
|
The matter ended in a compromise, I submitted. I always did.
|
|
She wouldn't audit the bills and let Paine fill out the checks--
|
|
she would continue to attend to that herself. Also, she would
|
|
continue to be housekeeper, and let Katy assist. Also, she would
|
|
continue to answer the letters of personal friends for me. Such
|
|
was the compromise. Both of us called it by that name, though I
|
|
was not able to see where my formidable change had been made.
|
|
|
|
However, Jean was pleased, and that was sufficient for me.
|
|
She was proud of being my secretary, and I was never able to persuade
|
|
her to give up any part of her share in that unlovely work.
|
|
|
|
In the talk last night I said I found everything going so
|
|
smoothly that if she were willing I would go back to Bermuda in
|
|
February and get blessedly out of the clash and turmoil again for
|
|
another month. She was urgent that I should do it, and said that
|
|
if I would put off the trip until March she would take Katy and
|
|
go with me. We struck hands upon that, and said it was settled.
|
|
I had a mind to write to Bermuda by tomorrow's ship and secure a
|
|
furnished house and servants. I meant to write the letter this
|
|
morning. But it will never be written, now.
|
|
|
|
For she lies yonder, and before her is another journey than that.
|
|
|
|
Night is closing down; the rim of the sun barely shows above the
|
|
sky-line of the hills.
|
|
|
|
I have been looking at that face again that was growing dearer
|
|
and dearer to me every day. I was getting acquainted with
|
|
Jean in these last nine months. She had been long an exile from
|
|
home when she came to us three-quarters of a year ago. She had
|
|
been shut up in sanitariums, many miles from us. How eloquent
|
|
glad and grateful she was to cross her father's threshold again!
|
|
|
|
Would I bring her back to life if I could do it? I would not.
|
|
If a word would do it, I would beg for strength to withhold
|
|
the word. And I would have the strength; I am sure of it. In
|
|
her loss I am almost bankrupt, and my life is a bitterness, but I
|
|
am content: for she has been enriched with the most precious of
|
|
all gifts--that gift which makes all other gifts mean and poor--
|
|
death. I have never wanted any released friend of mine restored
|
|
to life since I reached manhood. I felt in this way when Susy
|
|
passed away; and later my wife, and later Mr. Rogers. When Clara
|
|
met me at the station in New York and told me Mr. Rogers had died
|
|
suddenly that morning, my thought was, Oh, favorite of fortune--
|
|
fortunate all his long and lovely life--fortunate to his latest
|
|
moment! The reporters said there were tears of sorrow in my
|
|
eyes. True--but they were for ME, not for him. He had suffered
|
|
no loss. All the fortunes he had ever made before were poverty
|
|
compared with this one.
|
|
|
|
|
|
Why did I build this house, two years ago? To shelter this
|
|
vast emptiness? How foolish I was! But I shall stay in it. The
|
|
spirits of the dead hallow a house, for me. It was not so with
|
|
other members of the family. Susy died in the house we built in
|
|
Hartford. Mrs. Clemens would never enter it again. But it made
|
|
the house dearer to me. I have entered it once since, when it
|
|
was tenantless and silent and forlorn, but to me it was a holy
|
|
place and beautiful. It seemed to me that the spirits of the
|
|
dead were all about me, and would speak to me and welcome me if
|
|
they could: Livy, and Susy, and George, and Henry Robinson, and
|
|
Charles Dudley Warner. How good and kind they were, and how
|
|
lovable their lives! In fancy I could see them all again, I
|
|
could call the children back and hear them romp again with
|
|
George--that peerless black ex-slave and children's idol who came
|
|
one day--a flitting stranger--to wash windows, and stayed
|
|
eighteen years. Until he died. Clara and Jean would never enter
|
|
again the New York hotel which their mother had frequented in
|
|
earlier days. They could not bear it. But I shall stay in this
|
|
house. It is dearer to me tonight than ever it was before.
|
|
Jean's spirit will make it beautiful for me always. Her lonely
|
|
and tragic death--but I will not think of that now.
|
|
|
|
|
|
Jean's mother always devoted two or three weeks to Christmas
|
|
shopping, and was always physically exhausted when Christmas Eve
|
|
came. Jean was her very own child--she wore herself out present-
|
|
hunting in New York these latter days. Paine has just found on
|
|
her desk a long list of names--fifty, he thinks--people to whom
|
|
she sent presents last night. Apparently she forgot no one. And
|
|
Katy found there a roll of bank-notes, for the servants.
|
|
|
|
Her dog has been wandering about the grounds today,
|
|
comradeless and forlorn. I have seen him from the windows. She
|
|
got him from Germany. He has tall ears and looks exactly like a
|
|
wolf. He was educated in Germany, and knows no language but the
|
|
German. Jean gave him no orders save in that tongue. And so
|
|
when the burglar-alarm made a fierce clamor at midnight a
|
|
fortnight ago, the butler, who is French and knows no German,
|
|
tried in vain to interest the dog in the supposed burglar. Jean
|
|
wrote me, to Bermuda, about the incident. It was the last letter
|
|
I was ever to receive from her bright head and her competent hand.
|
|
The dog will not be neglected.
|
|
|
|
|
|
There was never a kinder heart than Jean's. From her
|
|
childhood up she always spent the most of her allowance on
|
|
charities of one kind or another. After she became secretary and
|
|
had her income doubled she spent her money upon these things with
|
|
a free hand. Mine too, I am glad and grateful to say.
|
|
|
|
She was a loyal friend to all animals, and she loved them
|
|
all, birds, beasts, and everything--even snakes--an inheritance
|
|
from me. She knew all the birds; she was high up in that lore.
|
|
She became a member of various humane societies when she was
|
|
still a little girl--both here and abroad--and she remained an
|
|
active member to the last. She founded two or three societies
|
|
for the protection of animals, here and in Europe.
|
|
|
|
She was an embarrassing secretary, for she fished my
|
|
correspondence out of the waste-basket and answered the letters.
|
|
She thought all letters deserved the courtesy of an answer.
|
|
Her mother brought her up in that kindly error.
|
|
|
|
She could write a good letter, and was swift with her pen.
|
|
She had but an indifferent ear music, but her tongue took to
|
|
languages with an easy facility. She never allowed her Italian,
|
|
French, and German to get rusty through neglect.
|
|
|
|
The telegrams of sympathy are flowing in, from far and wide,
|
|
now, just as they did in Italy five years and a half ago, when
|
|
this child's mother laid down her blameless life. They cannot
|
|
heal the hurt, but they take away some of the pain. When Jean
|
|
and I kissed hands and parted at my door last, how little did we
|
|
imagine that in twenty-two hours the telegraph would be bringing
|
|
words like these:
|
|
|
|
"From the bottom of our hearts we send out sympathy,
|
|
dearest of friends."
|
|
|
|
|
|
For many and many a day to come, wherever I go in this house,
|
|
remembrancers of Jean will mutely speak to me of her. Who can
|
|
count the number of them?
|
|
|
|
She was in exile two years with the hope of healing her
|
|
malady--epilepsy. There are no words to express how grateful I
|
|
am that she did not meet her fate in the hands of strangers, but
|
|
in the loving shelter of her own home.
|
|
|
|
|
|
"MISS JEAN IS DEAD!"
|
|
|
|
It is true. Jean is dead.
|
|
|
|
A month ago I was writing bubbling and hilarious articles
|
|
for magazines yet to appear, and now I am writing--this.
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHRISTMAS DAY. NOON.--Last night I went to Jean's room at
|
|
intervals, and turned back the sheet and looked at the peaceful
|
|
face, and kissed the cold brow, and remembered that heartbreaking
|
|
night in Florence so long ago, in that cavernous and silent vast
|
|
villa, when I crept downstairs so many times, and turned back a
|
|
sheet and looked at a face just like this one--Jean's mother's
|
|
face--and kissed a brow that was just like this one. And last
|
|
night I saw again what I had seen then--that strange and lovely
|
|
miracle--the sweet, soft contours of early maidenhood restored by
|
|
the gracious hand of death! When Jean's mother lay dead, all
|
|
trace of care, and trouble, and suffering, and the corroding
|
|
years had vanished out of the face, and I was looking again upon
|
|
it as I had known and worshipped it in its young bloom and beauty
|
|
a whole generation before.
|
|
|
|
About three in the morning, while wandering about the house
|
|
in the deep silences, as one dies in times like these, when there
|
|
is a dumb sense that something has been lost that will never be
|
|
found again, yet must be sought, if only for the employment the
|
|
useless seeking gives, I came upon Jean's dog in the hall
|
|
downstairs, and noted that he did not spring to greet me,
|
|
according to his hospitable habit, but came slow and sorrowfully;
|
|
also I remembered that he had not visited Jean's apartment since
|
|
the tragedy. Poor fellow, did he know? I think so. Always when
|
|
Jean was abroad in the open he was with her; always when she was
|
|
in the house he was with her, in the night as well as in the day.
|
|
Her parlor was his bedroom. Whenever I happened upon him on the
|
|
ground floor he always followed me about, and when I went
|
|
upstairs he went too--in a tumultuous gallop. But now it was
|
|
different: after patting him a little I went to the library--he
|
|
remained behind; when I went upstairs he did not follow me, save
|
|
with his wistful eyes. He has wonderful eyes--big, and kind, and
|
|
eloquent. He can talk with them. He is a beautiful creature,
|
|
and is of the breed of the New York police-dogs. I do not like
|
|
dogs, because they bark when there is no occasion for it; but I
|
|
have liked this one from the beginning, because he belonged to
|
|
Jean, and because he never barks except when there is occasion--
|
|
which is not oftener than twice a week.
|
|
|
|
In my wanderings I visited Jean's parlor. On a shelf I
|
|
found a pile of my books, and I knew what it meant. She was
|
|
waiting for me to come home from Bermuda and autograph them, then
|
|
she would send them away. If I only knew whom she intended them
|
|
for! But I shall never know. I will keep them. Her hand has
|
|
touched them--it is an accolade--they are noble, now.
|
|
|
|
And in a closet she had hidden a surprise for me--a thing I
|
|
have often wished I owned: a noble big globe. I couldn't see it
|
|
for the tears. She will never know the pride I take in it, and
|
|
the pleasure. Today the mails are full of loving remembrances
|
|
for her: full of those old, old kind words she loved so well,
|
|
"Merry Christmas to Jean!" If she could only have lived one day
|
|
longer!
|
|
|
|
At last she ran out of money, and would not use mine. So
|
|
she sent to one of those New York homes for poor girls all the
|
|
clothes she could spare--and more, most likely.
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHRISTMAS NIGHT.--This afternoon they took her away from her
|
|
room. As soon as I might, I went down to the library, and there
|
|
she lay, in her coffin, dressed in exactly the same clothes she
|
|
wore when she stood at the other end of the same room on the 6th
|
|
of October last, as Clara's chief bridesmaid. Her face was
|
|
radiant with happy excitement then; it was the same face now,
|
|
with the dignity of death and the peace of God upon it.
|
|
|
|
They told me the first mourner to come was the dog. He came
|
|
uninvited, and stood up on his hind legs and rested his fore paws
|
|
upon the trestle, and took a last long look at the face that was
|
|
so dear to him, then went his way as silently as he had come.
|
|
HE KNOWS.
|
|
|
|
At mid-afternoon it began to snow. The pity of it--that
|
|
Jean could not see it! She so loved the snow.
|
|
|
|
The snow continued to fall. At six o'clock the hearse drew
|
|
up to the door to bear away its pathetic burden. As they lifted
|
|
the casket, Paine began playing on the orchestrelle Schubert's
|
|
"Impromptu," which was Jean's favorite. Then he played the
|
|
Intermezzo; that was for Susy; then he played the Largo; that was
|
|
for their mother. He did this at my request. Elsewhere in my
|
|
Autobiography I have told how the Intermezzo and the Largo came
|
|
to be associated in my heart with Susy and Livy in their last
|
|
hours in this life.
|
|
|
|
From my windows I saw the hearse and the carriages wind
|
|
along the road and gradually grow vague and spectral in the
|
|
falling snow, and presently disappear. Jean was gone out of my
|
|
life, and would not come back any more. Jervis, the cousin she
|
|
had played with when they were babies together--he and her
|
|
beloved old Katy--were conducting her to her distant childhood
|
|
home, where she will lie by her mother's side once more, in the
|
|
company of Susy and Langdon.
|
|
|
|
|
|
DECEMBER 26TH. The dog came to see me at eight o'clock this
|
|
morning. He was very affectionate, poor orphan! My room will be
|
|
his quarters hereafter.
|
|
|
|
The storm raged all night. It has raged all the morning.
|
|
The snow drives across the landscape in vast clouds, superb,
|
|
sublime--and Jean not here to see.
|
|
|
|
|
|
2:30 P.M.--It is the time appointed. The funeral has begun.
|
|
Four hundred miles away, but I can see it all, just as if I were
|
|
there. The scene is the library in the Langdon homestead.
|
|
Jean's coffin stands where her mother and I stood, forty years
|
|
ago, and were married; and where Susy's coffin stood thirteen
|
|
years ago; where her mother's stood five years and a half ago;
|
|
and where mine will stand after a little time.
|
|
|
|
|
|
FIVE O'CLOCK.--It is all over.
|
|
|
|
|
|
When Clara went away two weeks ago to live in Europe, it was
|
|
hard, but I could bear it, for I had Jean left. I said WE would
|
|
be a family. We said we would be close comrades and happy--just
|
|
we two. That fair dream was in my mind when Jean met me at the
|
|
steamer last Monday; it was in my mind when she received me at
|
|
the door last Tuesday evening. We were together; WE WERE A
|
|
FAMILY! the dream had come true--oh, precisely true, contentedly,
|
|
true, satisfyingly true! and remained true two whole days.
|
|
|
|
And now? Now Jean is in her grave!
|
|
|
|
In the grave--if I can believe it. God rest her sweet
|
|
spirit!
|
|
|
|
-----
|
|
|
|
1. Katy Leary, who had been in the service of the Clemens family
|
|
for twenty-nine years.
|
|
|
|
2. Mr. Gabrilowitsch had been operated on for appendicitis.
|
|
|
|
-----------------------------------------------------------------
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
THE TURNING-POINT OF MY LIFE
|
|
|
|
|
|
I
|
|
|
|
If I understand the idea, the BAZAR invites several of us to
|
|
write upon the above text. It means the change in my life's
|
|
course which introduced what must be regarded by me as the most
|
|
IMPORTANT condition of my career. But it also implies--without
|
|
intention, perhaps--that that turning-point ITSELF was the
|
|
creator of the new condition. This gives it too much
|
|
distinction, too much prominence, too much credit. It is only
|
|
the LAST link in a very long chain of turning-points commissioned
|
|
to produce the cardinal result; it is not any more important than
|
|
the humblest of its ten thousand predecessors. Each of the ten
|
|
thousand did its appointed share, on its appointed date, in
|
|
forwarding the scheme, and they were all necessary; to have left
|
|
out any one of them would have defeated the scheme and brought
|
|
about SOME OTHER result. It know we have a fashion of saying
|
|
"such and such an event was the turning-point in my life," but we
|
|
shouldn't say it. We should merely grant that its place as LAST
|
|
link in the chain makes it the most CONSPICUOUS link; in real
|
|
importance it has no advantage over any one of its predecessors.
|
|
|
|
Perhaps the most celebrated turning-point recorded in
|
|
history was the crossing of the Rubicon. Suetonius says:
|
|
|
|
|
|
Coming up with his troops on the banks of the Rubicon, he
|
|
halted for a while, and, revolving in his mind the importance of
|
|
the step he was on the point of taking, he turned to those about
|
|
him and said, "We may still retreat; but if we pass this little
|
|
bridge, nothing is left for us but to fight it out in arms."
|
|
|
|
|
|
This was a stupendously important moment. And all the
|
|
incidents, big and little, of Caesar's previous life had been
|
|
leading up to it, stage by stage, link by link. This was the
|
|
LAST link--merely the last one, and no bigger than the others;
|
|
but as we gaze back at it through the inflating mists of our
|
|
imagination, it looks as big as the orbit of Neptune.
|
|
|
|
You, the reader, have a PERSONAL interest in that link, and
|
|
so have I; so has the rest of the human race. It was one of the
|
|
links in your life-chain, and it was one of the links in mine.
|
|
We may wait, now, with baited breath, while Caesar reflects.
|
|
Your fate and mine are involved in his decision.
|
|
|
|
While he was thus hesitating, the following incident
|
|
occurred. A person remarked for his noble mien and graceful
|
|
aspect appeared close at hand, sitting and playing upon a pipe.
|
|
When not only the shepherds, but a number of soldiers also,
|
|
flocked to listen to him, and some trumpeters among them, he
|
|
snatched a trumpet from one of them, ran to the river with it,
|
|
and, sounding the advance with a piercing blast, crossed to the
|
|
other side. Upon this, Caesar exclaimed: "Let us go whither the
|
|
omens of the gods and the iniquity of our enemies call up.
|
|
THE DIE IS CAST."
|
|
|
|
So he crossed--and changed the future of the whole human
|
|
race, for all time. But that stranger was a link in Caesar's
|
|
life-chain, too; and a necessary one. We don't know his name, we
|
|
never hear of him again; he was very casual; he acts like an
|
|
accident; but he was no accident, he was there by compulsion of
|
|
HIS life-chain, to blow the electrifying blast that was to make
|
|
up Caesar's mind for him, and thence go piping down the aisles of
|
|
history forever.
|
|
|
|
If the stranger hadn't been there! But he WAS. And Caesar
|
|
crossed. With such results! Such vast events--each a link in
|
|
the HUMAN RACE'S life-chain; each event producing the next one,
|
|
and that one the next one, and so on: the destruction of the
|
|
republic; the founding of the empire; the breaking up of the
|
|
empire; the rise of Christianity upon its ruins; the spread of
|
|
the religion to other lands--and so on; link by link took its
|
|
appointed place at its appointed time, the discovery of America
|
|
being one of them; our Revolution another; the inflow of English
|
|
and other immigrants another; their drift westward (my ancestors
|
|
among them) another; the settlement of certain of them in
|
|
Missouri, which resulted in ME. For I was one of the unavoidable
|
|
results of the crossing of the Rubicon. If the stranger, with
|
|
his trumpet blast, had stayed away (which he COULDN'T, for he was
|
|
the appointed link) Caesar would not have crossed. What would
|
|
have happened, in that case, we can never guess. We only know
|
|
that the things that did happen would not have happened. They
|
|
might have been replaced by equally prodigious things, of course,
|
|
but their nature and results are beyond our guessing. But the
|
|
matter that interests me personally is that I would not be HERE
|
|
now, but somewhere else; and probably black--there is no telling.
|
|
Very well, I am glad he crossed. And very really and thankfully
|
|
glad, too, though I never cared anything about it before.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
II
|
|
|
|
To me, the most important feature of my life is its literary
|
|
feature. I have been professionally literary something more than
|
|
forty years. There have been many turning-points in my life, but
|
|
the one that was the link in the chain appointed to conduct me to
|
|
the literary guild is the most CONSPICUOUS link in that chain.
|
|
BECAUSE it was the last one. It was not any more important than
|
|
its predecessors. All the other links have an inconspicuous
|
|
look, except the crossing of the Rubicon; but as factors in
|
|
making me literary they are all of the one size, the crossing of
|
|
the Rubicon included.
|
|
|
|
I know how I came to be literary, and I will tell the steps
|
|
that lead up to it and brought it about.
|
|
|
|
The crossing of the Rubicon was not the first one, it was
|
|
hardly even a recent one; I should have to go back ages before
|
|
Caesar's day to find the first one. To save space I will go back
|
|
only a couple of generations and start with an incident of my
|
|
boyhood. When I was twelve and a half years old, my father died.
|
|
It was in the spring. The summer came, and brought with it an
|
|
epidemic of measles. For a time a child died almost every day.
|
|
The village was paralyzed with fright, distress, despair.
|
|
Children that were not smitten with the disease were imprisoned
|
|
in their homes to save them from the infection. In the homes
|
|
there were no cheerful faces, there was no music, there was no
|
|
singing but of solemn hymns, no voice but of prayer, no romping
|
|
was allowed, no noise, no laughter, the family moved spectrally
|
|
about on tiptoe, in a ghostly hush. I was a prisoner. My soul
|
|
was steeped in this awful dreariness--and in fear. At some time
|
|
or other every day and every night a sudden shiver shook me to
|
|
the marrow, and I said to myself, "There, I've got it! and I
|
|
shall die." Life on these miserable terms was not worth living,
|
|
and at last I made up my mind to get the disease and have it
|
|
over, one way or the other. I escaped from the house and went to
|
|
the house of a neighbor where a playmate of mine was very ill
|
|
with the malady. When the chance offered I crept into his room
|
|
and got into bed with him. I was discovered by his mother and
|
|
sent back into captivity. But I had the disease; they could not
|
|
take that from me. I came near to dying. The whole village was
|
|
interested, and anxious, and sent for news of me every day; and
|
|
not only once a day, but several times. Everybody believed I
|
|
would die; but on the fourteenth day a change came for the worse
|
|
and they were disappointed.
|
|
|
|
This was a turning-point of my life. (Link number one.)
|
|
For when I got well my mother closed my school career and
|
|
apprenticed me to a printer. She was tired of trying to keep me
|
|
out of mischief, and the adventure of the measles decided her to
|
|
put me into more masterful hands than hers.
|
|
|
|
I became a printer, and began to add one link after another
|
|
to the chain which was to lead me into the literary profession.
|
|
A long road, but I could not know that; and as I did not know
|
|
what its goal was, or even that it had one, I was indifferent.
|
|
Also contented.
|
|
|
|
A young printer wanders around a good deal, seeking and
|
|
finding work; and seeking again, when necessity commands. N. B.
|
|
Necessity is a CIRCUMSTANCE; Circumstance is man's master--and
|
|
when Circumstance commands, he must obey; he may argue the
|
|
matter--that is his privilege, just as it is the honorable
|
|
privilege of a falling body to argue with the attraction of
|
|
gravitation--but it won't do any good, he must OBEY. I wandered
|
|
for ten years, under the guidance and dictatorship of
|
|
Circumstance, and finally arrived in a city of Iowa, where I
|
|
worked several months. Among the books that interested me in
|
|
those days was one about the Amazon. The traveler told an
|
|
alluring tale of his long voyage up the great river from Para to
|
|
the sources of the Madeira, through the heart of an enchanted
|
|
land, a land wastefully rich in tropical wonders, a romantic land
|
|
where all the birds and flowers and animals were of the museum
|
|
varieties, and where the alligator and the crocodile and the
|
|
monkey seemed as much at home as if they were in the Zoo. Also,
|
|
he told an astonishing tale about COCA, a vegetable product of
|
|
miraculous powers, asserting that it was so nourishing and so
|
|
strength-giving that the native of the mountains of the Madeira
|
|
region would tramp up hill and down all day on a pinch of
|
|
powdered coca and require no other sustenance.
|
|
|
|
I was fired with a longing to ascend the Amazon. Also with
|
|
a longing to open up a trade in coca with all the world. During
|
|
months I dreamed that dream, and tried to contrive ways to get to
|
|
Para and spring that splendid enterprise upon an unsuspecting
|
|
planet. But all in vain. A person may PLAN as much as he wants
|
|
to, but nothing of consequence is likely to come of it until the
|
|
magician CIRCUMSTANCE steps in and takes the matter off his
|
|
hands. At last Circumstance came to my help. It was in this
|
|
way. Circumstance, to help or hurt another man, made him lose a
|
|
fifty-dollar bill in the street; and to help or hurt me, made me
|
|
find it. I advertised the find, and left for the Amazon the same
|
|
day. This was another turning-point, another link.
|
|
|
|
Could Circumstance have ordered another dweller in that town
|
|
to go to the Amazon and open up a world-trade in coca on a fifty-
|
|
dollar basis and been obeyed? No, I was the only one. There
|
|
were other fools there--shoals and shoals of them--but they were
|
|
not of my kind. I was the only one of my kind.
|
|
|
|
Circumstance is powerful, but it cannot work alone; it has
|
|
to have a partner. Its partner is man's TEMPERAMENT--his natural
|
|
disposition. His temperament is not his invention, it is BORN in
|
|
him, and he has no authority over it, neither is he responsible
|
|
for its acts. He cannot change it, nothing can change it,
|
|
nothing can modify it--except temporarily. But it won't stay
|
|
modified. It is permanent, like the color of the man's eyes and
|
|
the shape of his ears. Blue eyes are gray in certain unusual lights;
|
|
but they resume their natural color when that stress is removed.
|
|
|
|
A Circumstance that will coerce one man will have no effect
|
|
upon a man of a different temperament. If Circumstance had
|
|
thrown the bank-note in Caesar's way, his temperament would not
|
|
have made him start for the Amazon. His temperament would have
|
|
compelled him to do something with the money, but not that. It
|
|
might have made him advertise the note--and WAIT. We can't tell.
|
|
Also, it might have made him go to New York and buy into the
|
|
Government, with results that would leave Tweed nothing to learn
|
|
when it came his turn.
|
|
|
|
Very well, Circumstance furnished the capital, and my
|
|
temperament told me what to do with it. Sometimes a temperament
|
|
is an ass. When that is the case of the owner of it is an ass,
|
|
too, and is going to remain one. Training, experience,
|
|
association, can temporarily so polish him, improve him, exalt
|
|
him that people will think he is a mule, but they will be
|
|
mistaken. Artificially he IS a mule, for the time being, but at
|
|
bottom he is an ass yet, and will remain one.
|
|
|
|
By temperament I was the kind of person that DOES things.
|
|
Does them, and reflects afterward. So I started for the Amazon
|
|
without reflecting and without asking any questions. That was
|
|
more than fifty years ago. In all that time my temperament has
|
|
not changed, by even a shade. I have been punished many and many
|
|
a time, and bitterly, for doing things and reflecting afterward,
|
|
but these tortures have been of no value to me; I still do the
|
|
thing commanded by Circumstance and Temperament, and reflect
|
|
afterward. Always violently. When I am reflecting, on these
|
|
occasions, even deaf persons can hear me think.
|
|
|
|
I went by the way of Cincinnati, and down the Ohio and
|
|
Mississippi. My idea was to take ship, at New Orleans, for Para.
|
|
In New Orleans I inquired, and found there was no ship leaving
|
|
for Para. Also, that there never had BEEN one leaving for Para.
|
|
I reflected. A policeman came and asked me what I was doing, and
|
|
I told him. He made me move on, and said if he caught me
|
|
reflecting in the public street again he would run me in.
|
|
|
|
After a few days I was out of money. Then Circumstance
|
|
arrived, with another turning-point of my life--a new link. On
|
|
my way down, I had made the acquaintance of a pilot. I begged
|
|
him to teach me the river, and he consented. I became a pilot.
|
|
|
|
By and by Circumstance came again--introducing the Civil
|
|
War, this time, in order to push me ahead another stage or two
|
|
toward the literary profession. The boats stopped running, my
|
|
livelihood was gone.
|
|
|
|
Circumstance came to the rescue with a new turning-point and
|
|
a fresh link. My brother was appointed secretary to the new
|
|
Territory of Nevada, and he invited me to go with him and help
|
|
him in his office. I accepted.
|
|
|
|
In Nevada, Circumstance furnished me the silver fever and I
|
|
went into the mines to make a fortune, as I supposed; but that
|
|
was not the idea. The idea was to advance me another step toward
|
|
literature. For amusement I scribbled things for the Virginia
|
|
City ENTERPRISE. One isn't a printer ten years without setting
|
|
up acres of good and bad literature, and learning--unconsciously
|
|
at first, consciously later--to discriminate between the two,
|
|
within his mental limitations; and meantime he is unconsciously
|
|
acquiring what is called a "style." One of my efforts attracted
|
|
attention, and the ENTERPRISE sent for me and put me on its staff.
|
|
|
|
And so I became a journalist--another link. By and by Circumstance
|
|
and the Sacramento UNION sent me to the Sandwich Islands for five
|
|
or six months, to write up sugar. I did it; and threw in a good
|
|
deal of extraneous matter that hadn't anything to do with sugar.
|
|
But it was this extraneous matter that helped me to another link.
|
|
|
|
It made me notorious, and San Francisco invited me to lecture.
|
|
Which I did. And profitably. I had long had a desire to travel
|
|
and see the world, and now Circumstance had most kindly and
|
|
unexpectedly hurled me upon the platform and furnished me the means.
|
|
So I joined the "Quaker City Excursion."
|
|
|
|
When I returned to America, Circumstance was waiting on the pier--
|
|
with the LAST link--the conspicuous, the consummating, the
|
|
victorious link: I was asked to WRITE A BOOK, and I did it, and
|
|
called it THE INNOCENTS ABROAD. Thus I became at last a member
|
|
of the literary guild. That was forty-two years ago, and I have
|
|
been a member ever since. Leaving the Rubicon incident away back
|
|
where it belongs, I can say with truth that the reason I am in
|
|
the literary profession is because I had the measles when I was
|
|
twelve years old.
|
|
|
|
|
|
III
|
|
|
|
Now what interests me, as regards these details, is not the
|
|
details themselves, but the fact that none of them was foreseen
|
|
by me, none of them was planned by me, I was the author of none
|
|
of them. Circumstance, working in harness with my temperament,
|
|
created them all and compelled them all. I often offered help,
|
|
and with the best intentions, but it was rejected--as a rule,
|
|
uncourteously. I could never plan a thing and get it to come out
|
|
the way I planned it. It came out some other way--some way I had
|
|
not counted upon.
|
|
|
|
And so I do not admire the human being--as an intellectual
|
|
marvel--as much as I did when I was young, and got him out of
|
|
books, and did not know him personally. When I used to read that
|
|
such and such a general did a certain brilliant thing, I believed
|
|
it. Whereas it was not so. Circumstance did it by help of his
|
|
temperament. The circumstances would have failed of effect with
|
|
a general of another temperament: he might see the chance, but
|
|
lose the advantage by being by nature too slow or too quick or
|
|
too doubtful. Once General Grant was asked a question about a
|
|
matter which had been much debated by the public and the
|
|
newspapers; he answered the question without any hesitancy.
|
|
"General, who planned the the march through Georgia?" "The
|
|
enemy!" He added that the enemy usually makes your plans for
|
|
you. He meant that the enemy by neglect or through force of
|
|
circumstances leaves an opening for you, and you see your chance
|
|
and take advantage of it.
|
|
|
|
Circumstances do the planning for us all, no doubt, by help
|
|
of our temperaments. I see no great difference between a man and
|
|
a watch, except that the man is conscious and the watch isn't,
|
|
and the man TRIES to plan things and the watch doesn't. The
|
|
watch doesn't wind itself and doesn't regulate itself--these
|
|
things are done exteriorly. Outside influences, outside
|
|
circumstances, wind the MAN and regulate him. Left to himself,
|
|
he wouldn't get regulated at all, and the sort of time he would
|
|
keep would not be valuable. Some rare men are wonderful watches,
|
|
with gold case, compensation balance, and all those things, and
|
|
some men are only simple and sweet and humble Waterburys. I am a
|
|
Waterbury. A Waterbury of that kind, some say.
|
|
|
|
A nation is only an individual multiplied. It makes plans
|
|
and Circumstances comes and upsets them--or enlarges them. Some
|
|
patriots throw the tea overboard; some other patriots destroy a
|
|
Bastille. The PLANS stop there; then Circumstance comes in,
|
|
quite unexpectedly, and turns these modest riots into a revolution.
|
|
|
|
And there was poor Columbus. He elaborated a deep plan to
|
|
find a new route to an old country. Circumstance revised his
|
|
plan for him, and he found a new WORLD. And HE gets the credit
|
|
of it to this day. He hadn't anything to do with it.
|
|
|
|
Necessarily the scene of the real turning-point of my life
|
|
(and of yours) was the Garden of Eden. It was there that the
|
|
first link was forged of the chain that was ultimately to lead to
|
|
the emptying of me into the literary guild. Adam's TEMPERAMENT
|
|
was the first command the Deity ever issued to a human being on
|
|
this planet. And it was the only command Adam would NEVER be
|
|
able to disobey. It said, "Be weak, be water, be characterless,
|
|
be cheaply persuadable." The latter command, to let the fruit
|
|
alone, was certain to be disobeyed. Not by Adam himself, but by
|
|
his TEMPERAMENT--which he did not create and had no authority
|
|
over. For the TEMPERAMENT is the man; the thing tricked out with
|
|
clothes and named Man is merely its Shadow, nothing more. The
|
|
law of the tiger's temperament is, Thou shalt kill; the law of
|
|
the sheep's temperament is Thou shalt not kill. To issue later
|
|
commands requiring the tiger to let the fat stranger alone, and
|
|
requiring the sheep to imbue its hands in the blood of the lion
|
|
is not worth while, for those commands CAN'T be obeyed. They
|
|
would invite to violations of the law of TEMPERAMENT, which is
|
|
supreme, and take precedence of all other authorities. I cannot
|
|
help feeling disappointed in Adam and Eve. That is, in their
|
|
temperaments. Not in THEM, poor helpless young creatures--
|
|
afflicted with temperaments made out of butter; which butter was
|
|
commanded to get into contact with fire and BE MELTED. What I
|
|
cannot help wishing is, that Adam had been postponed, and Martin
|
|
Luther and Joan of Arc put in their place--that splendid pair
|
|
equipped with temperaments not made of butter, but of asbestos.
|
|
By neither sugary persuasions nor by hell fire could Satan have
|
|
beguiled THEM to eat the apple. There would have been results!
|
|
Indeed, yes. The apple would be intact today; there would be no
|
|
human race; there would be no YOU; there would be no ME. And the
|
|
old, old creation-dawn scheme of ultimately launching me into the
|
|
literary guild would have been defeated.
|
|
|
|
------------------------------------------------------------------
|
|
|
|
|
|
HOW TO MAKE HISTORY DATES STICK
|
|
|
|
These chapters are for children, and I shall try to make the
|
|
words large enough to command respect. In the hope that you are
|
|
listening, and that you have confidence in me, I will proceed.
|
|
Dates are difficult things to acquire; and after they are
|
|
acquired it is difficult to keep them in the head. But they are
|
|
very valuable. They are like the cattle-pens of a ranch--they
|
|
shut in the several brands of historical cattle, each within its
|
|
own fence, and keep them from getting mixed together. Dates are
|
|
hard to remember because they consist of figures; figures are
|
|
monotonously unstriking in appearance, and they don't take hold,
|
|
they form no pictures, and so they give the eye no chance to
|
|
help. Pictures are the thing. Pictures can make dates stick.
|
|
They can make nearly anything stick--particularly IF YOU MAKE THE
|
|
PICTURES YOURSELF. Indeed, that is the great point--make the
|
|
pictures YOURSELF. I know about this from experience. Thirty
|
|
years ago I was delivering a memorized lecture every night, and
|
|
every night I had to help myself with a page of notes to keep
|
|
from getting myself mixed. The notes consisted of beginnings of
|
|
sentences, and were eleven in number, and they ran something like
|
|
this:
|
|
|
|
"IN THAT REGION THE WEATHER--"
|
|
|
|
"AT THAT TIME IT WAS A CUSTOM--"
|
|
|
|
"BUT IN CALIFORNIA ONE NEVER HEARD--"
|
|
|
|
Eleven of them. They initialed the brief divisions of the
|
|
lecture and protected me against skipping. But they all looked
|
|
about alike on the page; they formed no picture; I had them by
|
|
heart, but I could never with certainty remember the order of
|
|
their succession; therefore I always had to keep those notes by
|
|
me and look at them every little while. Once I mislaid them; you
|
|
will not be able to imagine the terrors of that evening. I now
|
|
saw that I must invent some other protection. So I got ten of
|
|
the initial letters by heart in their proper order--I, A, B, and
|
|
so on--and I went on the platform the next night with these
|
|
marked in ink on my ten finger-nails. But it didn't answer. I
|
|
kept track of the figures for a while; then I lost it, and after
|
|
that I was never quite sure which finger I had used last. I
|
|
couldn't lick off a letter after using it, for while that would
|
|
have made success certain it also would have provoked too much
|
|
curiosity. There was curiosity enough without that. To the
|
|
audience I seemed more interested in my fingernails than I was in
|
|
my subject; one or two persons asked me afterward what was the
|
|
matter with my hands.
|
|
|
|
It was now that the idea of pictures occurred to me; then my
|
|
troubles passed away. In two minutes I made six pictures with a
|
|
pen, and they did the work of the eleven catch-sentences, and did
|
|
it perfectly. I threw the pictures away as soon as they were
|
|
made, for I was sure I could shut my eyes and see them any time.
|
|
That was a quarter of a century ago; the lecture vanished out of
|
|
my head more than twenty years ago, but I would rewrite it from
|
|
the pictures--for they remain. Here are three of them: (Fig. 1).
|
|
|
|
The first one is a haystack--below it a rattlesnake--and it
|
|
told me where to begin to talk ranch-life in Carson Valley. The
|
|
second one told me where to begin the talk about a strange and
|
|
violent wind that used to burst upon Carson City from the Sierra
|
|
Nevadas every afternoon at two o'clock and try to blow the town
|
|
away. The third picture, as you easily perceive, is lightning;
|
|
its duty was to remind me when it was time to begin to talk about
|
|
San Francisco weather, where there IS no lightning--nor thunder,
|
|
either--and it never failed me.
|
|
|
|
I will give you a valuable hint. When a man is making a
|
|
speech and you are to follow him don't jot down notes to speak
|
|
from, jot down PICTURES. It is awkward and embarrassing to have
|
|
to keep referring to notes; and besides it breaks up your speech
|
|
and makes it ragged and non-coherent; but you can tear up your
|
|
pictures as soon as you have made them--they will stay fresh and
|
|
strong in your memory in the order and sequence in which you
|
|
scratched them down. And many will admire to see what a good
|
|
memory you are furnished with, when perhaps your memory is not
|
|
any better than mine.
|
|
|
|
Sixteen years ago when my children were little creatures the
|
|
governess was trying to hammer some primer histories into their
|
|
heads. Part of this fun--if you like to call it that--consisted
|
|
in the memorizing of the accession dates of the thirty-seven
|
|
personages who had ruled England from the Conqueror down. These
|
|
little people found it a bitter, hard contract. It was all
|
|
dates, and all looked alike, and they wouldn't stick. Day after
|
|
day of the summer vacation dribbled by, and still the kings held
|
|
the fort; the children couldn't conquer any six of them.
|
|
|
|
With my lecture experience in mind I was aware that I could
|
|
invent some way out of the trouble with pictures, but I hoped a
|
|
way could be found which would let them romp in the open air
|
|
while they learned the kings. I found it, and they mastered
|
|
all the monarchs in a day or two.
|
|
|
|
The idea was to make them SEE the reigns with their eyes;
|
|
that would be a large help. We were at the farm then. From the
|
|
house-porch the grounds sloped gradually down to the lower fence
|
|
and rose on the right to the high ground where my small work-den
|
|
stood. A carriage-road wound through the grounds and up the
|
|
hill. I staked it out with the English monarchs, beginning with
|
|
the Conqueror, and you could stand on the porch and clearly see
|
|
every reign and its length, from the Conquest down to Victoria,
|
|
then in the forty-sixth year of her reign--EIGHT HUNDRED AND
|
|
SEVENTEEN YEARS OF English history under your eye at once!
|
|
|
|
English history was an unusually live topic in America just
|
|
then. The world had suddenly realized that while it was not
|
|
noticing the Queen had passed Henry VIII., passed Henry VI. and
|
|
Elizabeth, and gaining in length every day. Her reign had
|
|
entered the list of the long ones; everybody was interested now--
|
|
it was watching a race. Would she pass the long Edward? There
|
|
was a possibility of it. Would she pass the long Henry?
|
|
Doubtful, most people said. The long George? Impossible!
|
|
Everybody said it. But we have lived to see her leave him two
|
|
years behind.
|
|
|
|
I measured off 817 feet of the roadway, a foot representing
|
|
a year, and at the beginning and end of each reign I drove a
|
|
three-foot white-pine stake in the turf by the roadside and wrote
|
|
the name and dates on it. Abreast the middle of the porch-front
|
|
stood a great granite flower-vase overflowing with a cataract of
|
|
bright-yellow flowers--I can't think of their name. The vase of
|
|
William the Conqueror. We put his name on it and his accession
|
|
date, 1066. We started from that and measured off twenty-one
|
|
feet of the road, and drove William Rufus's state; then thirteen
|
|
feet and drove the first Henry's stake; then thirty-five feet and
|
|
drove Stephen's; then nineteen feet, which brought us just past
|
|
the summer-house on the left; then we staked out thirty-five,
|
|
ten, and seventeen for the second Henry and Richard and John;
|
|
turned the curve and entered upon just what was needed for Henry
|
|
III.--a level, straight stretch of fifty-six feet of road without
|
|
a crinkle in it. And it lay exactly in front of the house, in
|
|
the middle of the grounds. There couldn't have been a better
|
|
place for that long reign; you could stand on the porch and see
|
|
those two wide-apart stakes almost with your eyes shut. (Fig. 2.)
|
|
|
|
That isn't the shape of the road--I have bunched it up like
|
|
that to save room. The road had some great curves in it, but
|
|
their gradual sweep was such that they were no mar to history.
|
|
No, in our road one could tell at a glance who was who by the size
|
|
of the vacancy between stakes--with LOCALITY to help, of course.
|
|
|
|
Although I am away off here in a Swedish village [1] and
|
|
those stakes did not stand till the snow came, I can see them
|
|
today as plainly as ever; and whenever I think of an English
|
|
monarch his stakes rise before me of their own accord and I
|
|
notice the large or small space which he takes up on our road.
|
|
Are your kings spaced off in your mind? When you think of
|
|
Richard III. and of James II. do the durations of their reigns
|
|
seem about alike to you? It isn't so to me; I always notice that
|
|
there's a foot's difference. When you think of Henry III. do you
|
|
see a great long stretch of straight road? I do; and just at the
|
|
end where it joins on to Edward I. I always see a small pear-bush
|
|
with its green fruit hanging down. When I think of the
|
|
Commonwealth I see a shady little group of these small saplings
|
|
which we called the oak parlor; when I think of George III. I see
|
|
him stretching up the hill, part of him occupied by a flight of
|
|
stone steps; and I can locate Stephen to an inch when he comes
|
|
into my mind, for he just filled the stretch which went by the
|
|
summer-house. Victoria's reign reached almost to my study door
|
|
on the first little summit; there's sixteen feet to be added now;
|
|
I believe that that would carry it to a big pine-tree that was
|
|
shattered by some lightning one summer when it was trying to hit me.
|
|
|
|
We got a good deal of fun out of the history road; and
|
|
exercise, too. We trotted the course from the conqueror to the
|
|
study, the children calling out the names, dates, and length of
|
|
reigns as we passed the stakes, going a good gait along the long
|
|
reigns, but slowing down when we came upon people like Mary and
|
|
Edward VI., and the short Stuart and Plantagenet, to give time to
|
|
get in the statistics. I offered prizes, too--apples. I threw
|
|
one as far as I could send it, and the child that first shouted
|
|
the reign it fell in got the apple.
|
|
|
|
The children were encouraged to stop locating things as
|
|
being "over by the arbor," or "in the oak parlor," or "up at the
|
|
stone steps," and say instead that the things were in Stephen, or
|
|
in the Commonwealth, or in George III. They got the habit
|
|
without trouble. To have the long road mapped out with such
|
|
exactness was a great boon for me, for I had the habit of leaving
|
|
books and other articles lying around everywhere, and had not
|
|
previously been able to definitely name the place, and so had
|
|
often been obliged to go to fetch them myself, to save time and
|
|
failure; but now I could name the reign I left them in, and send
|
|
the children.
|
|
|
|
Next I thought I would measure off the French reigns, and
|
|
peg them alongside the English ones, so that we could always have
|
|
contemporaneous French history under our eyes as we went our
|
|
English rounds. We pegged them down to the Hundred Years' War,
|
|
then threw the idea aside, I do not now remember why. After that
|
|
we made the English pegs fence in European and American history
|
|
as well as English, and that answered very well. English and
|
|
alien poets, statesmen, artists, heroes, battles, plagues,
|
|
cataclysms, revolutions--we shoveled them all into the English
|
|
fences according to their dates. Do you understand? We gave
|
|
Washington's birth to George II.'s pegs and his death to George
|
|
III.'s; George II. got the Lisbon earthquake and George III. the
|
|
Declaration of Independence. Goethe, Shakespeare, Napoleon,
|
|
Savonarola, Joan of Arc, the French Revolution, the Edict of
|
|
Nantes, Clive, Wellington, Waterloo, Plassey, Patay, Cowpens,
|
|
Saratoga, the Battle of the Boyne, the invention of the
|
|
logarithms, the microscope, the steam-engine, the telegraph--
|
|
anything and everything all over the world--we dumped it all
|
|
in among the English pegs according to it date and regardless
|
|
of its nationality.
|
|
|
|
If the road-pegging scheme had not succeeded I should have
|
|
lodged the kings in the children's heads by means of pictures--
|
|
that is, I should have tried. It might have failed, for the
|
|
pictures could only be effective WHEN MADE BY THE PUPIL; not the
|
|
master, for it is the work put upon the drawing that makes the
|
|
drawing stay in the memory, and my children were too little to make
|
|
drawings at that time. And, besides, they had no talent for art,
|
|
which is strange, for in other ways they are like me.
|
|
|
|
But I will develop the picture plan now, hoping that you will
|
|
be able to use it. It will come good for indoors when the
|
|
weather is bad and one cannot go outside and peg a road. Let us
|
|
imagine that the kings are a procession, and that they have come
|
|
out of the Ark and down Ararat for exercise and are now starting
|
|
back again up the zigzag road. This will bring several of them
|
|
into view at once, and each zigzag will represent the length of
|
|
a king's reign.
|
|
|
|
And so on. You will have plenty of space, for by my project
|
|
you will use the parlor wall. You do not mark on the wall; that
|
|
would cause trouble. You only attach bits of paper to it with
|
|
pins or thumb-tacks. These will leave no mark.
|
|
|
|
Take your pen now, and twenty-one pieces of white paper,
|
|
each two inches square, and we will do the twenty-one years of
|
|
the Conqueror's reign. On each square draw a picture of a whale
|
|
and write the dates and term of service. We choose the whale for
|
|
several reasons: its name and William's begin with the same
|
|
letter; it is the biggest fish that swims, and William is the
|
|
most conspicuous figure in English history in the way of a
|
|
landmark; finally, a whale is about the easiest thing to draw.
|
|
By the time you have drawn twenty-one wales and written "William
|
|
I.--1066-1087--twenty-one years" twenty-one times, those details
|
|
will be your property; you cannot dislodge them from your memory
|
|
with anything but dynamite. I will make a sample for you to copy:
|
|
(Fig. 3).
|
|
|
|
I have got his chin up too high, but that is no matter; he
|
|
is looking for Harold. It may be that a whale hasn't that fin up
|
|
there on his back, but I do not remember; and so, since there is
|
|
a doubt, it is best to err on the safe side. He looks better,
|
|
anyway, than he would without it.
|
|
|
|
Be very careful and ATTENTIVE while you are drawing your
|
|
first whale from my sample and writing the word and figures under
|
|
it, so that you will not need to copy the sample any more.
|
|
Compare your copy with the sample; examine closely; if you find
|
|
you have got everything right and can shut your eyes and see the
|
|
picture and call the words and figures, then turn the sample and
|
|
copy upside down and make the next copy from memory; and also the
|
|
next and next, and so on, always drawing and writing from memory
|
|
until you have finished the whole twenty-one. This will take you
|
|
twenty minutes, or thirty, and by that time you will find that
|
|
you can make a whale in less time than an unpracticed person can
|
|
make a sardine; also, up to the time you die you will always be
|
|
able to furnish William's dates to any ignorant person that
|
|
inquires after them.
|
|
|
|
You will now take thirteen pieces of BLUE paper, each two
|
|
inches square, and do William II. (Fig. 4.)
|
|
|
|
Make him spout his water forward instead of backward; also
|
|
make him small, and stick a harpoon in him and give him that sick
|
|
look in the eye. Otherwise you might seem to be continuing the
|
|
other William, and that would be confusing and a damage. It is
|
|
quite right to make him small; he was only about a No. 11 whale,
|
|
or along there somewhere; there wasn't room in him for his
|
|
father's great spirit. The barb of that harpoon ought not to
|
|
show like that, because it is down inside the whale and ought to
|
|
be out of sight, but it cannot be helped; if the barb were
|
|
removed people would think some one had stuck a whip-stock into
|
|
the whale. It is best to leave the barb the way it is, then
|
|
every one will know it is a harpoon and attending to business.
|
|
Remember--draw from the copy only once; make your other twelve
|
|
and the inscription from memory.
|
|
|
|
Now the truth is that whenever you have copied a picture and
|
|
its inscription once from my sample and two or three times from
|
|
memory the details will stay with you and be hard to forget.
|
|
After that, if you like, you may make merely the whale's HEAD and
|
|
WATER-SPOUT for the Conqueror till you end his reign, each time
|
|
SAYING the inscription in place of writing it; and in the case of
|
|
William II. make the HARPOON alone, and say over the inscription
|
|
each time you do it. You see, it will take nearly twice as long
|
|
to do the first set as it will to do the second, and that will
|
|
give you a marked sense of the difference in length of the two reigns.
|
|
|
|
Next do Henry I. on thirty-five squares of RED paper.
|
|
(Fig. 5.)
|
|
|
|
That is a hen, and suggests Henry by furnishing the first syllable.
|
|
When you have repeated the hen and the inscription until you are
|
|
perfectly sure of them, draw merely the hen's head the rest of the
|
|
thirty-five times, saying over the inscription each time. Thus:
|
|
(Fig. 6).
|
|
|
|
You begin to understand how how this procession is going to
|
|
look when it is on the wall. First there will be the Conqueror's
|
|
twenty-one whales and water-spouts, the twenty-one white squares
|
|
joined to one another and making a white stripe three and one-
|
|
half feet long; the thirteen blue squares of William II. will be
|
|
joined to that--a blue stripe two feet, two inches long, followed
|
|
by Henry's red stripe five feet, ten inches long, and so on. The
|
|
colored divisions will smartly show to the eye the difference in
|
|
the length of the reigns and impress the proportions on the
|
|
memory and the understanding. (Fig. 7.)
|
|
|
|
Stephen of Blois comes next. He requires nineteen two-inch
|
|
squares of YELLOW paper. (Fig. 8.)
|
|
|
|
That is a steer. The sound suggests the beginning of
|
|
Stephen's name. I choose it for that reason. I can make a
|
|
better steer than that when I am not excited. But this one will
|
|
do. It is a good-enough steer for history. The tail is
|
|
defective, but it only wants straightening out.
|
|
|
|
Next comes Henry II. Give him thirty-five squares of RED paper.
|
|
These hens must face west, like the former ones. (Fig. 9.)
|
|
|
|
This hen differs from the other one. He is on his way to
|
|
inquire what has been happening in Canterbury.
|
|
|
|
How we arrive at Richard I., called Richard of the Lion-
|
|
heart because he was a brave fighter and was never so contented
|
|
as when he was leading crusades in Palestine and neglecting his
|
|
affairs at home. Give him ten squares of WHITE paper. (Fig. 10).
|
|
|
|
That is a lion. His office is to remind you of the lion-
|
|
hearted Richard. There is something the matter with his legs,
|
|
but I do not quite know what it is, they do not seem right.
|
|
I think the hind ones are the most unsatisfactory; the front
|
|
ones are well enough, though it would be better if they were
|
|
rights and lefts.
|
|
|
|
Next comes King John, and he was a poor circumstance.
|
|
He was called Lackland. He gave his realm to the Pope.
|
|
Let him have seventeen squares of YELLOW paper. (Fig. 11.)
|
|
|
|
That creature is a jamboree. It looks like a trademark, but
|
|
that is only an accident and not intentional. It is prehistoric
|
|
and extinct. It used to roam the earth in the Old Silurian
|
|
times, and lay eggs and catch fish and climb trees and live on
|
|
fossils; for it was of a mixed breed, which was the fashion then.
|
|
It was very fierce, and the Old Silurians were afraid of it, but
|
|
this is a tame one. Physically it has no representative now, but
|
|
its mind has been transmitted. First I drew it sitting down, but
|
|
have turned it the other way now because I think it looks more
|
|
attractive and spirited when one end of it is galloping. I love
|
|
to think that in this attitude it gives us a pleasant idea of
|
|
John coming all in a happy excitement to see what the barons have
|
|
been arranging for him at Runnymede, while the other one gives us
|
|
an idea of him sitting down to wring his hands and grieve over it.
|
|
|
|
We now come to Henry III.; RED squares again, of course--
|
|
fifty-six of them. We must make all the Henrys the same color;
|
|
it will make their long reigns show up handsomely on the wall.
|
|
Among all the eight Henrys there were but two short ones. A
|
|
lucky name, as far as longevity goes. The reigns of six of the
|
|
Henrys cover 227 years. It might have been well to name all the
|
|
royal princes Henry, but this was overlooked until it was too late.
|
|
(Fig. 12.)
|
|
|
|
This is the best one yet. He is on his way (1265) to have a
|
|
look at the first House of Commons in English history. It was a
|
|
monumental event, the situation in the House, and was the second
|
|
great liberty landmark which the century had set up. I have made
|
|
Henry looking glad, but this was not intentional.
|
|
|
|
Edward I. comes next; LIGHT-BROWN paper, thirty-five squares.
|
|
(Fig. 13.)
|
|
|
|
That is an editor. He is trying to think of a word. He
|
|
props his feet on a chair, which is the editor's way; then he can
|
|
think better. I do not care much for this one; his ears are not
|
|
alike; still, editor suggests the sound of Edward, and he will
|
|
do. I could make him better if I had a model, but I made this
|
|
one from memory. But is no particular matter; they all look
|
|
alike, anyway. They are conceited and troublesome, and don't pay
|
|
enough. Edward was the first really English king that had yet
|
|
occupied the throne. The editor in the picture probably looks
|
|
just as Edward looked when it was first borne in upon him that
|
|
this was so. His whole attitude expressed gratification and
|
|
pride mixed with stupefaction and astonishment.
|
|
|
|
Edward II. now; twenty BLUE squares. (Fig. 14.)
|
|
|
|
Another editor. That thing behind his ear is his pencil.
|
|
Whenever he finds a bright thing in your manuscript he strikes it
|
|
out with that. That does him good, and makes him smile and show
|
|
his teeth, the way he is doing in the picture. This one has just
|
|
been striking out a smart thing, and now he is sitting there with
|
|
his thumbs in his vest-holes, gloating. They are full of envy
|
|
and malice, editors are. This picture will serve to remind you
|
|
that Edward II. was the first English king who was DEPOSED. Upon
|
|
demand, he signed his deposition himself. He had found kingship
|
|
a most aggravating and disagreeable occupation, and you can see
|
|
by the look of him that he is glad he resigned. He has put his
|
|
blue pencil up for good now. He had struck out many a good thing
|
|
with it in his time.
|
|
|
|
Edward III. next; fifty RED squares. (Fig. 15.)
|
|
|
|
This editor is a critic. He has pulled out his carving-
|
|
knife and his tomahawk and is starting after a book which he is
|
|
going to have for breakfast. This one's arms are put on wrong.
|
|
I did not notice it at first, but I see it now. Somehow he has
|
|
got his right arm on his left shoulder, and his left arm on his
|
|
right shoulder, and this shows us the back of his hands in both
|
|
instances. It makes him left-handed all around, which is a thing
|
|
which has never happened before, except perhaps in a museum.
|
|
That is the way with art, when it is not acquired but born to
|
|
you: you start in to make some simple little thing, not
|
|
suspecting that your genius is beginning to work and swell and
|
|
strain in secret, and all of a sudden there is a convulsion and
|
|
you fetch out something astonishing. This is called inspiration.
|
|
It is an accident; you never know when it is coming. I might
|
|
have tried as much as a year to think of such a strange thing as
|
|
an all-around left-handed man and I could not have done it, for
|
|
the more you try to think of an unthinkable thing the more it
|
|
eludes you; but it can't elude inspiration; you have only to bait
|
|
with inspiration and you will get it every time. Look at
|
|
Botticelli's "Spring." Those snaky women were unthinkable, but
|
|
inspiration secured them for us, thanks to goodness. It is too
|
|
late to reorganize this editor-critic now; we will leave him as
|
|
he is. He will serve to remind us.
|
|
|
|
Richard II. next; twenty-two WHITE squares. (Fig. 16.)
|
|
|
|
We use the lion again because this is another Richard. Like
|
|
Edward II., he was DEPOSED. He is taking a last sad look at his
|
|
crown before they take it away. There was not room enough and I
|
|
have made it too small; but it never fitted him, anyway.
|
|
|
|
Now we turn the corner of the century with a new line of
|
|
monarchs--the Lancastrian kings.
|
|
|
|
Henry IV.; fourteen squares of YELLOW paper. (Fig. 17.)
|
|
|
|
This hen has laid the egg of a new dynasty and realizes the
|
|
magnitude of the event. She is giving notice in the usual way.
|
|
You notice I am improving in the construction of hens. At first
|
|
I made them too much like other animals, but this one is
|
|
orthodox. I mention this to encourage you. You will find that
|
|
the more you practice the more accurate you will become. I could
|
|
always draw animals, but before I was educated I could not tell
|
|
what kind they were when I got them done, but now I can. Keep up
|
|
your courage; it will be the same with you, although you may not
|
|
think it. This Henry died the year after Joan of Arc was born.
|
|
|
|
Henry V.; nine BLUE squares. (Fig. 18)
|
|
|
|
There you see him lost in meditation over the monument which
|
|
records the amazing figures of the battle of Agincourt. French
|
|
history says 20,000 Englishmen routed 80,000 Frenchmen there; and
|
|
English historians say that the French loss, in killed and
|
|
wounded, was 60,000.
|
|
|
|
Henry VI.; thirty-nine RED squares. (Fig. 19)
|
|
|
|
This is poor Henry VI., who reigned long and scored many
|
|
misfortunes and humiliations. Also two great disasters: he lost
|
|
France to Joan of Arc and he lost the throne and ended the
|
|
dynasty which Henry IV. had started in business with such good
|
|
prospects. In the picture we see him sad and weary and downcast,
|
|
with the scepter falling from his nerveless grasp. It is a
|
|
pathetic quenching of a sun which had risen in such splendor.
|
|
|
|
Edward IV.; twenty-two LIGHT-BROWN squares. (Fig. 20.)
|
|
|
|
That is a society editor, sitting there elegantly dressed,
|
|
with his legs crossed in that indolent way, observing the clothes
|
|
the ladies wear, so that he can describe them for his paper and
|
|
make them out finer than they are and get bribes for it and
|
|
become wealthy. That flower which he is wearing in his
|
|
buttonhole is a rose--a white rose, a York rose--and will serve
|
|
to remind us of the War of the Roses, and that the white one was
|
|
the winning color when Edward got the throne and dispossessed the
|
|
Lancastrian dynasty.
|
|
|
|
Edward V.; one-third of a BLACK square. (Fig. 21.)
|
|
|
|
His uncle Richard had him murdered in the tower. When you
|
|
get the reigns displayed upon the wall this one will be
|
|
conspicuous and easily remembered. It is the shortest one in
|
|
English history except Lady Jane Grey's, which was only nine
|
|
days. She is never officially recognized as a monarch of
|
|
England, but if you or I should ever occupy a throne we should
|
|
like to have proper notice taken of it; and it would be only fair
|
|
and right, too, particularly if we gained nothing by it and lost
|
|
our lives besides.
|
|
|
|
Richard III.; two WHITE squares. (Fig. 22.)
|
|
|
|
That is not a very good lion, but Richard was not a very
|
|
good king. You would think that this lion has two heads, but
|
|
that is not so; one is only a shadow. There would be shadows for
|
|
the rest of him, but there was not light enough to go round, it
|
|
being a dull day, with only fleeting sun-glimpses now and then.
|
|
Richard had a humped back and a hard heart, and fell at the
|
|
battle of Bosworth. I do not know the name of that flower in the
|
|
pot, but we will use it as Richard's trade-mark, for it is said
|
|
that it grows in only one place in the world--Bosworth Field--and
|
|
tradition says it never grew there until Richard's royal blood
|
|
warmed its hidden seed to life and made it grow.
|
|
|
|
Henry VII.; twenty-four BLUE squares. (Fig. 23.)
|
|
|
|
Henry VII. had no liking for wars and turbulence; he
|
|
preferred peace and quiet and the general prosperity which such
|
|
conditions create. He liked to sit on that kind of eggs on his
|
|
own private account as well as the nation's, and hatch them out
|
|
and count up their result. When he died he left his heir
|
|
2,000,000 pounds, which was a most unusual fortune for a king to
|
|
possess in those days. Columbus's great achievement gave him the
|
|
discovery-fever, and he sent Sebastian Cabot to the New World to
|
|
search out some foreign territory for England. That is Cabot's
|
|
ship up there in the corner. This was the first time that
|
|
England went far abroad to enlarge her estate--but not the last.
|
|
|
|
Henry VIII.; thirty-eight RED squares. (Fig. 24.)
|
|
|
|
That is Henry VIII. suppressing a monastery in his arrogant fashion.
|
|
|
|
Edward VI.; six squares of YELLOW paper. (Fig. 25.)
|
|
|
|
He is the last Edward to date. It is indicated by that
|
|
thing over his head, which is a LAST--shoemaker's last.
|
|
|
|
Mary; five squares of BLACK paper. (Fig. 26.)
|
|
|
|
The picture represents a burning martyr. He is in back of
|
|
the smoke. The first three letters of Mary's name and the first
|
|
three of the word martyr are the same. Martyrdom was going out
|
|
in her day and martyrs were becoming scarcer, but she made
|
|
several. For this reason she is sometimes called Bloody Mary.
|
|
|
|
This brings us to the reign of Elizabeth, after passing
|
|
through a period of nearly five hundred years of England's
|
|
history--492 to be exact. I think you may now be trusted to go
|
|
the rest of the way without further lessons in art or
|
|
inspirations in the matter of ideas. You have the scheme now,
|
|
and something in the ruler's name or career will suggest the
|
|
pictorial symbol. The effort of inventing such things will not
|
|
only help your memory, but will develop originality in art. See
|
|
what it has done for me. If you do not find the parlor wall big
|
|
enough for all of England's history, continue it into the dining-
|
|
room and into other rooms. This will make the walls interesting
|
|
and instructive and really worth something instead of being just
|
|
flat things to hold the house together.
|
|
|
|
-----
|
|
1. Summer of 1899.
|
|
|
|
-----------------------------------------------------------------
|
|
|
|
|
|
THE MEMORABLE ASSASSINATION
|
|
|
|
Note.--The assassination of the Empress of Austria at
|
|
Geneva, September 10, 1898, occurred during Mark Twain's Austrian
|
|
residence. The news came to him at Kaltenleutgeben, a summer
|
|
resort a little way out of Vienna. To his friend, the Rev. Jos.
|
|
H. Twichell, he wrote:
|
|
|
|
"That good and unoffending lady, the Empress, is killed by a
|
|
madman, and I am living in the midst of world-history again. The
|
|
Queen's Jubilee last year, the invasion of the Reichsrath by the
|
|
police, and now this murder, which will still be talked of and
|
|
described and painted a thousand a thousand years from now. To
|
|
have a personal friend of the wearer of two crowns burst in at
|
|
the gate in the deep dusk of the evening and say, in a voice
|
|
broken with tears, 'My God! the Empress is murdered,' and fly
|
|
toward her home before we can utter a question--why, it brings
|
|
the giant event home to you, makes you a part of it and
|
|
personally interested; it is as if your neighbor, Antony, should
|
|
come flying and say, 'Caesar is butchered--the head of the world
|
|
is fallen!'
|
|
|
|
"Of course there is no talk but of this. The mourning is
|
|
universal and genuine, the consternation is stupefying. The
|
|
Austrian Empire is being draped with black. Vienna will be a
|
|
spectacle to see by next Saturday, when the funeral cort`ege
|
|
marches."
|
|
|
|
He was strongly moved by the tragedy, impelled to write
|
|
concerning it. He prepared the article which follows, but did
|
|
not offer it for publication, perhaps feeling that his own close
|
|
association with the court circles at the moment prohibited this
|
|
personal utterance. There appears no such reason for withholding
|
|
its publication now.
|
|
|
|
A. B. P.
|
|
|
|
|
|
The more one thinks of the assassination, the more imposing
|
|
and tremendous the event becomes. The destruction of a city is a
|
|
large event, but it is one which repeats itself several times in
|
|
a thousand years; the destruction of a third part of a nation by
|
|
plague and famine is a large event, but it has happened several
|
|
times in history; the murder of a king is a large event, but it
|
|
has been frequent.
|
|
|
|
The murder of an empress is the largest of all events. One
|
|
must go back about two thousand years to find an instance to put
|
|
with this one. The oldest family of unchallenged descent in
|
|
Christendom lives in Rome and traces its line back seventeen
|
|
hundred years, but no member of it has been present in the earth
|
|
when an empress was murdered, until now. Many a time during
|
|
these seventeen centuries members of that family have been
|
|
startled with the news of extraordinary events--the destruction
|
|
of cities, the fall of thrones, the murder of kings, the wreck of
|
|
dynasties, the extinction of religions, the birth of new systems
|
|
of government; and their descendants have been by to hear of it
|
|
and talk about it when all these things were repeated once,
|
|
twice, or a dozen times--but to even that family has come news at
|
|
last which is not staled by use, has no duplicates in the long
|
|
reach of its memory.
|
|
|
|
It is an event which confers a curious distinction upon
|
|
every individual now living in the world: he has stood alive and
|
|
breathing in the presence of an event such as has not fallen
|
|
within the experience of any traceable or untraceable ancestor of
|
|
his for twenty centuries, and it is not likely to fall within the
|
|
experience of any descendant of his for twenty more.
|
|
|
|
Time has made some great changes since the Roman days. The
|
|
murder of an empress then--even the assassination of Caesar
|
|
himself--could not electrify the world as this murder has
|
|
electrified it. For one reason, there was then not much of a
|
|
world to electrify; it was a small world, as to known bulk, and
|
|
it had rather a thin population, besides; and for another reason,
|
|
the news traveled so slowly that its tremendous initial thrill
|
|
wasted away, week by week and month by month, on the journey, and
|
|
by the time it reached the remoter regions there was but little
|
|
of it left. It was no longer a fresh event, it was a thing of
|
|
the far past; it was not properly news, it was history. But the
|
|
world is enormous now, and prodigiously populated--that is one
|
|
change; and another is the lightning swiftness of the flight of
|
|
tidings, good and bad. "The Empress is murdered!" When those
|
|
amazing words struck upon my ear in this Austrian village last
|
|
Saturday, three hours after the disaster, I knew that it was
|
|
already old news in London, Paris, Berlin, New York, San
|
|
Francisco, Japan, China, Melbourne, Cape Town, Bombay, Madras,
|
|
Calcutta, and that the entire globe with a single voice, was
|
|
cursing the perpetrator of it. Since the telegraph first began
|
|
to stretch itself wider and wider about the earth, larger and
|
|
increasingly larger areas of the world have, as time went on,
|
|
received simultaneously the shock of a great calamity; but this
|
|
is the first time in history that the entire surface of the globe
|
|
has been swept in a single instant with the thrill of so gigantic
|
|
an event.
|
|
|
|
And who is the miracle-worker who has furnished to the world
|
|
this spectacle? All the ironies are compacted in the answer. He
|
|
is at the bottom of the human ladder, as the accepted estimates
|
|
of degree and value go: a soiled and patched young loafer,
|
|
without gifts, without talents, without education, without
|
|
morals, without character, without any born charm or any acquired
|
|
one that wins or beguiles or attracts; without a single grace of
|
|
mind or heart or hand that any tramp or prostitute could envy
|
|
him; an unfaithful private in the ranks, an incompetent stone-
|
|
cutter, an inefficient lackey; in a word, a mangy, offensive,
|
|
empty, unwashed, vulgar, gross, mephitic, timid, sneaking, human
|
|
polecat. And it was within the privileges and powers of this
|
|
sarcasm upon the human race to reach up--up--up--and strike from
|
|
its far summit in the social skies the world's accepted ideal of
|
|
Glory and Might and Splendor and Sacredness! It realizes to us
|
|
what sorry shows and shadows we are. Without our clothes and our
|
|
pedestals we are poor things and much of a size; our dignities
|
|
are not real, our pomps are shams. At our best and stateliest we
|
|
are not suns, as we pretended, and teach, and believe, but only
|
|
candles; and any bummer can blow us out.
|
|
|
|
And now we get realized to us once more another thing which
|
|
we often forget--or try to: that no man has a wholly undiseased
|
|
mind; that in one way or another all men are mad. Many are mad
|
|
for money. When this madness is in a mild form it is harmless
|
|
and the man passes for sane; but when it develops powerfully and
|
|
takes possession of the man, it can make him cheat, rob, and
|
|
kill; and when he has got his fortune and lost it again it can
|
|
land him in the asylum or the suicide's coffin. Love is a
|
|
madness; if thwarted it develops fast; it can grow to a frenzy of
|
|
despair and make an otherwise sane and highly gifted prince, like
|
|
Rudolph, throw away the crown of an empire and snuff out his own
|
|
life. All the whole list of desires, predilections, aversions,
|
|
ambitions, passions, cares, griefs, regrets, remorses, are
|
|
incipient madness, and ready to grow, spread, and consume, when
|
|
the occasion comes. There are no healthy minds, and nothing
|
|
saves any man but accident--the accident of not having his malady
|
|
put to the supreme test.
|
|
|
|
One of the commonest forms of madness is the desire to be
|
|
noticed, the pleasure derived from being noticed. Perhaps it is
|
|
not merely common, but universal. In its mildest form it
|
|
doubtless is universal. Every child is pleased at being noticed;
|
|
many intolerable children put in their whole time in distressing
|
|
and idiotic effort to attract the attention of visitors; boys are
|
|
always "showing off"; apparently all men and women are glad and
|
|
grateful when they find that they have done a thing which has
|
|
lifted them for a moment out of obscurity and caused wondering
|
|
talk. This common madness can develop, by nurture, into a hunger
|
|
for notoriety in one, for fame in another. It is this madness
|
|
for being noticed and talked about which has invented kingship
|
|
and the thousand other dignities, and tricked them out with
|
|
pretty and showy fineries; it has made kings pick one another's
|
|
pockets, scramble for one another's crowns and estates, slaughter
|
|
one another's subjects; it has raised up prize-fighters, and
|
|
poets, and villages mayors, and little and big politicians, and
|
|
big and little charity-founders, and bicycle champions, and
|
|
banditti chiefs, and frontier desperadoes, and Napoleons.
|
|
Anything to get notoriety; anything to set the village, or the
|
|
township, or the city, or the State, or the nation, or the planet
|
|
shouting, "Look--there he goes--that is the man!" And in five
|
|
minutes' time, at no cost of brain, or labor, or genius this
|
|
mangy Italian tramp has beaten them all, transcended them all,
|
|
outstripped them all, for in time their names will perish; but by
|
|
the friendly help of the insane newspapers and courts and kings
|
|
and historians, his is safe and live and thunder in the world all
|
|
down the ages as long as human speech shall endure! Oh, if it
|
|
were not so tragic how ludicrous it would be!
|
|
|
|
She was so blameless, the Empress; and so beautiful, in mind
|
|
and heart, in person and spirit; and whether with a crown upon
|
|
her head or without it and nameless, a grace to the human race,
|
|
and almost a justification of its creation; WOULD be, indeed, but
|
|
that the animal that struck her down re-establishes the doubt.
|
|
|
|
In her character was every quality that in woman invites and
|
|
engages respect, esteem, affection, and homage. Her tastes, her
|
|
instincts, and her aspirations were all high and fine and all her
|
|
life her heart and brain were busy with activities of a noble
|
|
sort. She had had bitter griefs, but they did not sour her
|
|
spirit, and she had had the highest honors in the world's gift,
|
|
but she went her simple way unspoiled. She knew all ranks, and
|
|
won them all, and made them her friends. An English fisherman's
|
|
wife said, "When a body was in trouble she didn't send her help,
|
|
she brought it herself." Crowns have adorned others, but she
|
|
adorned her crowns.
|
|
|
|
It was a swift celebrity the assassin achieved. And it is
|
|
marked by some curious contrasts. At noon last, Saturday there
|
|
was no one in the world who would have considered
|
|
acquaintanceship with him a thing worth claiming or mentioning;
|
|
no one would have been vain of such an acquaintanceship; the
|
|
humblest honest boot-black would not have valued the fact that he
|
|
had met him or seen him at some time or other; he was sunk in
|
|
abysmal obscurity, he was away beneath the notice of the bottom
|
|
grades of officialdom. Three hours later he was the one subject
|
|
of conversation in the world, the gilded generals and admirals
|
|
and governors were discussing him, all the kings and queens and
|
|
emperors had put aside their other interests to talk about him.
|
|
And wherever there was a man, at the summit of the world or the
|
|
bottom of it, who by chance had at some time or other come across
|
|
that creature, he remembered it with a secret satisfaction, and
|
|
MENTIONED it--for it was a distinction, now! It brings human
|
|
dignity pretty low, and for a moment the thing is not quite
|
|
realizable--but it is perfectly true. If there is a king who can
|
|
remember, now, that he once saw that creature in a time past, he
|
|
has let that fact out, in a more or less studiedly casual and
|
|
indifferent way, some dozens of times during the past week. For
|
|
a king is merely human; the inside of him is exactly like the
|
|
inside of any other person; and it is human to find satisfaction
|
|
in being in a kind of personal way connected with amazing events.
|
|
We are all privately vain of such a thing; we are all alike; a
|
|
king is a king by accident; the reason the rest of us are not
|
|
kings is merely due to another accident; we are all made out of
|
|
the same clay, and it is a sufficient poor quality.
|
|
|
|
Below the kings, these remarks are in the air these days; I
|
|
know it well as if I were hearing them:
|
|
|
|
THE COMMANDER: "He was in my army."
|
|
|
|
THE GENERAL: "He was in my corps."
|
|
|
|
THE COLONEL: "He was in my regiment. A brute. I remember
|
|
him well."
|
|
|
|
THE CAPTAIN: "He was in my company. A troublesome
|
|
scoundrel. I remember him well."
|
|
|
|
THE SERGEANT: "Did I know him? As well as I know you.
|
|
Why, every morning I used to--" etc., etc.; a glad, long story,
|
|
told to devouring ears.
|
|
|
|
THE LANDLADY: "Many's the time he boarded with me. I can
|
|
show you his very room, and the very bed he slept in. And the
|
|
charcoal mark there on the wall--he made that. My little Johnny
|
|
saw him do it with his own eyes. Didn't you, Johnny?"
|
|
|
|
It is easy to see, by the papers, that the magistrate and
|
|
the constables and the jailer treasure up the assassin's daily
|
|
remarks and doings as precious things, and as wallowing this week
|
|
in seas of blissful distinction. The interviewer, too; he tried
|
|
to let on that he is not vain of his privilege of contact with
|
|
this man whom few others are allowed to gaze upon, but he is
|
|
human, like the rest, and can no more keep his vanity corked in
|
|
than could you or I.
|
|
|
|
Some think that this murder is a frenzied revolt against the
|
|
criminal militarism which is impoverishing Europe and driving the
|
|
starving poor mad. That has many crimes to answer for, but not
|
|
this one, I think. One may not attribute to this man a generous
|
|
indignation against the wrongs done the poor; one may not dignify
|
|
him with a generous impulse of any kind. When he saw his
|
|
photograph and said, "I shall be celebrated," he laid bare the
|
|
impulse that prompted him. It was a mere hunger for notoriety.
|
|
There is another confessed case of the kind which is as old as
|
|
history--the burning of the temple of Ephesus.
|
|
|
|
Among the inadequate attempts to account for the
|
|
assassination we must concede high rank to the many which have
|
|
described it as a "peculiarly brutal crime" and then added that
|
|
it was "ordained from above." I think this verdict will not be
|
|
popular "above." If the deed was ordained from above, there is
|
|
no rational way of making this prisoner even partially
|
|
responsible for it, and the Genevan court cannot condemn him
|
|
without manifestly committing a crime. Logic is logic, and by
|
|
disregarding its laws even the most pious and showy theologian
|
|
may be beguiled into preferring charges which should not be
|
|
ventured upon except in the shelter of plenty of lightning-rods.
|
|
|
|
I witnessed the funeral procession, in company with friends,
|
|
from the windows of the Krantz, Vienna's sumptuous new hotel. We
|
|
came into town in the middle of the forenoon, and I went on foot
|
|
from the station. Black flags hung down from all the houses; the
|
|
aspects were Sunday-like; the crowds on the sidewalks were quiet
|
|
and moved slowly; very few people were smoking; many ladies wore
|
|
deep mourning, gentlemen were in black as a rule; carriages were
|
|
speeding in all directions, with footmen and coachmen in black
|
|
clothes and wearing black cocked hats; the shops were closed; in
|
|
many windows were pictures of the Empress: as a beautiful young
|
|
bride of seventeen; as a serene and majestic lady with added
|
|
years; and finally in deep black and without ornaments--the
|
|
costume she always wore after the tragic death of her son nine
|
|
years ago, for her heart broke then, and life lost almost all its
|
|
value for her. The people stood grouped before these pictures,
|
|
and now and then one saw women and girls turn away wiping the
|
|
tears from their eyes.
|
|
|
|
In front of the Krantz is an open square; over the way was
|
|
the church where the funeral services would be held. It is small
|
|
and old and severely plain, plastered outside and whitewashed or
|
|
painted, and with no ornament but a statue of a monk in a niche
|
|
over the door, and above that a small black flag. But in its
|
|
crypt lie several of the great dead of the House of Habsburg,
|
|
among them Maria Theresa and Napoleon's son, the Duke of Reichstadt.
|
|
Hereabouts was a Roman camp, once, and in it the Emperor Marcus
|
|
Aurelius died a thousand years before the first Habsburg ruled
|
|
in Vienna, which was six hundred years ago and more.
|
|
|
|
The little church is packed in among great modern stores and
|
|
houses, and the windows of them were full of people. Behind the
|
|
vast plate-glass windows of the upper floors of the house on the
|
|
corner one glimpsed terraced masses of fine-clothed men and
|
|
women, dim and shimmery, like people under water. Under us the
|
|
square was noiseless, but it was full of citizens; officials in
|
|
fine uniforms were flitting about on errands, and in a doorstep
|
|
sat a figure in the uttermost raggedness of poverty, the feet
|
|
bare, the head bent humbly down; a youth of eighteen or twenty,
|
|
he was, and through the field-glass one could see that he was
|
|
tearing apart and munching riffraff that he had gathered
|
|
somewhere. Blazing uniforms flashed by him, making a sparkling
|
|
contrast with his drooping ruin of moldy rags, but he took not
|
|
notice; he was not there to grieve for a nation's disaster; he
|
|
had his own cares, and deeper. From two directions two long
|
|
files of infantry came plowing through the pack and press in
|
|
silence; there was a low, crisp order and the crowd vanished, the
|
|
square save the sidewalks was empty, the private mourner was
|
|
gone. Another order, the soldiers fell apart and enclosed the
|
|
square in a double-ranked human fence. It was all so swift,
|
|
noiseless, exact--like a beautifully ordered machine.
|
|
|
|
It was noon, now. Two hours of stillness and waiting
|
|
followed. Then carriages began to flow past and deliver the two
|
|
and three hundred court personages and high nobilities privileged
|
|
to enter the church. Then the square filled up; not with
|
|
civilians, but with army and navy officers in showy and beautiful
|
|
uniforms. They filled it compactly, leaving only a narrow
|
|
carriage path in front of the church, but there was no civilian
|
|
among them. And it was better so; dull clothes would have marred
|
|
the radiant spectacle. In the jam in front of the church, on its
|
|
steps, and on the sidewalk was a bunch of uniforms which made a
|
|
blazing splotch of color--intense red, gold, and white--which
|
|
dimmed the brilliancies around them; and opposite them on the
|
|
other side of the path was a bunch of cascaded bright-green
|
|
plumes above pale-blue shoulders which made another splotch of
|
|
splendor emphatic and conspicuous in its glowing surroundings.
|
|
It was a sea of flashing color all about, but these two groups
|
|
were the high notes. The green plumes were worn by forty or
|
|
fifty Austrian generals, the group opposite them were chiefly
|
|
Knights of Malta and knights of a German order. The mass of
|
|
heads in the square were covered by gilt helmets and by military
|
|
caps roofed with a mirror-like gaze, and the movements of the
|
|
wearers caused these things to catch the sun-rays, and the effect
|
|
was fine to see--the square was like a garden of richly colored
|
|
flowers with a multitude of blinding and flashing little suns
|
|
distributed over it.
|
|
|
|
Think of it--it was by command of that Italian loafer yonder
|
|
on his imperial throne in the Geneva prison that this splendid
|
|
multitude was assembled there; and the kings and emperors that
|
|
were entering the church from a side street were there by his will.
|
|
It is so strange, so unrealizable.
|
|
|
|
At three o'clock the carriages were still streaming by in
|
|
single file. At three-five a cardinal arrives with his
|
|
attendants; later some bishops; then a number of archdeacons--all
|
|
in striking colors that add to the show. At three-ten a
|
|
procession of priests passed along, with crucifix. Another one,
|
|
presently; after an interval, two more; at three-fifty another
|
|
one--very long, with many crosses, gold-embroidered robes, and
|
|
much white lace; also great pictured banners, at intervals,
|
|
receding into the distance.
|
|
|
|
A hum of tolling bells makes itself heard, but not sharply.
|
|
At three-fifty-eight a waiting interval. Presently a long
|
|
procession of gentlemen in evening dress comes in sight and
|
|
approaches until it is near to the square, then falls back
|
|
against the wall of soldiers at the sidewalk, and the white
|
|
shirt-fronts show like snowflakes and are very conspicuous where
|
|
so much warm color is all about.
|
|
|
|
A waiting pause. At four-twelve the head of the funeral
|
|
procession comes into view at last. First, a body of cavalry,
|
|
four abreast, to widen the path. Next, a great body of lancers,
|
|
in blue, with gilt helmets. Next, three six-horse mourning-
|
|
coaches; outriders and coachmen in black, with cocked hats and
|
|
white wigs. Next, troops in splendid uniforms, red, gold, and
|
|
white, exceedingly showy.
|
|
|
|
Now the multitude uncover. The soldiers present arms; there
|
|
is a low rumble of drums; the sumptuous great hearse approaches,
|
|
drawn at a walk by eight black horses plumed with black bunches
|
|
of nodding ostrich feathers; the coffin is borne into the church,
|
|
the doors are closed.
|
|
|
|
The multitude cover their heads, and the rest of the
|
|
procession moves by; first the Hungarian Guard in their
|
|
indescribably brilliant and picturesque and beautiful uniform,
|
|
inherited from the ages of barbaric splendor, and after them
|
|
other mounted forces, a long and showy array.
|
|
|
|
Then the shining crown in the square crumbled apart, a
|
|
wrecked rainbow, and melted away in radiant streams, and in the
|
|
turn of a wrist the three dirtiest and raggedest and cheerfulest
|
|
little slum-girls in Austria were capering about in the spacious
|
|
vacancy. It was a day of contrasts.
|
|
|
|
Twice the Empress entered Vienna in state. The first time
|
|
was in 1854, when she was a bride of seventeen, and then she rode
|
|
in measureless pomp and with blare of music through a fluttering
|
|
world of gay flags and decorations, down streets walled on both
|
|
hands with a press of shouting and welcoming subjects; and the
|
|
second time was last Wednesday, when she entered the city in her
|
|
coffin and moved down the same streets in the dead of the night
|
|
under swaying black flags, between packed human walls again; but
|
|
everywhere was a deep stillness, now--a stillness emphasized,
|
|
rather than broken, by the muffled hoofbeats of the long
|
|
cavalcade over pavements cushioned with sand, and the low sobbing
|
|
of gray-headed women who had witnessed the first entry forty-four
|
|
years before, when she and they were young--and unaware!
|
|
|
|
A character in Baron von Berger's recent fairy drama
|
|
"Habsburg" tells about the first coming of the girlish Empress-
|
|
Queen, and in his history draws a fine picture: I cannot make a
|
|
close translation of it, but will try to convey the spirit of the
|
|
verses:
|
|
|
|
|
|
I saw the stately pageant pass:
|
|
In her high place I saw the Empress-Queen:
|
|
I could not take my eyes away
|
|
From that fair vision, spirit-like and pure,
|
|
That rose serene, sublime, and figured to my sense
|
|
A noble Alp far lighted in the blue,
|
|
That in the flood of morning rends its veil of cloud
|
|
And stands a dream of glory to the gaze
|
|
Of them that in the Valley toil and plod.
|
|
------------------------------------------------------------------
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
A SCRAP OF CURIOUS HISTORY
|
|
|
|
Marion City, on the Mississippi River, in the State of
|
|
Missouri--a village; time, 1845. La Bourboule-les-Bains, France
|
|
--a village; time, the end of June, 1894. I was in the one
|
|
village in that early time; I am in the other now. These times
|
|
and places are sufficiently wide apart, yet today I have the
|
|
strange sense of being thrust back into that Missourian village
|
|
and of reliving certain stirring days that I lived there so long
|
|
ago.
|
|
|
|
Last Saturday night the life of the President of the French
|
|
Republic was taken by an Italian assassin. Last night a mob
|
|
surrounded our hotel, shouting, howling, singing the
|
|
"Marseillaise," and pelting our windows with sticks and stones;
|
|
for we have Italian waiters, and the mob demanded that they be
|
|
turned out of the house instantly--to be drubbed, and then driven
|
|
out of the village. Everybody in the hotel remained up until far
|
|
into the night, and experienced the several kinds of terror which
|
|
one reads about in books which tell of nigh attacks by Italians
|
|
and by French mobs: the growing roar of the oncoming crowd; the
|
|
arrival, with rain of stones and a crash of glass; the withdrawal
|
|
to rearrange plans--followed by a silence ominous, threatening,
|
|
and harder to bear than even the active siege and the noise. The
|
|
landlord and the two village policemen stood their ground, and at
|
|
last the mob was persuaded to go away and leave our Italians in
|
|
peace. Today four of the ringleaders have been sentenced to
|
|
heavy punishment of a public sort--and are become local heroes,
|
|
by consequence.
|
|
|
|
That is the very mistake which was at first made in the
|
|
Missourian village half a century ago. The mistake was repeated
|
|
and repeated--just as France is doing in these later months.
|
|
|
|
In our village we had our Ravochals, our Henrys, our
|
|
Vaillants; and in a humble way our Cesario--I hope I have spelled
|
|
this name wrong. Fifty years ago we passed through, in all
|
|
essentials, what France has been passing through during the past
|
|
two or three years, in the matter of periodical frights, horrors,
|
|
and shudderings.
|
|
|
|
In several details the parallels are quaintly exact. In
|
|
that day, for a man to speak out openly and proclaim himself an
|
|
enemy of negro slavery was simply to proclaim himself a madman.
|
|
For he was blaspheming against the holiest thing known to a
|
|
Missourian, and could NOT be in his right mind. For a man to
|
|
proclaim himself an anarchist in France, three years ago, was to
|
|
proclaim himself a madman--he could not be in his right mind.
|
|
|
|
Now the original first blasphemer against any institution
|
|
profoundly venerated by a community is quite sure to be in
|
|
earnest; his followers and imitators may be humbugs and self-
|
|
seekers, but he himself is sincere--his heart is in his protest.
|
|
|
|
Robert Hardy was our first ABOLITIONIST--awful name! He was
|
|
a journeyman cooper, and worked in the big cooper-shop belonging
|
|
to the great pork-packing establishment which was Marion City's
|
|
chief pride and sole source of prosperity. He was a New-
|
|
Englander, a stranger. And, being a stranger, he was of course
|
|
regarded as an inferior person--for that has been human nature
|
|
from Adam down--and of course, also, he was made to feel
|
|
unwelcome, for this is the ancient law with man and the other
|
|
animals. Hardy was thirty years old, and a bachelor; pale, given
|
|
to reverie and reading. He was reserved, and seemed to prefer
|
|
the isolation which had fallen to his lot. He was treated to
|
|
many side remarks by his fellows, but as he did not resent them
|
|
it was decided that he was a coward.
|
|
|
|
All of a sudden he proclaimed himself an abolitionist--
|
|
straight out and publicly! He said that negro slavery was a
|
|
crime, an infamy. For a moment the town was paralyzed with
|
|
astonishment; then it broke into a fury of rage and swarmed
|
|
toward the cooper-shop to lynch Hardy. But the Methodist
|
|
minister made a powerful speech to them and stayed their hands.
|
|
He proved to them that Hardy was insane and not responsible for
|
|
his words; that no man COULD be sane and utter such words.
|
|
|
|
So Hardy was saved. Being insane, he was allowed to go on
|
|
talking. He was found to be good entertainment. Several nights
|
|
running he made abolition speeches in the open air, and all the
|
|
town flocked to hear and laugh. He implored them to believe him
|
|
sane and sincere, and have pity on the poor slaves, and take
|
|
measurements for the restoration of their stolen rights, or in no
|
|
long time blood would flow--blood, blood, rivers of blood!
|
|
|
|
It was great fun. But all of a sudden the aspect of things
|
|
changed. A slave came flying from Palmyra, the county-seat, a
|
|
few miles back, and was about to escape in a canoe to Illinois
|
|
and freedom in the dull twilight of the approaching dawn, when
|
|
the town constable seized him. Hardy happened along and tried to
|
|
rescue the negro; there was a struggle, and the constable did not
|
|
come out of it alive. Hardly crossed the river with the negro,
|
|
and then came back to give himself up. All this took time, for
|
|
the Mississippi is not a French brook, like the Seine, the Loire,
|
|
and those other rivulets, but is a real river nearly a mile wide.
|
|
The town was on hand in force by now, but the Methodist preacher
|
|
and the sheriff had already made arrangements in the interest of
|
|
order; so Hardy was surrounded by a strong guard and safely
|
|
conveyed to the village calaboose in spite of all the effort of
|
|
the mob to get hold of him. The reader will have begun to
|
|
perceive that this Methodist minister was a prompt man; a prompt
|
|
man, with active hands and a good headpiece. Williams was his
|
|
name--Damon Williams; Damon Williams in public, Damnation Williams
|
|
in private, because he was so powerful on that theme and so frequent.
|
|
|
|
The excitement was prodigious. The constable was the first
|
|
man who had ever been killed in the town. The event was by long
|
|
odds the most imposing in the town's history. It lifted the
|
|
humble village into sudden importance; its name was in
|
|
everybody's mouth for twenty miles around. And so was the name
|
|
of Robert Hardy--Robert Hardy, the stranger, the despised. In a
|
|
day he was become the person of most consequence in the region,
|
|
the only person talked about. As to those other coopers, they
|
|
found their position curiously changed--they were important
|
|
people, or unimportant, now, in proportion as to how large or how
|
|
small had been their intercourse with the new celebrity. The two
|
|
or three who had really been on a sort of familiar footing with
|
|
him found themselves objects of admiring interest with the public
|
|
and of envy with their shopmates.
|
|
|
|
The village weekly journal had lately gone into new hands.
|
|
The new man was an enterprising fellow, and he made the most of
|
|
the tragedy. He issued an extra. Then he put up posters
|
|
promising to devote his whole paper to matters connected with the
|
|
great event--there would be a full and intensely interesting
|
|
biography of the murderer, and even a portrait of him. He was as
|
|
good as his word. He carved the portrait himself, on the back of
|
|
a wooden type--and a terror it was to look at. It made a great
|
|
commotion, for this was the first time the village paper had ever
|
|
contained a picture. The village was very proud. The output of
|
|
the paper was ten times as great as it had ever been before, yet
|
|
every copy was sold.
|
|
|
|
When the trial came on, people came from all the farms
|
|
around, and from Hannibal, and Quincy, and even from Keokuk; and
|
|
the court-house could hold only a fraction of the crowd that
|
|
applied for admission. The trial was published in the village
|
|
paper, with fresh and still more trying pictures of the accused.
|
|
|
|
Hardy was convicted, and hanged--a mistake. People came
|
|
from miles around to see the hanging; they brought cakes and
|
|
cider, also the women and children, and made a picnic of the
|
|
matter. It was the largest crowd the village had ever seen. The
|
|
rope that hanged Hardy was eagerly bought up, in inch samples,
|
|
for everybody wanted a memento of the memorable event.
|
|
|
|
|
|
Martyrdom gilded with notoriety has its fascinations.
|
|
Within one week afterward four young lightweights in the village
|
|
proclaimed themselves abolitionists! In life Hardy had not been
|
|
able to make a convert; everybody laughed at him; but nobody
|
|
could laugh at his legacy. The four swaggered around with their
|
|
slouch-hats pulled down over their faces, and hinted darkly at
|
|
awful possibilities. The people were troubled and afraid, and
|
|
showed it. And they were stunned, too; they could not understand
|
|
it. "Abolitionist" had always been a term of shame and horror;
|
|
yet here were four young men who were not only not ashamed to
|
|
bear that name, but were grimly proud of it. Respectable young
|
|
men they were, too--of good families, and brought up in the
|
|
church. Ed Smith, the printer's apprentice, nineteen, had been
|
|
the head Sunday-school boy, and had once recited three thousand
|
|
Bible verses without making a break. Dick Savage, twenty, the
|
|
baker's apprentice; Will Joyce, twenty-two, journeyman
|
|
blacksmith; and Henry Taylor, twenty-four, tobacco-stemmer--were
|
|
the other three. They were all of a sentimental cast; they were
|
|
all romance-readers; they all wrote poetry, such as it was; they
|
|
were all vain and foolish; but they had never before been
|
|
suspected of having anything bad in them.
|
|
|
|
They withdrew from society, and grew more and more
|
|
mysterious and dreadful. They presently achieved the distinction
|
|
of being denounced by names from the pulpit--which made an
|
|
immense stir! This was grandeur, this was fame. They were
|
|
envied by all the other young fellows now. This was natural.
|
|
Their company grew--grew alarmingly. They took a name. It was a
|
|
secret name, and was divulged to no outsider; publicly they were
|
|
simply the abolitionists. They had pass-words, grips, and signs;
|
|
they had secret meetings; their initiations were conducted with
|
|
gloomy pomps and ceremonies, at midnight.
|
|
|
|
They always spoke of Hardy as "the Martyr," and every little
|
|
while they moved through the principal street in procession--at
|
|
midnight, black-robed, masked, to the measured tap of the solemn
|
|
drum--on pilgrimage to the Martyr's grave, where they went
|
|
through with some majestic fooleries and swore vengeance upon his
|
|
murderers. They gave previous notice of the pilgrimage by small
|
|
posters, and warned everybody to keep indoors and darken all
|
|
houses along the route, and leave the road empty. These warnings
|
|
were obeyed, for there was a skull and crossbones at the top of
|
|
the poster.
|
|
|
|
When this kind of thing had been going on about eight weeks,
|
|
a quite natural thing happened. A few men of character and grit
|
|
woke up out of the nightmare of fear which had been stupefying
|
|
their faculties, and began to discharge scorn and scoffings at
|
|
themselves and the community for enduring this child's-play; and
|
|
at the same time they proposed to end it straightway. Everybody
|
|
felt an uplift; life was breathed into their dead spirits; their
|
|
courage rose and they began to feel like men again. This was on
|
|
a Saturday. All day the new feeling grew and strengthened; it
|
|
grew with a rush; it brought inspiration and cheer with it.
|
|
Midnight saw a united community, full of zeal and pluck, and with
|
|
a clearly defined and welcome piece of work in front of it. The
|
|
best organizer and strongest and bitterest talker on that great
|
|
Saturday was the Presbyterian clergyman who had denounced the
|
|
original four from his pulpit--Rev. Hiram Fletcher--and he
|
|
promised to use his pulpit in the public interest again now. On
|
|
the morrow he had revelations to make, he said--secrets of the
|
|
dreadful society.
|
|
|
|
But the revelations were never made. At half past two in
|
|
the morning the dead silence of the village was broken by a
|
|
crashing explosion, and the town patrol saw the preacher's house
|
|
spring in a wreck of whirling fragments into the sky. The
|
|
preacher was killed, together with a negro woman, his only slave
|
|
and servant.
|
|
|
|
The town was paralyzed again, and with reason. To struggle
|
|
against a visible enemy is a thing worth while, and there is a
|
|
plenty of men who stand always ready to undertake it; but to
|
|
struggle against an invisible one--an invisible one who sneaks in
|
|
and does his awful work in the dark and leaves no trace--that is
|
|
another matter. That is a thing to make the bravest tremble and
|
|
hold back.
|
|
|
|
The cowed populace were afraid to go to the funeral. The
|
|
man who was to have had a packed church to hear him expose and
|
|
denounce the common enemy had but a handful to see him buried.
|
|
The coroner's jury had brought in a verdict of "death by the
|
|
visitation of God," for no witness came forward; if any existed
|
|
they prudently kept out of the way. Nobody seemed sorry. Nobody
|
|
wanted to see the terrible secret society provoked into the
|
|
commission of further outrages. Everybody wanted the tragedy
|
|
hushed up, ignored, forgotten, if possible.
|
|
|
|
And so there was a bitter surprise and an unwelcome one when
|
|
Will Joyce, the blacksmith's journeyman, came out and proclaimed
|
|
himself the assassin! Plainly he was not minded to be robbed of
|
|
his glory. He made his proclamation, and stuck to it. Stuck to
|
|
it, and insisted upon a trial. Here was an ominous thing; here
|
|
was a new and peculiarly formidable terror, for a motive was
|
|
revealed here which society could not hope to deal with
|
|
successfully--VANITY, thirst for notoriety. If men were going to
|
|
kill for notoriety's sake, and to win the glory of newspaper
|
|
renown, a big trial, and a showy execution, what possible
|
|
invention of man could discourage or deter them? The town was in
|
|
a sort of panic; it did not know what to do.
|
|
|
|
However, the grand jury had to take hold of the matter--it
|
|
had no choice. It brought in a true bill, and presently the case
|
|
went to the county court. The trial was a fine sensation. The
|
|
prisoner was the principal witness for the prosecution. He gave
|
|
a full account of the assassination; he furnished even the
|
|
minutest particulars: how he deposited his keg of powder and
|
|
laid his train--from the house to such-and-such a spot; how
|
|
George Ronalds and Henry Hart came along just then, smoking, and
|
|
he borrowed Hart's cigar and fired the train with it, shouting,
|
|
"Down with all slave-tyrants!" and how Hart and Ronalds made no
|
|
effort to capture him, but ran away, and had never come forward
|
|
to testify yet.
|
|
|
|
But they had to testify now, and they did--and pitiful it
|
|
was to see how reluctant they were, and how scared. The crowded
|
|
house listened to Joyce's fearful tale with a profound and
|
|
breathless interest, and in a deep hush which was not broken till
|
|
he broke it himself, in concluding, with a roaring repetition of his
|
|
"Death to all slave-tyrants!"--which came so unexpectedly and so
|
|
startlingly that it made everyone present catch his breath and gasp.
|
|
|
|
The trial was put in the paper, with biography and large portrait,
|
|
with other slanderous and insane pictures, and the edition sold
|
|
beyond imagination.
|
|
|
|
The execution of Joyce was a fine and picturesque thing. It
|
|
drew a vast crowd. Good places in trees and seats on rail fences
|
|
sold for half a dollar apiece; lemonade and gingerbread-stands
|
|
had great prosperity. Joyce recited a furious and fantastic and
|
|
denunciatory speech on the scaffold which had imposing passages
|
|
of school-boy eloquence in it, and gave him a reputation on the
|
|
spot as an orator, and his name, later, in the society's records,
|
|
of the "Martyr Orator." He went to his death breathing slaughter and
|
|
charging his society to "avenge his murder." If he knew anything of
|
|
human nature he knew that to plenty of young fellows present in that
|
|
great crowd he was a grand hero--and enviably situated.
|
|
|
|
He was hanged. It was a mistake. Within a month from his
|
|
death the society which he had honored had twenty new members,
|
|
some of them earnest, determined men. They did not court
|
|
distinction in the same way, but they celebrated his martyrdom.
|
|
The crime which had been obscure and despised had become lofty
|
|
and glorified.
|
|
|
|
Such things were happening all over the country. Wild-
|
|
brained martyrdom was succeeded by uprising and organization.
|
|
Then, in natural order, followed riot, insurrection, and the
|
|
wrack and restitutions of war. It was bound to come, and it
|
|
would naturally come in that way. It has been the manner of
|
|
reform since the beginning of the world.
|
|
|
|
------------------------------------------------------------------
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
SWITZERLAND, THE CRADLE OF LIBERTY
|
|
|
|
|
|
Interlaken, Switzerland, 1891.
|
|
|
|
It is a good many years since I was in Switzerland last. In
|
|
that remote time there was only one ladder railway in the
|
|
country. That state of things is all changed. There isn't a
|
|
mountain in Switzerland now that hasn't a ladder railroad or two
|
|
up its back like suspenders; indeed, some mountains are latticed
|
|
with them, and two years hence all will be. In that day the
|
|
peasant of the high altitudes will have to carry a lantern when
|
|
he goes visiting in the night to keep from stumbling over
|
|
railroads that have been built since his last round. And also in
|
|
that day, if there shall remain a high-altitude peasant whose
|
|
potato-patch hasn't a railroad through it, it would make him as
|
|
conspicuous as William Tell.
|
|
|
|
However, there are only two best ways to travel through
|
|
Switzerland. The first best is afloat. The second best is by
|
|
open two-horse carriage. One can come from Lucerne to Interlaken
|
|
over the Brunig by ladder railroad in an hour or so now, but you
|
|
can glide smoothly in a carriage in ten, and have two hours for
|
|
luncheon at noon--for luncheon, not for rest. There is no
|
|
fatigue connected with the trip. One arrives fresh in spirit and
|
|
in person in the evening--no fret in his heart, no grime on his
|
|
face, no grit in his hair, not a cinder in his eye. This is the
|
|
right condition of mind and body, the right and due preparation
|
|
for the solemn event which closed the day--stepping with
|
|
metaphorically uncovered head into the presence of the most
|
|
impressive mountain mass that the globe can show--the Jungfrau.
|
|
The stranger's first feeling, when suddenly confronted by that
|
|
towering and awful apparition wrapped in its shroud of snow, is
|
|
breath-taking astonishment. It is as if heaven's gates had swung
|
|
open and exposed the throne.
|
|
|
|
It is peaceful here and pleasant at Interlaken. Nothing
|
|
going on--at least nothing but brilliant life-giving sunshine.
|
|
There are floods and floods of that. One may properly speak of
|
|
it as "going on," for it is full of the suggestion of activity;
|
|
the light pours down with energy, with visible enthusiasm. This
|
|
is a good atmosphere to be in, morally as well as physically.
|
|
After trying the political atmosphere of the neighboring
|
|
monarchies, it is healing and refreshing to breathe air that has
|
|
known no taint of slavery for six hundred years, and to come
|
|
among a people whose political history is great and fine, and
|
|
worthy to be taught in all schools and studied by all races and
|
|
peoples. For the struggle here throughout the centuries has not
|
|
been in the interest of any private family, or any church, but in
|
|
the interest of the whole body of the nation, and for shelter and
|
|
protection of all forms of belief. This fact is colossal. If
|
|
one would realize how colossal it is, and of what dignity and
|
|
majesty, let him contrast it with the purposes and objects of the
|
|
Crusades, the siege of York, the War of the Roses, and other
|
|
historic comedies of that sort and size.
|
|
|
|
Last week I was beating around the Lake of Four Cantons, and
|
|
I saw Rutli and Altorf. Rutli is a remote little patch of
|
|
meadow, but I do not know how any piece of ground could be holier
|
|
or better worth crossing oceans and continents to see, since it
|
|
was there that the great trinity of Switzerland joined hands six
|
|
centuries ago and swore the oath which set their enslaved and
|
|
insulted country forever free; and Altorf is also honorable
|
|
ground and worshipful, since it was there that William, surnamed
|
|
Tell (which interpreted means "The foolish talker"--that is to
|
|
say, the too-daring talker), refused to bow to Gessler's hat. Of
|
|
late years the prying student of history has been delighting
|
|
himself beyond measure over a wonderful find which he has made--
|
|
to wit, that Tell did not shoot the apple from his son's head.
|
|
To hear the students jubilate, one would suppose that the
|
|
question of whether Tell shot the apple or didn't was an
|
|
important matter; whereas it ranks in importance exactly with the
|
|
question of whether Washington chopped down the cherry-tree or
|
|
didn't. The deeds of Washington, the patriot, are the essential
|
|
thing; the cherry-tree incident is of no consequence. To prove
|
|
that Tell did shoot the apple from his son's head would merely
|
|
prove that he had better nerve than most men and was skillful
|
|
with a bow as a million others who preceded and followed him, but
|
|
not one whit more so. But Tell was more and better than a mere
|
|
marksman, more and better than a mere cool head; he was a type;
|
|
he stands for Swiss patriotism; in his person was represented a
|
|
whole people; his spirit was their spirit--the spirit which would
|
|
bow to none but God, the spirit which said this in words and
|
|
confirmed it with deeds. There have always been Tells in
|
|
Switzerland--people who would not bow. There was a sufficiency
|
|
of them at Rutli; there were plenty of them at Murten; plenty at
|
|
Grandson; there are plenty today. And the first of them all--the
|
|
very first, earliest banner-bearer of human freedom in this
|
|
world--was not a man, but a woman--Stauffacher's wife. There she
|
|
looms dim and great, through the haze of the centuries,
|
|
delivering into her husband's ear that gospel of revolt which was
|
|
to bear fruit in the conspiracy of Rutli and the birth of the
|
|
first free government the world had ever seen.
|
|
|
|
From this Victoria Hotel one looks straight across a flat of
|
|
trifling width to a lofty mountain barrier, which has a gateway
|
|
in it shaped like an inverted pyramid. Beyond this gateway
|
|
arises the vast bulk of the Jungfrau, a spotless mass of gleaming
|
|
snow, into the sky. The gateway, in the dark-colored barrier,
|
|
makes a strong frame for the great picture. The somber frame and
|
|
the glowing snow-pile are startlingly contrasted. It is this
|
|
frame which concentrates and emphasizes the glory of the Jungfrau
|
|
and makes it the most engaging and beguiling and fascinating
|
|
spectacle that exists on the earth. There are many mountains of
|
|
snow that are as lofty as the Jungfrau and as nobly proportioned,
|
|
but they lack the fame. They stand at large; they are intruded
|
|
upon and elbowed by neighboring domes and summits, and their
|
|
grandeur is diminished and fails of effect.
|
|
|
|
It is a good name, Jungfrau--Virgin. Nothing could be
|
|
whiter; nothing could be purer; nothing could be saintlier of
|
|
aspect. At six yesterday evening the great intervening barrier
|
|
seen through a faint bluish haze seemed made of air and
|
|
substanceless, so soft and rich it was, so shimmering where the
|
|
wandering lights touched it and so dim where the shadows lay.
|
|
Apparently it was a dream stuff, a work of the imagination,
|
|
nothing real about it. The tint was green, slightly varying
|
|
shades of it, but mainly very dark. The sun was down--as far as
|
|
that barrier was concerned, but not for the Jungfrau, towering
|
|
into the heavens beyond the gateway. She was a roaring
|
|
conflagration of blinding white.
|
|
|
|
|
|
It is said the Fridolin (the old Fridolin), a new saint, but
|
|
formerly a missionary, gave the mountain its gracious name. He
|
|
was an Irishman, son of an Irish king--there were thirty thousand
|
|
kings reigning in County Cork alone in his time, fifteen hundred
|
|
years ago. It got so that they could not make a living, there
|
|
was so much competition and wages got cut so. Some of them were
|
|
out of work months at a time, with wife and little children to
|
|
feed, and not a crust in the place. At last a particularly
|
|
severe winter fell upon the country, and hundreds of them were
|
|
reduced to mendicancy and were to be seen day after day in the
|
|
bitterest weather, standing barefoot in the snow, holding out
|
|
their crowns for alms. Indeed, they would have been obliged to
|
|
emigrate or starve but for a fortunate idea of Prince Fridolin's,
|
|
who started a labor-union, the first one in history, and got the
|
|
great bulk of them to join it. He thus won the general
|
|
gratitude, and they wanted to make him emperor--emperor over them
|
|
all--emperor of County Cork, but he said, No, walking delegate
|
|
was good enough for him. For behold! he was modest beyond his
|
|
years, and keen as a whip. To this day in Germany and
|
|
Switzerland, where St. Fridolin is revered and honored, the
|
|
peasantry speak of him affectionately as the first walking
|
|
delegate.
|
|
|
|
The first walk he took was into France and Germany,
|
|
missionarying--for missionarying was a better thing in those days
|
|
than it is in ours. All you had to do was to cure the savage's
|
|
sick daughter by a "miracle"--a miracle like the miracle of
|
|
Lourdes in our day, for instance--and immediately that head
|
|
savage was your convert, and filled to the eyes with a new
|
|
convert's enthusiasm. You could sit down and make yourself easy,
|
|
now. He would take an ax and convert the rest of the nation
|
|
himself. Charlemagne was that kind of a walking delegate.
|
|
|
|
Yes, there were great missionaries in those days, for the
|
|
methods were sure and the rewards great. We have no such
|
|
missionaries now, and no such methods.
|
|
|
|
But to continue the history of the first walking delegate,
|
|
if you are interested. I am interested myself because I have
|
|
seen his relics in Sackingen, and also the very spot where he
|
|
worked his great miracle--the one which won him his sainthood in
|
|
the papal court a few centuries later. To have seen these things
|
|
makes me feel very near to him, almost like a member of the
|
|
family, in fact. While wandering about the Continent he arrived
|
|
at the spot on the Rhine which is now occupied by Sackingen, and
|
|
proposed to settle there, but the people warned him off. He
|
|
appealed to the king of the Franks, who made him a present of the
|
|
whole region, people and all. He built a great cloister there
|
|
for women and proceeded to teach in it and accumulate more land.
|
|
There were two wealthy brothers in the neighborhood, Urso and
|
|
Landulph. Urso died and Fridolin claimed his estates. Landulph
|
|
asked for documents and papers. Fridolin had none to show. He
|
|
said the bequest had been made to him by word of mouth. Landulph
|
|
suggested that he produce a witness and said it in a way which he
|
|
thought was very witty, very sarcastic. This shows that he did
|
|
not know the walking delegate. Fridolin was not disturbed.
|
|
He said:
|
|
|
|
"Appoint your court. I will bring a witness."
|
|
|
|
The court thus created consisted of fifteen counts and
|
|
barons. A day was appointed for the trial of the case. On that
|
|
day the judges took their seats in state, and proclamation was
|
|
made that the court was ready for business. Five minutes, ten
|
|
minutes, fifteen minutes passed, and yet no Fridolin appeared.
|
|
Landulph rose, and was in the act of claiming judgment by default
|
|
when a strange clacking sound was heard coming up the stairs.
|
|
In another moment Fridolin entered at the door and came walking
|
|
in a deep hush down the middle aisle, with a tall skeleton
|
|
stalking in his rear.
|
|
|
|
Amazement and terror sat upon every countenance, for everybody
|
|
suspected that the skeleton was Urso's. It stopped before the
|
|
chief judge and raised its bony arm aloft and began to speak,
|
|
while all the assembled shuddered, for they could see the
|
|
words leak out between its ribs. It said:
|
|
|
|
"Brother, why dost thou disturb my blessed rest and withhold
|
|
by robbery the gift which I gave thee for the honor of God?"
|
|
|
|
It seems a strange thing and most irregular, but the verdict
|
|
was actually given against Landulph on the testimony of this
|
|
wandering rack-heap of unidentified bones. In our day a skeleton
|
|
would not be allowed to testify at all, for a skeleton has no
|
|
moral responsibility, and its word could not be believed on oath,
|
|
and this was probably one of them. However, the incident is
|
|
valuable as preserving to us a curious sample of the quaint laws
|
|
of evidence of that remote time--a time so remote, so far back
|
|
toward the beginning of original idiocy, that the difference
|
|
between a bench of judges and a basket of vegetables was as yet
|
|
so slight that we may say with all confidence that it didn't
|
|
really exist.
|
|
|
|
|
|
During several afternoons I have been engaged in an
|
|
interesting, maybe useful, piece of work--that is to say, I have
|
|
been trying to make the mighty Jungfrau earn her living--earn it
|
|
in a most humble sphere, but on a prodigious scale, on a
|
|
prodigious scale of necessity, for she couldn't do anything in a
|
|
small way with her size and style. I have been trying to make
|
|
her do service on a stupendous dial and check off the hours as
|
|
they glide along her pallid face up there against the sky, and
|
|
tell the time of day to the populations lying within fifty miles
|
|
of her and to the people in the moon, if they have a good
|
|
telescope there.
|
|
|
|
Until late in the afternoon the Jungfrau's aspect is that of
|
|
a spotless desert of snow set upon edge against the sky. But by
|
|
mid-afternoon some elevations which rise out of the western
|
|
border of the desert, whose presence you perhaps had not detected
|
|
or suspected up to that time, began to cast black shadows
|
|
eastward across the gleaming surface. At first there is only one
|
|
shadow; later there are two. Toward 4 P.M. the other day I was
|
|
gazing and worshiping as usual when I chanced to notice that
|
|
shadow No. 1 was beginning to take itself something of the shape
|
|
of the human profile. By four the back of the head was good, the
|
|
military cap was pretty good, the nose was bold and strong, the
|
|
upper lip sharp, but not pretty, and there was a great goatee
|
|
that shot straight aggressively forward from the chin.
|
|
|
|
At four-thirty the nose had changed its shape considerably,
|
|
and the altered slant of the sun had revealed and made
|
|
conspicuous a huge buttress or barrier of naked rock which was so
|
|
located as to answer very well for a shoulder or coat-collar to
|
|
this swarthy and indiscreet sweetheart who had stolen out there
|
|
right before everybody to pillow his head on the Virgin's white
|
|
breast and whisper soft sentimentalities to her in the sensuous
|
|
music of the crashing ice-domes and the boom and thunder of the
|
|
passing avalanche--music very familiar to his ear, for he had
|
|
heard it every afternoon at this hour since the day he first came
|
|
courting this child of the earth, who lives in the sky, and that
|
|
day is far, yes--for he was at this pleasant sport before the
|
|
Middle Ages drifted by him in the valley; before the Romans
|
|
marched past, and before the antique and recordless barbarians
|
|
fished and hunted here and wondered who he might be, and were
|
|
probably afraid of him; and before primeval man himself, just
|
|
emerged from his four-footed estate, stepped out upon this plain,
|
|
first sample of his race, a thousand centuries ago, and cast a
|
|
glad eye up there, judging he had found a brother human being and
|
|
consequently something to kill; and before the big saurians
|
|
wallowed here, still some eons earlier. Oh yes, a day so far
|
|
back that the eternal son was present to see that first visit; a
|
|
day so far back that neither tradition nor history was born yet
|
|
and a whole weary eternity must come and go before the restless
|
|
little creature, of whose face this stupendous Shadow Face was
|
|
the prophecy, would arrive in the earth and begin his shabby
|
|
career and think of a big thing. Oh, indeed yes; when you talk
|
|
about your poor Roman and Egyptian day-before-yesterday
|
|
antiquities, you should choose a time when the hoary Shadow Face
|
|
of the Jungfrau is not by. It antedates all antiquities known or
|
|
imaginable; for it was here the world itself created the theater
|
|
of future antiquities. And it is the only witness with a human
|
|
face that was there to see the marvel, and remains to us a
|
|
memorial of it.
|
|
|
|
By 4:40 P.M. the nose of the shadow is perfect and is
|
|
beautiful. It is black and is powerfully marked against the
|
|
upright canvas of glowing snow, and covers hundreds of acres of
|
|
that resplendent surface.
|
|
|
|
Meantime shadow No. 2 has been creeping out well to the rear
|
|
of the face west of it--and at five o'clock has assumed a shape
|
|
that has rather a poor and rude semblance of a shoe.
|
|
|
|
Meantime, also, the great Shadow Face has been gradually changing
|
|
for twenty minutes, and now, 5 P.M., it is becoming a quite fair
|
|
portrait of Roscoe Conkling. The likeness is there, and is
|
|
unmistakable. The goatee is shortened, now, and has an end;
|
|
formerly it hadn't any, but ran off eastward and arrived nowhere.
|
|
|
|
By 6 P.M. the face has dissolved and gone, and the goatee
|
|
has become what looks like the shadow of a tower with a pointed
|
|
roof, and the shoe had turned into what the printers call a
|
|
"fist" with a finger pointing.
|
|
|
|
If I were now imprisoned on a mountain summit a hundred
|
|
miles northward of this point, and was denied a timepiece, I
|
|
could get along well enough from four till six on clear days, for
|
|
I could keep trace of the time by the changing shapes of these
|
|
mighty shadows of the Virgin's front, the most stupendous dial I
|
|
am acquainted with, the oldest clock in the world by a couple of
|
|
million years.
|
|
|
|
I suppose I should not have noticed the forms of the shadows
|
|
if I hadn't the habit of hunting for faces in the clouds and in
|
|
mountain crags--a sort of amusement which is very entertaining
|
|
even when you don't find any, and brilliantly satisfying when you
|
|
do. I have searched through several bushels of photographs of
|
|
the Jungfrau here, but found only one with the Face in it, and in
|
|
this case it was not strictly recognizable as a face, which was
|
|
evidence that the picture was taken before four o'clock in the
|
|
afternoon, and also evidence that all the photographers have
|
|
persistently overlooked one of the most fascinating features of
|
|
the Jungfrau show. I say fascinating, because if you once detect
|
|
a human face produced on a great plan by unconscious nature, you
|
|
never get tired of watching it. At first you can't make another
|
|
person see it at all, but after he has made it out once he can't
|
|
see anything else afterward.
|
|
|
|
|
|
The King of Greece is a man who goes around quietly enough
|
|
when off duty. One day this summer he was traveling in an
|
|
ordinary first-class compartment, just in his other suit, the one
|
|
which he works the realm in when he is at home, and so he was not
|
|
looking like anybody in particular, but a good deal like
|
|
everybody in general. By and by a hearty and healthy German-
|
|
American got in and opened up a frank and interesting and
|
|
sympathetic conversation with him, and asked him a couple of
|
|
thousand questions about himself, which the king answered good-
|
|
naturedly, but in a more or less indefinite way as to private
|
|
particulars.
|
|
|
|
"Where do you live when you are at home?"
|
|
|
|
"In Greece."
|
|
|
|
"Greece! Well, now, that is just astonishing! Born there?"
|
|
|
|
"No."
|
|
|
|
"Do you speak Greek?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes."
|
|
|
|
"Now, ain't that strange! I never expected to live to see
|
|
that. What is your trade? I mean how do you get your living?
|
|
What is your line of business?"
|
|
|
|
"Well, I hardly know how to answer. I am only a kind of
|
|
foreman, on a salary; and the business--well, is a very general
|
|
kind of business."
|
|
|
|
"Yes, I understand--general jobbing--little of everything--
|
|
anything that there's money in."
|
|
|
|
"That's about it, yes."
|
|
|
|
"Are you traveling for the house now?"
|
|
|
|
"Well, partly; but not entirely. Of course I do a stroke of
|
|
business if it falls in the way--"
|
|
|
|
"Good! I like that in you! That's me every time. Go on."
|
|
|
|
"I was only going to say I am off on my vacation now."
|
|
|
|
"Well that's all right. No harm in that. A man works all
|
|
the better for a little let-up now and then. Not that I've been
|
|
used to having it myself; for I haven't. I reckon this is my
|
|
first. I was born in Germany, and when I was a couple of weeks
|
|
old shipped to America, and I've been there ever since, and
|
|
that's sixty-four years by the watch. I'm an American in
|
|
principle and a German at heart, and it's the boss combination.
|
|
Well, how do you get along, as a rule--pretty fair?"
|
|
|
|
"I've a rather large family--"
|
|
|
|
"There, that's it--big family and trying to raise them on a
|
|
salary. Now, what did you go to do that for?"
|
|
|
|
"Well, I thought--"
|
|
|
|
"Of course you did. You were young and confident and
|
|
thought you could branch out and make things go with a whirl, and
|
|
here you are, you see! But never mind about that. I'm not
|
|
trying to discourage you. Dear me! I've been just where you are
|
|
myself! You've got good grit; there's good stuff in you, I can
|
|
see that. You got a wrong start, that's the whole trouble. But
|
|
you hold your grip, and we'll see what can be done. Your case
|
|
ain't half as bad as it might be. You are going to come out all
|
|
right--I'm bail for that. Boys and girls?"
|
|
|
|
"My family? Yes, some of them are boys--"
|
|
|
|
"And the rest girls. It's just as I expected. But that's
|
|
all right, and it's better so, anyway. What are the boys doing--
|
|
learning a trade?"
|
|
|
|
"Well, no--I thought--"
|
|
|
|
"It's a big mistake. It's the biggest mistake you ever
|
|
made. You see that in your own case. A man ought always to have
|
|
a trade to fall back on. Now, I was harness-maker at first. Did
|
|
that prevent me from becoming one of the biggest brewers in
|
|
America? Oh no. I always had the harness trick to fall back on
|
|
in rough weather. Now, if you had learned how to make harness--
|
|
However, it's too late now; too late. But it's no good plan to
|
|
cry over spilt milk. But as to the boys, you see--what's to
|
|
become of them if anything happens to you?"
|
|
|
|
"It has been my idea to let the eldest one succeed me--"
|
|
|
|
"Oh, come! Suppose the firm don't want him?"
|
|
|
|
"I hadn't thought of that, but--"
|
|
|
|
"Now, look here; you want to get right down to business and
|
|
stop dreaming. You are capable of immense things--man. You can
|
|
make a perfect success in life. All you want is somebody to
|
|
steady you and boost you along on the right road. Do you own
|
|
anything in the business?"
|
|
|
|
"No--not exactly; but if I continue to give satisfaction, I
|
|
suppose I can keep my--"
|
|
|
|
"Keep your place--yes. Well, don't you depend on anything
|
|
of the kind. They'll bounce you the minute you get a little old
|
|
and worked out; they'll do it sure. Can't you manage somehow to
|
|
get into the firm? That's the great thing, you know."
|
|
|
|
"I think it is doubtful; very doubtful."
|
|
|
|
"Um--that's bad--yes, and unfair, too. Do you suppose that
|
|
if I should go there and have a talk with your people-- Look
|
|
here--do you think you could run a brewery?"
|
|
|
|
"I have never tried, but I think I could do it after a
|
|
little familiarity with the business."
|
|
|
|
The German was silent for some time. He did a good deal of
|
|
thinking, and the king waited curiously to see what the result
|
|
was going to be. Finally the German said:
|
|
|
|
"My mind's made up. You leave that crowd--you'll never
|
|
amount to anything there. In these old countries they never give
|
|
a fellow a show. Yes, you come over to America--come to my place
|
|
in Rochester; bring the family along. You shall have a show in
|
|
the business and the foremanship, besides. George--you said your
|
|
name was George?--I'll make a man of you. I give you my word.
|
|
You've never had a chance here, but that's all going to change.
|
|
By gracious! I'll give you a lift that'll make your hair curl!"
|
|
|
|
------------------------------------------------------------------
|
|
|
|
|
|
AT THE SHRINE OF ST. WAGNER
|
|
|
|
|
|
Bayreuth, Aug. 2d, 1891
|
|
|
|
|
|
It was at Nuremberg that we struck the inundation of music-
|
|
mad strangers that was rolling down upon Bayreuth. It had been
|
|
long since we had seen such multitudes of excited and struggling
|
|
people. It took a good half-hour to pack them and pair them into
|
|
the train--and it was the longest train we have yet seen in
|
|
Europe. Nuremberg had been witnessing this sort of experience a
|
|
couple of times a day for about two weeks. It gives one an
|
|
impressive sense of the magnitude of this biennial pilgrimage.
|
|
For a pilgrimage is what it is. The devotees come from the very
|
|
ends of the earth to worship their prophet in his own Kaaba in
|
|
his own Mecca.
|
|
|
|
If you are living in New York or San Francisco or Chicago or
|
|
anywhere else in America, and you conclude, by the middle of May,
|
|
that you would like to attend the Bayreuth opera two months and a
|
|
half later, you must use the cable and get about it immediately
|
|
or you will get no seats, and you must cable for lodgings, too.
|
|
Then if you are lucky you will get seats in the last row and
|
|
lodgings in the fringe of the town. If you stop to write you
|
|
will get nothing. There were plenty of people in Nuremberg when
|
|
we passed through who had come on pilgrimage without first
|
|
securing seats and lodgings. They had found neither in Bayreuth;
|
|
they had walked Bayreuth streets a while in sorrow, then had gone
|
|
to Nuremberg and found neither beds nor standing room, and had
|
|
walked those quaint streets all night, waiting for the hotels to
|
|
open and empty their guests into trains, and so make room for
|
|
these, their defeated brethren and sisters in the faith. They
|
|
had endured from thirty to forty hours' railroading on the
|
|
continent of Europe--with all which that implies of worry,
|
|
fatigue, and financial impoverishment--and all they had got and
|
|
all they were to get for it was handiness and accuracy in kicking
|
|
themselves, acquired by practice in the back streets of the two
|
|
towns when other people were in bed; for back they must go over
|
|
that unspeakable journey with their pious mission unfulfilled.
|
|
These humiliated outcasts had the frowsy and unbrushed and
|
|
apologetic look of wet cats, and their eyes were glazed with
|
|
drowsiness, their bodies were adroop from crown to sole, and all
|
|
kind-hearted people refrained from asking them if they had been
|
|
to Bayreuth and failed to connect, as knowing they would lie.
|
|
|
|
We reached here (Bayreuth) about mid-afternoon of a rainy
|
|
Saturday. We were of the wise, and had secured lodgings and
|
|
opera seats months in advance.
|
|
|
|
I am not a musical critic, and did not come here to write
|
|
essays about the operas and deliver judgment upon their merits.
|
|
The little children of Bayreuth could do that with a finer
|
|
sympathy and a broader intelligence than I. I only care to bring
|
|
four or five pilgrims to the operas, pilgrims able to appreciate
|
|
them and enjoy them. What I write about the performance to put
|
|
in my odd time would be offered to the public as merely a cat's
|
|
view of a king, and not of didactic value.
|
|
|
|
Next day, which was Sunday, we left for the opera-house--
|
|
that is to say, the Wagner temple--a little after the middle of
|
|
the afternoon. The great building stands all by itself, grand
|
|
and lonely, on a high ground outside the town. We were warned
|
|
that if we arrived after four o'clock we should be obliged to pay
|
|
two dollars and a half extra by way of fine. We saved that; and
|
|
it may be remarked here that this is the only opportunity that
|
|
Europe offers of saving money. There was a big crowd in the
|
|
grounds about the building, and the ladies' dresses took the sun
|
|
with fine effect. I do not mean to intimate that the ladies were
|
|
in full dress, for that was not so. The dresses were pretty, but
|
|
neither sex was in evening dress.
|
|
|
|
The interior of the building is simple--severely so; but
|
|
there is no occasion for color and decoration, since the people
|
|
sit in the dark. The auditorium has the shape of a keystone,
|
|
with the stage at the narrow end. There is an aisle on each
|
|
side, but no aisle in the body of the house. Each row of seats
|
|
extends in an unbroken curve from one side of the house to the
|
|
other. There are seven entrance doors on each side of the
|
|
theater and four at the butt, eighteen doors to admit and emit
|
|
1,650 persons. The number of the particular door by which you
|
|
are to enter the house or leave it is printed on your ticket, and
|
|
you can use no door but that one. Thus, crowding and confusion
|
|
are impossible. Not so many as a hundred people use any one
|
|
door. This is better than having the usual (and useless)
|
|
elaborate fireproof arrangements. It is the model theater of the
|
|
world. It can be emptied while the second hand of a watch makes
|
|
its circuit. It would be entirely safe, even if it were built of
|
|
lucifer matches.
|
|
|
|
If your seat is near the center of a row and you enter late
|
|
you must work your way along a rank of about twenty-five ladies
|
|
and gentlemen to get to it. Yet this causes no trouble, for
|
|
everybody stands up until all the seats are full, and the filling
|
|
is accomplished in a very few minutes. Then all sit down, and
|
|
you have a solid mass of fifteen hundred heads, making a steep
|
|
cellar-door slant from the rear of the house down to the stage.
|
|
|
|
All the lights were turned low, so low that the congregation
|
|
sat in a deep and solemn gloom. The funereal rustling of dresses
|
|
and the low buzz of conversation began to die swiftly down, and
|
|
presently not the ghost of a sound was left. This profound and
|
|
increasingly impressive stillness endured for some time--the best
|
|
preparation for music, spectacle, or speech conceivable. I should
|
|
think our show people would have invented or imported that simple
|
|
and impressive device for securing and solidifying the attention
|
|
of an audience long ago; instead of which there continue to this
|
|
day to open a performance against a deadly competition in the
|
|
form of noise, confusion, and a scattered interest.
|
|
|
|
Finally, out of darkness and distance and mystery soft rich
|
|
notes rose upon the stillness, and from his grave the dead
|
|
magician began to weave his spells about his disciples and steep
|
|
their souls in his enchantments. There was something strangely
|
|
impressive in the fancy which kept intruding itself that the
|
|
composer was conscious in his grave of what was going on here,
|
|
and that these divine souls were the clothing of thoughts which
|
|
were at this moment passing through his brain, and not recognized
|
|
and familiar ones which had issued from it at some former time.
|
|
|
|
The entire overture, long as it was, was played to a dark
|
|
house with the curtain down. It was exquisite; it was delicious.
|
|
But straightway thereafter, or course, came the singing, and it
|
|
does seem to me that nothing can make a Wagner opera absolutely
|
|
perfect and satisfactory to the untutored but to leave out the
|
|
vocal parts. I wish I could see a Wagner opera done in pantomime
|
|
once. Then one would have the lovely orchestration unvexed to
|
|
listen to and bathe his spirit in, and the bewildering beautiful
|
|
scenery to intoxicate his eyes with, and the dumb acting couldn't
|
|
mar these pleasures, because there isn't often anything in the
|
|
Wagner opera that one would call by such a violent name as
|
|
acting; as a rule all you would see would be a couple of silent
|
|
people, one of them standing still, the other catching flies. Of
|
|
course I do not really mean that he would be catching flies; I
|
|
only mean that the usual operatic gestures which consist in
|
|
reaching first one hand out into the air and then the other might
|
|
suggest the sport I speak of if the operator attended strictly to
|
|
business and uttered no sound.
|
|
|
|
This present opera was "Parsifal." Madame Wagner does not
|
|
permit its representation anywhere but in Bayreuth. The first
|
|
act of the three occupied two hours, and I enjoyed that in spite
|
|
of the singing.
|
|
|
|
I trust that I know as well as anybody that singing is one
|
|
of the most entrancing and bewitching and moving and eloquent of
|
|
all the vehicles invented by man for the conveying of feeling;
|
|
but it seems to me that the chief virtue in song is melody, air,
|
|
tune, rhythm, or what you please to call it, and that when this
|
|
feature is absent what remains is a picture with the color left
|
|
out. I was not able to detect in the vocal parts of "Parsifal"
|
|
anything that might with confidence be called rhythm or tune or
|
|
melody; one person performed at a time--and a long time, too--
|
|
often in a noble, and always in a high-toned, voice; but he only
|
|
pulled out long notes, then some short ones, then another long
|
|
one, then a sharp, quick, peremptory bark or two--and so on and
|
|
so on; and when he was done you saw that the information which he
|
|
had conveyed had not compensated for the disturbance. Not
|
|
always, but pretty often. If two of them would but put in a duet
|
|
occasionally and blend the voices; but no, they don't do that.
|
|
The great master, who knew so well how to make a hundred
|
|
instruments rejoice in unison and pour out their souls in mingled
|
|
and melodious tides of delicious sound, deals only in barren
|
|
solos when he puts in the vocal parts. It may be that he was
|
|
deep, and only added the singing to his operas for the sake of
|
|
the contrast it would make with the music. Singing! It does
|
|
seem the wrong name to apply to it. Strictly described, it is a
|
|
practicing of difficult and unpleasant intervals, mainly. An
|
|
ignorant person gets tired of listening to gymnastic intervals in
|
|
the long run, no matter how pleasant they may be. In "Parsifal"
|
|
there is a hermit named Gurnemanz who stands on the stage in one
|
|
spot and practices by the hour, while first one and then another
|
|
character of the cast endures what he can of it and then retires
|
|
to die.
|
|
|
|
During the evening there was an intermission of three-
|
|
quarters of an hour after the first act and one an hour long
|
|
after the second. In both instances the theater was totally
|
|
emptied. People who had previously engaged tables in the one
|
|
sole eating-house were able to put in their time very
|
|
satisfactorily; the other thousand went hungry. The opera was
|
|
concluded at ten in the evening or a little later. When we
|
|
reached home we had been gone more than seven hours. Seven hours
|
|
at five dollars a ticket is almost too much for the money.
|
|
|
|
While browsing about the front yard among the crowd between
|
|
the acts I encountered twelve or fifteen friends from different
|
|
parts of America, and those of them who were most familiar with
|
|
Wagner said that "Parsifal" seldom pleased at first, but that
|
|
after one had heard it several times it was almost sure to become
|
|
a favorite. It seemed impossible, but it was true, for the
|
|
statement came from people whose word was not to be doubted.
|
|
|
|
And I gathered some further information. On the ground I
|
|
found part of a German musical magazine, and in it a letter
|
|
written by Uhlic thirty-three years ago, in which he defends the
|
|
scorned and abused Wagner against people like me, who found fault
|
|
with the comprehensive absence of what our kind regards as
|
|
singing. Uhlic says Wagner despised "JENE PLAPPERUDE MUSIC," and
|
|
therefore "runs, trills, and SCHNORKEL are discarded by him." I
|
|
don't know what a SCHNORKEL is, but now that I know it has been
|
|
left out of these operas I never have missed so much in my life.
|
|
And Uhlic further says that Wagner's song is true: that it is
|
|
"simply emphasized intoned speech." That certainly describes it
|
|
--in "Parsifal" and some of the operas; and if I understand
|
|
Uhlic's elaborate German he apologizes for the beautiful airs in
|
|
"Tannh:auser." Very well; now that Wagner and I understand each
|
|
other, perhaps we shall get along better, and I shall stop
|
|
calling Waggner, on the American plan, and thereafter call him
|
|
Waggner as per German custom, for I feel entirely friendly now.
|
|
The minute we get reconciled to a person, how willing we are to
|
|
throw aside little needless puctilios and pronounce his name
|
|
right!
|
|
|
|
Of course I came home wondering why people should come from
|
|
all corners of America to hear these operas, when we have lately
|
|
had a season or two of them in New York with these same singers
|
|
in the several parts, and possibly this same orchestra. I
|
|
resolved to think that out at all hazards.
|
|
|
|
TUESDAY.--Yesterday they played the only operatic favorite I
|
|
have ever had--an opera which has always driven me mad with
|
|
ignorant delight whenever I have heard it--"Tannh:auser." I
|
|
heard it first when I was a youth; I heard it last in the last
|
|
German season in New York. I was busy yesterday and I did not
|
|
intend to go, knowing I should have another "Tannh:auser"
|
|
opportunity in a few days; but after five o'clock I found myself
|
|
free and walked out to the opera-house and arrived about the
|
|
beginning of the second act. My opera ticket admitted me to the
|
|
grounds in front, past the policeman and the chain, and I thought
|
|
I would take a rest on a bench for an hour and two and wait for
|
|
the third act.
|
|
|
|
In a moment or so the first bugles blew, and the multitude
|
|
began to crumble apart and melt into the theater. I will explain
|
|
that this bugle-call is one of the pretty features here. You
|
|
see, the theater is empty, and hundreds of the audience are a
|
|
good way off in the feeding-house; the first bugle-call is blown
|
|
about a quarter of an hour before time for the curtain to rise.
|
|
This company of buglers, in uniform, march out with military step
|
|
and send out over the landscape a few bars of the theme of the
|
|
approaching act, piercing the distances with the gracious notes;
|
|
then they march to the other entrance and repeat. Presently they
|
|
do this over again. Yesterday only about two hundred people were
|
|
still left in front of the house when the second call was blown;
|
|
in another half-minute they would have been in the house, but
|
|
then a thing happened which delayed them--the only solitary thing
|
|
in this world which could be relied on with certainty to
|
|
accomplish it, I suppose--an imperial princess appeared in the
|
|
balcony above them. They stopped dead in their tracks and began
|
|
to gaze in a stupor of gratitude and satisfaction. The lady
|
|
presently saw that she must disappear or the doors would be
|
|
closed upon these worshipers, so she returned to her box. This
|
|
daughter-in-law of an emperor was pretty; she had a kind face;
|
|
she was without airs; she is known to be full of common human
|
|
sympathies. There are many kinds of princesses, but this kind is
|
|
the most harmful of all, for wherever they go they reconcile
|
|
people to monarchy and set back the clock of progress. The
|
|
valuable princes, the desirable princes, are the czars and their
|
|
sort. By their mere dumb presence in the world they cover with
|
|
derision every argument that can be invented in favor of royalty
|
|
by the most ingenious casuist. In his time the husband of this
|
|
princess was valuable. He led a degraded life, he ended it with
|
|
his own hand in circumstances and surroundings of a hideous sort,
|
|
and was buried like a god.
|
|
|
|
In the opera-house there is a long loft back of the
|
|
audience, a kind of open gallery, in which princes are displayed.
|
|
It is sacred to them; it is the holy of holies. As soon as the
|
|
filling of the house is about complete the standing multitude
|
|
turn and fix their eyes upon the princely layout and gaze mutely
|
|
and longingly and adoringly and regretfully like sinners looking
|
|
into heaven. They become rapt, unconscious, steeped in worship.
|
|
There is no spectacle anywhere that is more pathetic than this.
|
|
It is worth crossing many oceans to see. It is somehow not the
|
|
same gaze that people rivet upon a Victor Hugo, or Niagara, or
|
|
the bones of the mastodon, or the guillotine of the Revolution,
|
|
or the great pyramid, or distant Vesuvius smoking in the sky, or
|
|
any man long celebrated to you by his genius and achievements, or
|
|
thing long celebrated to you by the praises of books and
|
|
pictures--no, that gaze is only the gaze of intense curiosity,
|
|
interest, wonder, engaged in drinking delicious deep draughts
|
|
that taste good all the way down and appease and satisfy the
|
|
thirst of a lifetime. Satisfy it--that is the word. Hugo and
|
|
the mastodon will still have a degree of intense interest
|
|
thereafter when encountered, but never anything approaching the
|
|
ecstasy of that first view. The interest of a prince is
|
|
different. It may be envy, it may be worship, doubtless it is a
|
|
mixture of both--and it does not satisfy its thirst with one
|
|
view, or even noticeably diminish it. Perhaps the essence of the
|
|
thing is the value which men attach to a valuable something which
|
|
has come by luck and not been earned. A dollar picked up in the
|
|
road is more satisfaction to you than the ninety-and-nine which
|
|
you had to work for, and money won at faro or in stocks snuggles
|
|
into your heart in the same way. A prince picks up grandeur,
|
|
power, and a permanent holiday and gratis support by a pure
|
|
accident, the accident of birth, and he stands always before the
|
|
grieved eye of poverty and obscurity a monumental representative
|
|
of luck. And then--supremest value of all-his is the only high
|
|
fortune on the earth which is secure. The commercial millionaire
|
|
may become a beggar; the illustrious statesman can make a vital
|
|
mistake and be dropped and forgotten; the illustrious general can
|
|
lose a decisive battle and with it the consideration of men; but
|
|
once a prince always a prince--that is to say, an imitation god,
|
|
and neither hard fortune nor an infamous character nor an addled
|
|
brain nor the speech of an ass can undeify him. By common
|
|
consent of all the nations and all the ages the most valuable
|
|
thing in this world is the homage of men, whether deserved or
|
|
undeserved. It follows without doubt or question, then, that the
|
|
most desirable position possible is that of a prince. And I
|
|
think it also follows that the so-called usurpations with which
|
|
history is littered are the most excusable misdemeanors which men
|
|
have committed. To usurp a usurpation--that is all it amounts
|
|
to, isn't it?
|
|
|
|
A prince is not to us what he is to a European, of course.
|
|
We have not been taught to regard him as a god, and so one good
|
|
look at him is likely to so nearly appease our curiosity as to
|
|
make him an object of no greater interest the next time. We want
|
|
a fresh one. But it is not so with the European. I am quite
|
|
sure of it. The same old one will answer; he never stales.
|
|
Eighteen years ago I was in London and I called at an
|
|
Englishman's house on a bleak and foggy and dismal December
|
|
afternoon to visit his wife and married daughter by appointment.
|
|
I waited half an hour and then they arrived, frozen. They
|
|
explained that they had been delayed by an unlooked-for
|
|
circumstance: while passing in the neighborhood of Marlborough
|
|
House they saw a crowd gathering and were told that the Prince of
|
|
Wales was about to drive out, so they stopped to get a sight of
|
|
him. They had waited half an hour on the sidewalk, freezing with
|
|
the crowd, but were disappointed at last--the Prince had changed
|
|
his mind. I said, with a good deal of surprise, "Is it possible
|
|
that you two have lived in London all your lives and have never
|
|
seen the Prince of Wales?"
|
|
|
|
Apparently it was their turn to be surprised, for they
|
|
exclaimed: "What an idea! Why, we have seen him hundreds of
|
|
times."
|
|
|
|
They had seem him hundreds of times, yet they had waited
|
|
half an hour in the gloom and the bitter cold, in the midst of a
|
|
jam of patients from the same asylum, on the chance of seeing him
|
|
again. It was a stupefying statement, but one is obliged to
|
|
believe the English, even when they say a thing like that. I
|
|
fumbled around for a remark, and got out this one:
|
|
|
|
"I can't understand it at all. If I had never seen General
|
|
Grant I doubt if I would do that even to get a sight of him."
|
|
With a slight emphasis on the last word.
|
|
|
|
Their blank faces showed that they wondered where the
|
|
parallel came in. Then they said, blankly: "Of course not. He
|
|
is only a President."
|
|
|
|
It is doubtless a fact that a prince is a permanent
|
|
interest, an interest not subject to deterioration. The general
|
|
who was never defeated, the general who never held a council of
|
|
war, the only general who ever commanded a connected battle-front
|
|
twelve hundred miles long, the smith who welded together the
|
|
broken parts of a great republic and re-established it where it
|
|
is quite likely to outlast all the monarchies present and to
|
|
come, was really a person of no serious consequence to these
|
|
people. To them, with their training, my General was only a man,
|
|
after all, while their Prince was clearly much more than that--a
|
|
being of a wholly unsimilar construction and constitution, and
|
|
being of no more blood and kinship with men than are the serene
|
|
eternal lights of the firmament with the poor dull tallow candles
|
|
of commerce that sputter and die and leave nothing behind but a
|
|
pinch of ashes and a stink.
|
|
|
|
I saw the last act of "Tannh:auser." I sat in the gloom and
|
|
the deep stillness, waiting--one minute, two minutes, I do not
|
|
know exactly how long--then the soft music of the hidden
|
|
orchestra began to breathe its rich, long sighs out from under
|
|
the distant stage, and by and by the drop-curtain parted in the
|
|
middle and was drawn softly aside, disclosing the twilighted wood
|
|
and a wayside shrine, with a white-robed girl praying and a man
|
|
standing near. Presently that noble chorus of men's voices was
|
|
heard approaching, and from that moment until the closing of the
|
|
curtain it was music, just music--music to make one drunk with
|
|
pleasure, music to make one take scrip and staff and beg his way
|
|
round the globe to hear it.
|
|
|
|
To such as are intending to come here in the Wagner season
|
|
next year I wish to say, bring your dinner-pail with you. If you
|
|
do, you will never cease to be thankful. If you do not, you will
|
|
find it a hard fight to save yourself from famishing in Bayreuth.
|
|
Bayreuth is merely a large village, and has no very large hotels
|
|
or eating-houses. The principal inns are the Golden Anchor and
|
|
the Sun. At either of these places you can get an excellent
|
|
meal--no, I mean you can go there and see other people get it.
|
|
There is no charge for this. The town is littered with
|
|
restaurants, but they are small and bad, and they are overdriven
|
|
with custom. You must secure a table hours beforehand, and often
|
|
when you arrive you will find somebody occupying it. We have had
|
|
this experience. We have had a daily scramble for life; and when
|
|
I say we, I include shoals of people. I have the impression that
|
|
the only people who do not have to scramble are the veterans--the
|
|
disciples who have been here before and know the ropes. I think
|
|
they arrive about a week before the first opera, and engage all
|
|
the tables for the season. My tribe had tried all kinds of
|
|
places--some outside of the town, a mile or two--and have
|
|
captured only nibblings and odds and ends, never in any instance
|
|
a complete and satisfying meal. Digestible? No, the reverse.
|
|
These odds and ends are going to serve as souvenirs of Bayreuth,
|
|
and in that regard their value is not to be overestimated.
|
|
Photographs fade, bric-a-brac gets lost, busts of Wagner get
|
|
broken, but once you absorb a Bayreuth-restaurant meal it is your
|
|
possession and your property until the time comes to embalm the
|
|
rest of you. Some of these pilgrims here become, in effect,
|
|
cabinets; cabinets of souvenirs of Bayreuth. It is believed
|
|
among scientists that you could examine the crop of a dead
|
|
Bayreuth pilgrim anywhere in the earth and tell where he came
|
|
from. But I like this ballast. I think a "Hermitage" scrap-up
|
|
at eight in the evening, when all the famine-breeders have been
|
|
there and laid in their mementoes and gone, is the quietest thing
|
|
you can lay on your keelson except gravel.
|
|
|
|
THURSDAY.--They keep two teams of singers in stock for the
|
|
chief roles, and one of these is composed of the most renowned
|
|
artists in the world, with Materna and Alvary in the lead. I
|
|
suppose a double team is necessary; doubtless a single team would
|
|
die of exhaustion in a week, for all the plays last from four in
|
|
the afternoon till ten at night. Nearly all the labor falls upon
|
|
the half-dozen head singers, and apparently they are required to
|
|
furnish all the noise they can for the money. If they feel a
|
|
soft, whispery, mysterious feeling they are required to open out
|
|
and let the public know it. Operas are given only on Sundays,
|
|
Mondays, Wednesdays, and Thursdays, with three days of ostensible
|
|
rest per week, and two teams to do the four operas; but the
|
|
ostensible rest is devoted largely to rehearsing. It is said
|
|
that the off days are devoted to rehearsing from some time in the
|
|
morning till ten at night. Are there two orchestras also? It is
|
|
quite likely, since there are one hundred and ten names in the
|
|
orchestra list.
|
|
|
|
Yesterday the opera was "Tristan and Isolde." I have seen
|
|
all sorts of audiences--at theaters, operas, concerts, lectures,
|
|
sermons, funerals--but none which was twin to the Wagner audience
|
|
of Bayreuth for fixed and reverential attention. Absolute
|
|
attention and petrified retention to the end of an act of the
|
|
attitude assumed at the beginning of it. You detect no movement
|
|
in the solid mass of heads and shoulders. You seem to sit with
|
|
the dead in the gloom of a tomb. You know that they are being
|
|
stirred to their profoundest depths; that there are times when
|
|
they want to rise and wave handkerchiefs and shout their
|
|
approbation, and times when tears are running down their faces,
|
|
and it would be a relief to free their pent emotions in sobs or
|
|
screams; yet you hear not one utterance till the curtain swings
|
|
together and the closing strains have slowly faded out and died;
|
|
then the dead rise with one impulse and shake the building with
|
|
their applause. Every seat is full in the first act; there is
|
|
not a vacant one in the last. If a man would be conspicuous, let
|
|
him come here and retire from the house in the midst of an act.
|
|
It would make him celebrated.
|
|
|
|
This audience reminds me of nothing I have ever seen and of
|
|
nothing I have read about except the city in the Arabian tale
|
|
where all the inhabitants have been turned to brass and the
|
|
traveler finds them after centuries mute, motionless, and still
|
|
retaining the attitudes which they last knew in life. Here the
|
|
Wagner audience dress as they please, and sit in the dark and
|
|
worship in silence. At the Metropolitan in New York they sit in
|
|
a glare, and wear their showiest harness; they hum airs, they
|
|
squeak fans, they titter, and they gabble all the time. In some
|
|
of the boxes the conversation and laughter are so loud as to
|
|
divide the attention of the house with the stage. In large
|
|
measure the Metropolitan is a show-case for rich fashionables who
|
|
are not trained in Wagnerian music and have no reverence for it,
|
|
but who like to promote art and show their clothes.
|
|
|
|
Can that be an agreeable atmosphere to persons in whom this
|
|
music produces a sort of divine ecstasy and to whom its creator
|
|
is a very deity, his stage a temple, the works of his brain and
|
|
hands consecrated things, and the partaking of them with eye and
|
|
ear a sacred solemnity? Manifestly, no. Then, perhaps the
|
|
temporary expatriation, the tedious traversing of seas and
|
|
continents, the pilgrimage to Bayreuth stands explained. These
|
|
devotees would worship in an atmosphere of devotion. It is only
|
|
here that they can find it without fleck or blemish or any
|
|
worldly pollution. In this remote village there are no sights to
|
|
see, there is no newspaper to intrude the worries of the distant
|
|
world, there is nothing going on, it is always Sunday. The
|
|
pilgrim wends to his temple out of town, sits out his moving
|
|
service, returns to his bed with his heart and soul and his body
|
|
exhausted by long hours of tremendous emotion, and he is in no
|
|
fit condition to do anything but to lie torpid and slowly gather
|
|
back life and strength for the next service. This opera of
|
|
"Tristan and Isolde" last night broke the hearts of all witnesses
|
|
who were of the faith, and I know of some who have heard of many
|
|
who could not sleep after it, but cried the night away. I feel
|
|
strongly out of place here. Sometimes I feel like the sane
|
|
person in a community of the mad; sometimes I feel like the one
|
|
blind man where all others see; the one groping savage in the
|
|
college of the learned, and always, during service, I feel like a
|
|
heretic in heaven.
|
|
|
|
But by no means do I ever overlook or minify the fact that
|
|
this is one of the most extraordinary experiences of my life. I
|
|
have never seen anything like this before. I have never seen
|
|
anything so great and fine and real as this devotion.
|
|
|
|
FRIDAY.--Yesterday's opera was "Parsifal" again. The others
|
|
went and they show marked advance in appreciation; but I went
|
|
hunting for relics and reminders of the Margravine Wilhelmina,
|
|
she of the imperishable "Memoirs." I am properly grateful to her
|
|
for her (unconscious) satire upon monarchy and nobility, and
|
|
therefore nothing which her hand touched or her eye looked upon
|
|
is indifferent to me. I am her pilgrim; the rest of this
|
|
multitude here are Wagner's.
|
|
|
|
TUESDAY.--I have seen my last two operas; my season is
|
|
ended, and we cross over into Bohemia this afternoon. I was
|
|
supposing that my musical regeneration was accomplished and
|
|
perfected, because I enjoyed both of these operas, singing and
|
|
all, and, moreover, one of them was "Parsifal," but the experts
|
|
have disenchanted me. They say:
|
|
|
|
"Singing! That wasn't singing; that was the wailing,
|
|
screeching of third-rate obscurities, palmed off on us in the
|
|
interest of economy."
|
|
|
|
Well, I ought to have recognized the sign--the old, sure
|
|
sign that has never failed me in matters of art. Whenever I
|
|
enjoy anything in art it means that it is mighty poor. The
|
|
private knowledge of this fact has saved me from going to pieces
|
|
with enthusiasm in front of many and many a chromo. However, my
|
|
base instinct does bring me profit sometimes; I was the only man
|
|
out of thirty-two hundred who got his money back on those two operas.
|
|
|
|
|
|
WILLIAM DEAN HOWELLS
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Is it true that the sun of a man's mentality touches noon at
|
|
forty and then begins to wane toward setting? Doctor Osler is
|
|
charged with saying so. Maybe he said it, maybe he didn't; I
|
|
don't know which it is. But if he said it, I can point him to a
|
|
case which proves his rule. Proves it by being an exception to
|
|
it. To this place I nominate Mr. Howells.
|
|
|
|
I read his VENETIAN DAYS about forty years ago. I compare
|
|
it with his paper on Machiavelli in a late number of HARPER, and
|
|
I cannot find that his English has suffered any impairment. For
|
|
forty years his English has been to me a continual delight and
|
|
astonishment. In the sustained exhibition of certain great
|
|
qualities--clearness, compression, verbal exactness, and unforced
|
|
and seemingly unconscious felicity of phrasing--he is, in my
|
|
belief, without his peer in the English-writing world. SUSTAINED.
|
|
I entrench myself behind that protecting word. There are others
|
|
who exhibit those great qualities as greatly as he does, but only
|
|
by intervaled distributions of rich moonlight, with stretches of
|
|
veiled and dimmer landscape between; whereas Howells's moon sails
|
|
cloudless skies all night and all the nights.
|
|
|
|
In the matter of verbal exactness Mr. Howells has no superior,
|
|
I suppose. He seems to be almost always able to find that
|
|
elusive and shifty grain of gold, the RIGHT WORD. Others have
|
|
to put up with approximations, more or less frequently; he
|
|
has better luck. To me, the others are miners working with the
|
|
gold-pan--of necessity some of the gold washes over and escapes;
|
|
whereas, in my fancy, he is quicksilver raiding down a riffle--no
|
|
grain of the metal stands much chance of eluding him. A powerful
|
|
agent is the right word: it lights the reader's way and makes it
|
|
plain; a close approximation to it will answer, and much
|
|
traveling is done in a well-enough fashion by its help, but we do
|
|
not welcome it and applaud it and rejoice in it as we do when THE
|
|
right one blazes out on us. Whenever we come upon one of those
|
|
intensely right words in a book or a newspaper the resulting
|
|
effect is physical as well as spiritual, and electrically prompt:
|
|
it tingles exquisitely around through the walls of the mouth and
|
|
tastes as tart and crisp and good as the autumn-butter that
|
|
creams the sumac-berry. One has no time to examine the word and
|
|
vote upon its rank and standing, the automatic recognition of its
|
|
supremacy is so immediate. There is a plenty of acceptable
|
|
literature which deals largely in approximations, but it may be
|
|
likened to a fine landscape seen through the rain; the right word
|
|
would dismiss the rain, then you would see it better. It doesn't
|
|
rain when Howells is at work.
|
|
|
|
And where does he get the easy and effortless flow of his
|
|
speech? and its cadenced and undulating rhythm? and its
|
|
architectural felicities of construction, its graces of
|
|
expression, its pemmican quality of compression, and all that?
|
|
Born to him, no doubt. All in shining good order in the
|
|
beginning, all extraordinary; and all just as shining, just as
|
|
extraordinary today, after forty years of diligent wear and tear
|
|
and use. He passed his fortieth year long and long ago; but I
|
|
think his English of today--his perfect English, I wish to say --
|
|
can throw down the glove before his English of that antique time
|
|
and not be afraid.
|
|
|
|
I will got back to the paper on Machiavelli now, and ask the
|
|
reader to examine this passage from it which I append. I do not
|
|
mean examine it in a bird's-eye way; I mean search it, study it.
|
|
And, of course, read it aloud. I may be wrong, still it is my
|
|
conviction that one cannot get out of finely wrought literature
|
|
all that is in it by reading it mutely:
|
|
|
|
|
|
Mr. Dyer is rather of the opinion, first luminously
|
|
suggested by Macaulay, that Machiavelli was in earnest, but must
|
|
not be judged as a political moralist of our time and race would
|
|
be judged. He thinks that Machiavelli was in earnest, as none
|
|
but an idealist can be, and he is the first to imagine him an
|
|
idealist immersed in realities, who involuntarily transmutes the
|
|
events under his eye into something like the visionary issues of
|
|
reverie. The Machiavelli whom he depicts does not cease to be
|
|
politically a republican and socially a just man because he holds
|
|
up an atrocious despot like Caesar Borgia as a mirror for rulers.
|
|
What Machiavelli beheld round him in Italy was a civic disorder
|
|
in which there was oppression without statecraft, and revolt
|
|
without patriotism. When a miscreant like Borgia appeared upon
|
|
the scene and reduced both tyrants and rebels to an apparent
|
|
quiescence, he might very well seem to such a dreamer the savior
|
|
of society whom a certain sort of dreamers are always looking
|
|
for. Machiavelli was no less honest when he honored the
|
|
diabolical force than Carlyle was when at different times he
|
|
extolled the strong man who destroys liberty in creating order.
|
|
But Carlyle has only just ceased to be mistaken for a reformer,
|
|
while it is still Machiavelli's hard fate to be so trammeled in
|
|
his material that his name stands for whatever is most malevolent
|
|
and perfidious in human nature.
|
|
|
|
|
|
You see how easy and flowing it is; how unvexed by ruggednesses,
|
|
clumsinesses, broken meters; how simple and--so far as you or I
|
|
can make out--unstudied; how clear, how limpid, how understandable,
|
|
how unconfused by cross-currents, eddies, undertows; how seemingly
|
|
unadorned, yet is all adornment, like the lily-of-the-valley;
|
|
and how compressed, how compact, without a complacency-signal
|
|
hung out anywhere to call attention to it.
|
|
|
|
There are twenty-three lines in the quoted passage. After reading
|
|
it several times aloud, one perceives that a good deal of matter
|
|
is crowded into that small space. I think it is a model
|
|
of compactness. When I take its materials apart and work them
|
|
over and put them together in my way, I find I cannot crowd the
|
|
result back into the same hole, there not being room enough. I
|
|
find it a case of a woman packing a man's trunk: he can get the
|
|
things out, but he can't ever get them back again.
|
|
|
|
The proffered paragraph is a just and fair sample; the rest
|
|
of the article is as compact as it is; there are no waste words.
|
|
The sample is just in other ways: limpid, fluent, graceful, and
|
|
rhythmical as it is, it holds no superiority in these respects
|
|
over the rest of the essay. Also, the choice phrasing noticeable
|
|
in the sample is not lonely; there is a plenty of its kin
|
|
distributed through the other paragraphs. This is claiming much
|
|
when that kin must face the challenge of a phrase like the one in
|
|
the middle sentence: "an idealist immersed in realities who
|
|
involuntarily transmutes the events under his eye into something
|
|
like the visionary issues of reverie." With a hundred words to
|
|
do it with, the literary artisan could catch that airy thought
|
|
and tie it down and reduce it to a concrete condition, visible,
|
|
substantial, understandable and all right, like a cabbage; but
|
|
the artist does it with twenty, and the result is a flower.
|
|
|
|
The quoted phrase, like a thousand others that have come
|
|
from the same source, has the quality of certain scraps of verse
|
|
which take hold of us and stay in our memories, we do not
|
|
understand why, at first: all the words being the right words,
|
|
none of them is conspicuous, and so they all seem inconspicuous,
|
|
therefore we wonder what it is about them that makes their
|
|
message take hold.
|
|
|
|
|
|
The mossy marbles rest
|
|
On the lips that he has prest
|
|
In their bloom,
|
|
|
|
And the names he loved to hear
|
|
Have been carved for many a year
|
|
On the tomb.
|
|
|
|
|
|
It is like a dreamy strain of moving music, with no sharp
|
|
notes in it. The words are all "right" words, and all the same
|
|
size. We do not notice it at first. We get the effect, it goes
|
|
straight home to us, but we do not know why. It is when the
|
|
right words are conspicuous that they thunder:
|
|
|
|
|
|
The glory that was Greece and the grandeur that was Rome!
|
|
|
|
|
|
When I got back from Howells old to Howells young I find him
|
|
arranging and clustering English words well, but not any better
|
|
than now. He is not more felicitous in concreting abstractions
|
|
now than he was in translating, then, the visions of the eyes of
|
|
flesh into words that reproduced their forms and colors:
|
|
|
|
|
|
In Venetian streets they give the fallen snow no rest. It
|
|
is at once shoveled into the canals by hundreds of half-naked
|
|
FACCHINI; and now in St. Mark's Place the music of innumerable
|
|
shovels smote upon my ear; and I saw the shivering legion of
|
|
poverty as it engaged the elements in a struggle for the
|
|
possession of the Piazza. But the snow continued to fall, and
|
|
through the twilight of the descending flakes all this toil and
|
|
encountered looked like that weary kind of effort in dreams, when
|
|
the most determined industry seems only to renew the task. The
|
|
lofty crest of the bell-tower was hidden in the folds of falling
|
|
snow, and I could no longer see the golden angel upon its summit.
|
|
But looked at across the Piazza, the beautiful outline of St.
|
|
Mark's Church was perfectly penciled in the air, and the shifting
|
|
threads of the snowfall were woven into a spell of novel
|
|
enchantment around the structure that always seemed to me too
|
|
exquisite in its fantastic loveliness to be anything but the
|
|
creation of magic. The tender snow had compassionated the
|
|
beautiful edifice for all the wrongs of time, and so hid the
|
|
stains and ugliness of decay that it looked as if just from the
|
|
hand of the builder--or, better said, just from the brain of the
|
|
architect. There was marvelous freshness in the colors of the
|
|
mosaics in the great arches of the facade, and all that gracious
|
|
harmony into which the temple rises, or marble scrolls and leafy
|
|
exuberance airily supporting the statues of the saints, was a
|
|
hundred times etherealized by the purity and whiteness of the
|
|
drifting flakes. The snow lay lightly on the golden gloves that
|
|
tremble like peacocks-crests above the vast domes, and plumed
|
|
them with softest white; it robed the saints in ermine; and it
|
|
danced over all its works, as if exulting in its beauty--beauty
|
|
which filled me with subtle, selfish yearning to keep such
|
|
evanescent loveliness for the little-while-longer of my whole
|
|
life, and with despair to think that even the poor lifeless
|
|
shadow of it could never be fairly reflected in picture or poem.
|
|
|
|
Through the wavering snowfall, the Saint Theodore upon one
|
|
of the granite pillars of the Piazzetta did not show so grim as
|
|
his wont is, and the winged lion on the other might have been a
|
|
winged lamb, so gentle and mild he looked by the tender light of
|
|
the storm. The towers of the island churches loomed faint and
|
|
far away in the dimness; the sailors in the rigging of the ships
|
|
that lay in the Basin wrought like phantoms among the shrouds;
|
|
the gondolas stole in and out of the opaque distance more
|
|
noiselessly and dreamily than ever; and a silence, almost
|
|
palpable, lay upon the mutest city in the world.
|
|
|
|
|
|
The spirit of Venice is there: of a city where Age and
|
|
Decay, fagged with distributing damage and repulsiveness among
|
|
the other cities of the planet in accordance with the policy and
|
|
business of their profession, come for rest and play between
|
|
seasons, and treat themselves to the luxury and relaxation of
|
|
sinking the shop and inventing and squandering charms all about,
|
|
instead of abolishing such as they find, as it their habit when
|
|
not on vacation.
|
|
|
|
In the working season they do business in Boston sometimes,
|
|
and a character in THE UNDISCOVERED COUNTRY takes accurate note
|
|
of pathetic effects wrought by them upon the aspects of a street
|
|
of once dignified and elegant homes whose occupants have moved
|
|
away and left them a prey to neglect and gradual ruin and
|
|
progressive degradation; a descent which reaches bottom at last,
|
|
when the street becomes a roost for humble professionals of the
|
|
faith-cure and fortune-telling sort.
|
|
|
|
|
|
What a queer, melancholy house, what a queer, melancholy
|
|
street! I don't think I was ever in a street before when quite
|
|
so many professional ladies, with English surnames, preferred
|
|
Madam to Mrs. on their door-plates. And the poor old place has
|
|
such a desperately conscious air of going to the deuce. Every
|
|
house seems to wince as you go by, and button itself up to the
|
|
chin for fear you should find out it had no shirt on--so to
|
|
speak. I don't know what's the reason, but these material tokens
|
|
of a social decay afflict me terribly; a tipsy woman isn't
|
|
dreadfuler than a haggard old house, that's once been a home, in
|
|
a street like this.
|
|
|
|
|
|
Mr. Howells's pictures are not mere stiff, hard, accurate
|
|
photographs; they are photographs with feeling in them, and
|
|
sentiment, photographs taken in a dream, one might say.
|
|
|
|
As concerns his humor, I will not try to say anything, yet I
|
|
would try, if I had the words that might approximately reach up
|
|
to its high place. I do not think any one else can play with
|
|
humorous fancies so gracefully and delicately and deliciously as
|
|
he does, nor has so many to play with, nor can come so near
|
|
making them look as if they were doing the playing themselves and
|
|
he was not aware that they were at it. For they are unobtrusive,
|
|
and quiet in their ways, and well conducted. His is a humor
|
|
which flows softly all around about and over and through the mesh
|
|
of the page, pervasive, refreshing, health-giving, and makes no
|
|
more show and no more noise than does the circulation of the
|
|
blood.
|
|
|
|
There is another thing which is contentingly noticeable in
|
|
Mr. Howells's books. That is his "stage directions"--those
|
|
artifices which authors employ to throw a kind of human
|
|
naturalness around a scene and a conversation, and help the
|
|
reader to see the one and get at meanings in the other which
|
|
might not be perceived if entrusted unexplained to the bare words
|
|
of the talk. Some authors overdo the stage directions, they
|
|
elaborate them quite beyond necessity; they spend so much time
|
|
and take up so much room in telling us how a person said a thing
|
|
and how he looked and acted when he said it that we get tired and
|
|
vexed and wish he hadn't said it all. Other authors' directions
|
|
are brief enough, but it is seldom that the brevity contains
|
|
either wit or information. Writers of this school go in rags, in
|
|
the matter of state directions; the majority of them having
|
|
nothing in stock but a cigar, a laugh, a blush, and a bursting
|
|
into tears. In their poverty they work these sorry things to the
|
|
bone. They say:
|
|
|
|
". . . replied Alfred, flipping the ash from his cigar."
|
|
(This explains nothing; it only wastes space.)
|
|
|
|
". . . responded Richard, with a laugh." (There was nothing
|
|
to laugh about; there never is. The writer puts it in from
|
|
habit--automatically; he is paying no attention to his work; or
|
|
he would see that there is nothing to laugh at; often, when a
|
|
remark is unusually and poignantly flat and silly, he tries to
|
|
deceive the reader by enlarging the stage direction and making
|
|
Richard break into "frenzies of uncontrollable laughter." This
|
|
makes the reader sad.)
|
|
|
|
". . . murmured Gladys, blushing." (This poor old shop-worn
|
|
blush is a tiresome thing. We get so we would rather Gladys
|
|
would fall out of the book and break her neck than do it again.
|
|
She is always doing it, and usually irrelevantly. Whenever it is
|
|
her turn to murmur she hangs out her blush; it is the only thing
|
|
she's got. In a little while we hate her, just as we do
|
|
Richard.)
|
|
|
|
". . . repeated Evelyn, bursting into tears." (This kind
|
|
keep a book damp all the time. They can't say a thing without
|
|
crying. They cry so much about nothing that by and by when they
|
|
have something to cry ABOUT they have gone dry; they sob, and
|
|
fetch nothing; we are not moved. We are only glad.)
|
|
|
|
They gavel me, these stale and overworked stage directions,
|
|
these carbon films that got burnt out long ago and cannot now
|
|
carry any faintest thread of light. It would be well if they
|
|
could be relieved from duty and flung out in the literary back
|
|
yard to rot and disappear along with the discarded and forgotten
|
|
"steeds" and "halidomes" and similar stage-properties once so
|
|
dear to our grandfathers. But I am friendly to Mr. Howells's
|
|
stage directions; more friendly to them than to any one else's, I
|
|
think. They are done with a competent and discriminating art,
|
|
and are faithful to the requirements of a state direction's
|
|
proper and lawful office, which is to inform. Sometimes they
|
|
convey a scene and its conditions so well that I believe I could
|
|
see the scene and get the spirit and meaning of the accompanying
|
|
dialogue if some one would read merely the stage directions to me
|
|
and leave out the talk. For instance, a scene like this, from
|
|
THE UNDISCOVERED COUNTRY:
|
|
|
|
". . . and she laid her arms with a beseeching gesture on
|
|
her father's shoulder."
|
|
|
|
". . . she answered, following his gesture with a glance."
|
|
|
|
". . . she said, laughing nervously."
|
|
|
|
". . . she asked, turning swiftly upon him that strange, searching glance."
|
|
|
|
". . . she answered, vaguely."
|
|
|
|
". . . she reluctantly admitted."
|
|
|
|
". . . but her voice died wearily away, and she stood looking
|
|
into his face with puzzled entreaty."
|
|
|
|
Mr. Howells does not repeat his forms, and does not need to;
|
|
he can invent fresh ones without limit. It is mainly the
|
|
repetition over and over again, by the third-rates, of worn and
|
|
commonplace and juiceless forms that makes their novels such a
|
|
weariness and vexation to us, I think. We do not mind one or two
|
|
deliveries of their wares, but as we turn the pages over and keep
|
|
on meeting them we presently get tired of them and wish they
|
|
would do other things for a change.
|
|
|
|
". . . replied Alfred, flipping the ash from his cigar."
|
|
|
|
". . . responded Richard, with a laugh."
|
|
|
|
". . . murmured Gladys, blushing."
|
|
|
|
". . . repeated Evelyn, bursting into tears."
|
|
|
|
". . . replied the Earl, flipping the ash from his cigar."
|
|
|
|
". . . responded the undertaker, with a laugh."
|
|
|
|
". . . murmured the chambermaid, blushing."
|
|
|
|
". . . repeated the burglar, bursting into tears."
|
|
|
|
". . . replied the conductor, flipping the ash from his cigar."
|
|
|
|
". . . responded Arkwright, with a laugh."
|
|
|
|
". . . murmured the chief of police, blushing."
|
|
|
|
". . . repeated the house-cat, bursting into tears."
|
|
|
|
And so on and so on; till at last it ceases to excite. I
|
|
always notice stage directions, because they fret me and keep me
|
|
trying to get out of their way, just as the automobiles do. At
|
|
first; then by and by they become monotonous and I get run over.
|
|
|
|
Mr. Howells has done much work, and the spirit of it is as
|
|
beautiful as the make of it. I have held him in admiration and
|
|
affection so many years that I know by the number of those years
|
|
that he is old now; but his heart isn't, nor his pen; and years
|
|
do not count. Let him have plenty of them; there is profit in
|
|
them for us.
|
|
|
|
-------------------------------------------------------------------
|
|
|
|
|
|
ENGLISH AS SHE IS TAUGHT
|
|
|
|
In the appendix to Croker's Boswell's Johnson one finds this anecdote:
|
|
|
|
|
|
CATO'S SOLILOQUY.--One day Mrs. Gastrel set a little girl to
|
|
repeat to him [Dr. Samuel Johnson] Cato's Soliloquy, which she
|
|
went through very correctly. The Doctor, after a pause, asked
|
|
the child:
|
|
|
|
"What was to bring Cato to an end?"
|
|
|
|
She said it was a knife.
|
|
|
|
"No, my dear, it was not so."
|
|
|
|
"My aunt Polly said it was a knife."
|
|
|
|
"Why, Aunt Polly's knife MAY DO, but it was a DAGGER, my dear."
|
|
|
|
He then asked her the meaning of "bane and antidote," which
|
|
she was unable to give. Mrs. Gastrel said:
|
|
|
|
"You cannot expect so young a child to know the meaning of such words."
|
|
|
|
He then said:
|
|
|
|
"My dear, how many pence are there in SIXPENCE?"
|
|
|
|
"I cannot tell, sir," was the half-terrified reply.
|
|
|
|
On this, addressing himself to Mrs. Gastrel, he said:
|
|
|
|
"Now, my dear lady, can anything be more ridiculous than to
|
|
teach a child Cato's Soliloquy, who does not know how many pence
|
|
there are in a sixpence?"
|
|
|
|
|
|
In a lecture before the Royal Geographical Society Professor
|
|
Ravenstein quoted the following list of frantic questions, and
|
|
said that they had been asked in an examination:
|
|
|
|
|
|
Mention all names of places in the world derived from Julius
|
|
Caesar or Augustus Caesar.
|
|
|
|
Where are the following rivers: Pisuerga, Sakaria,
|
|
Guadalete, Jalon, Mulde?
|
|
|
|
All you know of the following: Machacha, Pilmo, Schebulos,
|
|
Crivoscia, Basces, Mancikert, Taxhem, Citeaux, Meloria, Zutphen.
|
|
|
|
The highest peaks of the Karakorum range.
|
|
|
|
The number of universities in Prussia.
|
|
|
|
Why are the tops of mountains continually covered with snow [sic]?
|
|
|
|
Name the length and breadth of the streams of lava which
|
|
issued from the Skaptar Jokul in the eruption of 1783.
|
|
|
|
|
|
That list would oversize nearly anybody's geographical
|
|
knowledge. Isn't it reasonably possible that in our schools many
|
|
of the questions in all studies are several miles ahead of where
|
|
the pupil is?--that he is set to struggle with things that are
|
|
ludicrously beyond his present reach, hopelessly beyond his
|
|
present strength? This remark in passing, and by way of text;
|
|
now I come to what I was going to say.
|
|
|
|
I have just now fallen upon a darling literary curiosity.
|
|
It is a little book, a manuscript compilation, and the compiler
|
|
sent it to me with the request that I say whether I think it
|
|
ought to be published or not. I said, Yes; but as I slowly grow
|
|
wise I briskly grow cautious; and so, now that the publication is
|
|
imminent, it has seemed to me that I should feel more comfortable
|
|
if I could divide up this responsibility with the public by
|
|
adding them to the court. Therefore I will print some extracts
|
|
from the book, in the hope that they may make converts to my
|
|
judgment that the volume has merit which entitles it to publication.
|
|
|
|
As to its character. Every one has sampled "English as She
|
|
is Spoke" and "English as She is Wrote"; this little volume
|
|
furnishes us an instructive array of examples of "English as She
|
|
is Taught"--in the public schools of--well, this country. The
|
|
collection is made by a teacher in those schools, and all the
|
|
examples in it are genuine; none of them have been tampered with,
|
|
or doctored in any way. From time to time, during several years,
|
|
whenever a pupil has delivered himself of anything peculiarly
|
|
quaint or toothsome in the course of his recitations, this
|
|
teacher and her associates have privately set that thing down in
|
|
a memorandum-book; strictly following the original, as to
|
|
grammar, construction, spelling, and all; and the result is this
|
|
literary curiosity.
|
|
|
|
The contents of the book consist mainly of answers given by
|
|
the boys and girls to questions, said answers being given
|
|
sometimes verbally, sometimes in writing. The subjects touched
|
|
upon are fifteen in number: I. Etymology; II. Grammar; III.
|
|
Mathematics; IV. Geography; V. "Original"; VI. Analysis; VII.
|
|
History; VIII. "Intellectual"; IX. Philosophy; X. Physiology; XI.
|
|
Astronomy; XII. Politics; XIII. Music; XIV. Oratory; XV.
|
|
Metaphysics.
|
|
|
|
You perceive that the poor little young idea has taken a
|
|
shot at a good many kinds of game in the course of the book. Now
|
|
as to results. Here are some quaint definitions of words. It
|
|
will be noticed that in all of these instances the sound of the
|
|
word, or the look of it on paper, has misled the child:
|
|
|
|
|
|
ABORIGINES, a system of mountains.
|
|
|
|
ALIAS, a good man in the Bible.
|
|
|
|
AMENABLE, anything that is mean.
|
|
|
|
AMMONIA, the food of the gods.
|
|
|
|
ASSIDUITY, state of being an acid.
|
|
|
|
AURIFEROUS, pertaining to an orifice.
|
|
|
|
CAPILLARY, a little caterpillar.
|
|
|
|
CORNIFEROUS, rocks in which fossil corn is found.
|
|
|
|
EMOLUMENT, a headstone to a grave.
|
|
|
|
EQUESTRIAN, one who asks questions.
|
|
|
|
EUCHARIST, one who plays euchre.
|
|
|
|
FRANCHISE, anything belonging to the French.
|
|
|
|
IDOLATER, a very idle person.
|
|
|
|
IPECAC, a man who likes a good dinner.
|
|
|
|
IRRIGATE, to make fun of.
|
|
|
|
MENDACIOUS, what can be mended.
|
|
|
|
MERCENARY, one who feels for another.
|
|
|
|
PARASITE, a kind of umbrella.
|
|
|
|
PARASITE, the murder of an infant.
|
|
|
|
PUBLICAN, a man who does his prayers in public.
|
|
|
|
TENACIOUS, ten acres of land.
|
|
|
|
|
|
Here is one where the phrase "publicans and sinners" has got
|
|
mixed up in the child's mind with politics, and the result is a
|
|
definition which takes one in a sudden and unexpected way:
|
|
|
|
|
|
REPUBLICAN, a sinner mentioned in the Bible.
|
|
|
|
|
|
Also in Democratic newspapers now and then. Here are two where
|
|
the mistake has resulted from sound assisted by remote fact:
|
|
|
|
|
|
PLAGIARIST, a writer of plays.
|
|
|
|
DEMAGOGUE, a vessel containing beer and other liquids.
|
|
|
|
|
|
I cannot quite make out what it was that misled the pupil in
|
|
the following instances; it would not seem to have been the sound
|
|
of the word, nor the look of it in print:
|
|
|
|
|
|
ASPHYXIA, a grumbling, fussy temper.
|
|
|
|
QUARTERNIONS, a bird with a flat beak and no bill, living in
|
|
New Zealand.
|
|
|
|
QUARTERNIONS, the name given to a style of art practiced by
|
|
the Phoenicians.
|
|
|
|
QUARTERNIONS, a religious convention held every hundred
|
|
years.
|
|
|
|
SIBILANT, the state of being idiotic.
|
|
|
|
CROSIER, a staff carried by the Deity.
|
|
|
|
|
|
In the following sentences the pupil's ear has been
|
|
deceiving him again:
|
|
|
|
|
|
The marriage was illegible.
|
|
|
|
He was totally dismasted with the whole performance.
|
|
|
|
He enjoys riding on a philosopher.
|
|
|
|
She was very quick at repertoire.
|
|
|
|
He prayed for the waters to subsidize.
|
|
|
|
The leopard is watching his sheep.
|
|
|
|
They had a strawberry vestibule.
|
|
|
|
|
|
Here is one which--well, now, how often we do slam right
|
|
into the truth without ever suspecting it:
|
|
|
|
|
|
The men employed by the Gas Company go around and
|
|
speculate the meter.
|
|
|
|
|
|
Indeed they do, dear; and when you grow up, many and many's
|
|
the time you will notice it in the gas bill. In the following
|
|
sentences the little people have some information to convey,
|
|
every time; but in my case they fail to connect: the light
|
|
always went out on the keystone word:
|
|
|
|
|
|
The coercion of some things is remarkable; as bread and molasses.
|
|
|
|
Her hat is contiguous because she wears it on one side.
|
|
|
|
He preached to an egregious congregation.
|
|
|
|
The captain eliminated a bullet through the man's heart.
|
|
|
|
You should take caution and be precarious.
|
|
|
|
The supercilious girl acted with vicissitude when the
|
|
perennial time came.
|
|
|
|
|
|
The last is a curiously plausible sentence; one seems to
|
|
know what it means, and yet he knows all the time that he
|
|
doesn't. Here is an odd (but entirely proper) use of a word, and
|
|
a most sudden descent from a lofty philosophical altitude to a
|
|
very practical and homely illustration:
|
|
|
|
|
|
We should endeavor to avoid extremes--like those of wasps and bees.
|
|
|
|
|
|
And here--with "zoological" and "geological" in his mind,
|
|
but not ready to his tongue--the small scholar has innocently
|
|
gone and let out a couple of secrets which ought never to have
|
|
been divulged in any circumstances:
|
|
|
|
|
|
There are a good many donkeys in theological gardens.
|
|
|
|
Some of the best fossils are found in theological gardens.
|
|
|
|
|
|
Under the head of "Grammar" the little scholars furnish the
|
|
following information:
|
|
|
|
|
|
Gender is the distinguishing nouns without regard to sex.
|
|
|
|
A verb is something to eat.
|
|
|
|
Adverbs should always be used as adjectives and adjectives as adverbs.
|
|
|
|
Every sentence and name of God must begin with a caterpillar.
|
|
|
|
|
|
"Caterpillar" is well enough, but capital letter would have
|
|
been stricter. The following is a brave attempt at a solution,
|
|
but it failed to liquify:
|
|
|
|
|
|
When they are going to say some prose or poetry before they
|
|
say the poetry or prose they must put a semicolon just after the
|
|
introduction of the prose or poetry.
|
|
|
|
|
|
The chapter on "Mathematics" is full of fruit. From it I
|
|
take a few samples--mainly in an unripe state:
|
|
|
|
|
|
A straight line is any distance between two places.
|
|
|
|
Parallel lines are lines that can never meet until they run together.
|
|
|
|
A circle is a round straight line with a hole in the middle.
|
|
|
|
Things which are equal to each other are equal to anything else.
|
|
|
|
To find the number of square feet in a room you multiply the
|
|
room by the number of the feet. The product is the result.
|
|
|
|
|
|
Right you are. In the matter of geography this little book
|
|
is unspeakably rich. The questions do not appear to have applied
|
|
the microscope to the subject, as did those quoted by Professor
|
|
Ravenstein; still, they proved plenty difficult enough without
|
|
that. These pupils did not hunt with a microscope, they hunted
|
|
with a shot-gun; this is shown by the crippled condition of the
|
|
game they brought in:
|
|
|
|
|
|
America is divided into the Passiffic slope and the Mississippi valey.
|
|
|
|
North America is separated by Spain.
|
|
|
|
America consists from north to south about five hundred miles.
|
|
|
|
The United States is quite a small country compared with
|
|
some other countrys, but it about as industrious.
|
|
|
|
The capital of the United States is Long Island.
|
|
|
|
The five seaports of the U.S. are Newfunlan and Sanfrancisco.
|
|
|
|
The principal products of the U.S. is earthquakes and volcanoes.
|
|
|
|
The Alaginnies are mountains in Philadelphia.
|
|
|
|
The Rocky Mountains are on the western side of Philadelphia.
|
|
|
|
Cape Hateras is a vast body of water surrounded by land and
|
|
flowing into the Gulf of Mexico.
|
|
|
|
Mason and Dixon's line is the Equator.
|
|
|
|
One of the leading industries of the United States is
|
|
mollasses, book-covers, numbers, gas, teaching, lumber,
|
|
manufacturers, paper-making, publishers, coal.
|
|
|
|
In Austria the principal occupation is gathering Austrich feathers.
|
|
|
|
Gibraltar is an island built on a rock.
|
|
|
|
Russia is very cold and tyrannical.
|
|
|
|
Sicily is one of the Sandwich Islands.
|
|
|
|
Hindoostan flows through the Ganges and empties into the
|
|
Mediterranean Sea.
|
|
|
|
Ireland is called the Emigrant Isle because it is so
|
|
beautiful and green.
|
|
|
|
The width of the different zones Europe lies in depend upon
|
|
the surrounding country.
|
|
|
|
The imports of a country are the things that are paid for,
|
|
the exports are the things that are not.
|
|
|
|
Climate lasts all the time and weather only a few days.
|
|
|
|
The two most famous volcanoes of Europe are Sodom and Gomorrah.
|
|
|
|
|
|
The chapter headed "Analysis" shows us that the pupils in
|
|
our public schools are not merely loaded up with those showy
|
|
facts about geography, mathematics, and so on, and left in that
|
|
incomplete state; no, there's machinery for clarifying and
|
|
expanding their minds. They are required to take poems and
|
|
analyze them, dig out their common sense, reduce them to
|
|
statistics, and reproduce them in a luminous prose translation
|
|
which shall tell you at a glance what the poet was trying to get
|
|
at. One sample will do. Here is a stanza from "The Lady of the
|
|
Lake," followed by the pupil's impressive explanation of it:
|
|
|
|
|
|
Alone, but with unbated zeal,
|
|
The horseman plied with scourge and steel;
|
|
For jaded now and spent with toil,
|
|
Embossed with foam and dark with soil,
|
|
While every gasp with sobs he drew,
|
|
The laboring stag strained full in view.
|
|
|
|
|
|
The man who rode on the horse performed the whip and an
|
|
instrument made of steel alone with strong ardor not diminishing,
|
|
for, being tired from the time passed with hard labor overworked
|
|
with anger and ignorant with weariness, while every breath for
|
|
labor he drew with cries full or sorrow, the young deer made
|
|
imperfect who worked hard filtered in sight.
|
|
|
|
|
|
I see, now, that I never understood that poem before. I
|
|
have had glimpses of its meaning, it moments when I was not as
|
|
ignorant with weariness as usual, but this is the first time the
|
|
whole spacious idea of it ever filtered in sight. If I were a
|
|
public-school pupil I would put those other studies aside and
|
|
stick to analysis; for, after all, it is the thing to spread your
|
|
mind.
|
|
|
|
We come now to historical matters, historical remains, one
|
|
might say. As one turns the pages he is impressed with the depth
|
|
to which one date has been driven into the American child's head
|
|
--1492. The date is there, and it is there to stay. And it is
|
|
always at hand, always deliverable at a moment's notice. But the
|
|
Fact that belongs with it? That is quite another matter. Only
|
|
the date itself is familiar and sure: its vast Fact has failed
|
|
of lodgment. It would appear that whenever you ask a public-
|
|
school pupil when a thing--anything, no matter what--happened,
|
|
and he is in doubt, he always rips out his 1492. He applies it
|
|
to everything, from the landing of the ark to the introduction of
|
|
the horse-car. Well, after all, it is our first date, and so it
|
|
is right enough to honor it, and pay the public schools to teach
|
|
our children to honor it:
|
|
|
|
|
|
George Washington was born in 1492.
|
|
|
|
Washington wrote the Declaration of Independence in 1492.
|
|
|
|
St. Bartholemew was massacred in 1492.
|
|
|
|
The Brittains were the Saxons who entered England in 1492
|
|
under Julius Caesar.
|
|
|
|
The earth is 1492 miles in circumference.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
To proceed with "History"
|
|
|
|
|
|
Christopher Columbus was called the Father of his Country.
|
|
|
|
Queen Isabella of Spain sold her watch and chain and other
|
|
millinery so that Columbus could discover America.
|
|
|
|
The Indian wars were very desecrating to the country.
|
|
|
|
The Indians pursued their warfare by hiding in the bushes
|
|
and then scalping them.
|
|
|
|
Captain John Smith has been styled the father of his country.
|
|
His life was saved by his daughter Pochahantas.
|
|
|
|
The Puritans found an insane asylum in the wilds of America.
|
|
|
|
The Stamp Act was to make everybody stamp all materials so
|
|
they should be null and void.
|
|
|
|
Washington died in Spain almost broken-hearted. His remains
|
|
were taken to the cathedral in Havana.
|
|
|
|
Gorilla warfare was where men rode on gorillas.
|
|
|
|
John Brown was a very good insane man who tried to get
|
|
fugitives slaves into Virginia. He captured all the inhabitants,
|
|
but was finally conquered and condemned to his death. The
|
|
confederasy was formed by the fugitive slaves.
|
|
|
|
Alfred the Great reigned 872 years. He was distinguished
|
|
for letting some buckwheat cakes burn, and the lady scolded him.
|
|
|
|
Henry Eight was famous for being a great widower haveing
|
|
lost several wives.
|
|
|
|
Lady Jane Grey studied Greek and Latin and was beheaded
|
|
after a few days.
|
|
|
|
John Bright is noted for an incurable disease.
|
|
|
|
Lord James Gordon Bennet instigated the Gordon Riots.
|
|
|
|
The Middle Ages come in between antiquity and posterity.
|
|
|
|
Luther introduced Christianity into England a good many
|
|
thousand years ago. His birthday was November 1883. He was once
|
|
a Pope. He lived at the time of the Rebellion of Worms.
|
|
|
|
Julius Caesar is noted for his famous telegram dispatch I
|
|
came I saw I conquered.
|
|
|
|
Julius Caesar was really a very great man. He was a very
|
|
great soldier and wrote a book for beginners in the Latin.
|
|
|
|
Cleopatra was caused by the death of an asp which she
|
|
dissolved in a wine cup.
|
|
|
|
The only form of government in Greece was a limited monkey.
|
|
|
|
The Persian war lasted about 500 years.
|
|
|
|
Greece had only 7 wise men.
|
|
|
|
Socrates . . . destroyed some statues and had to drink Shamrock.
|
|
|
|
|
|
Here is a fact correctly stated; and yet it is phrased with
|
|
such ingenious infelicity that it can be depended upon to convey
|
|
misinformation every time it is uncarefully unread:
|
|
|
|
|
|
By the Salic law no woman or descendant of a woman could
|
|
occupy the throne.
|
|
|
|
|
|
To show how far a child can travel in history with judicious
|
|
and diligent boosting in the public school, we select the
|
|
following mosaic:
|
|
|
|
|
|
Abraham Lincoln was born in Wales in 1599.
|
|
|
|
|
|
In the chapter headed "Intellectual" I find a great number of most
|
|
interesting statements. A sample or two may be found not amiss:
|
|
|
|
Bracebridge Hall was written by Henry Irving.
|
|
|
|
Show Bound was written by Peter Cooper.
|
|
|
|
The House of the Seven Gables was written by Lord Bryant.
|
|
|
|
Edgar A. Poe was a very curdling writer.
|
|
|
|
Cotton Mather was a writer who invented the cotten gin and
|
|
wrote histories.
|
|
|
|
Beowulf wrote the Scriptures.
|
|
|
|
Ben Johnson survived Shakspeare in some respects.
|
|
|
|
In the Canterbury Tale it gives account of King Alfred on
|
|
his way to the shrine of Thomas Bucket.
|
|
|
|
Chaucer was the father of English pottery.
|
|
|
|
Chaucer was a bland verse writer of the third century.
|
|
|
|
Chaucer was succeeded by H. Wads. Longfellow an American
|
|
Writer. His writings were chiefly prose and nearly one hundred
|
|
years elapsed.
|
|
|
|
Shakspere translated the Scriptures and it was called St.
|
|
James because he did it.
|
|
|
|
|
|
In the middle of the chapter I find many pages of
|
|
information concerning Shakespeare's plays, Milton's works, and
|
|
those of Bacon, Addison, Samuel Johnson, Fielding, Richardson,
|
|
Sterne, Smollett, De Foe, Locke, Pope, Swift, Goldsmith, Burns,
|
|
Cowper, Wordsworth, Gibbon, Byron, Coleridge, Hood, Scott,
|
|
Macaulay, George Eliot, Dickens, Bulwer, Thackeray, Browning,
|
|
Mrs. Browning, Tennyson, and Disraeli--a fact which shows that
|
|
into the restricted stomach of the public-school pupil is
|
|
shoveled every year the blood, bone, and viscera of a gigantic
|
|
literature, and the same is there digested and disposed of in a
|
|
most successful and characteristic and gratifying public-school
|
|
way. I have space for but a trifling few of the results:
|
|
|
|
|
|
Lord Byron was the son of an heiress and a drunken man.
|
|
|
|
Wm. Wordsworth wrote the Barefoot Boy and Imitations on Immortality.
|
|
|
|
Gibbon wrote a history of his travels in Italy. This was original.
|
|
|
|
George Eliot left a wife and children who mourned greatly for his genius.
|
|
|
|
George Eliot Miss Mary Evans Mrs. Cross Mrs. Lewis was the greatest
|
|
female poet unless George Sands is made an exception of.
|
|
|
|
Bulwell is considered a good writer.
|
|
|
|
Sir Walter Scott Charles Bronte Alfred the Great and Johnson
|
|
were the first great novelists.
|
|
|
|
Thomas Babington Makorlay graduated at Harvard and then studied law,
|
|
he was raised to the peerage as baron in 1557 and died in 1776.
|
|
|
|
|
|
Here are two or three miscellaneous facts that may be of value,
|
|
if taken in moderation:
|
|
|
|
|
|
Homer's writings are Homer's Essays Virgil the Aenid and
|
|
Paradise lost some people say that these poems were not written
|
|
by Homer but by another man of the same name.
|
|
|
|
A sort of sadness kind of shone in Bryant's poems.
|
|
|
|
Holmes is a very profligate and amusing writer.
|
|
|
|
|
|
When the public-school pupil wrestles with the political
|
|
features of the Great Republic, they throw him sometimes:
|
|
|
|
|
|
A bill becomes a law when the President vetoes it.
|
|
|
|
The three departments of the government is the President rules
|
|
the world, the governor rules the State, the mayor rules the city.
|
|
|
|
The first conscientious Congress met in Philadelphia.
|
|
|
|
The Constitution of the United States was established to
|
|
ensure domestic hostility.
|
|
|
|
|
|
Truth crushed to earth will rise again. As follows:
|
|
|
|
|
|
The Constitution of the United States is that part of the
|
|
book at the end which nobody reads.
|
|
|
|
|
|
And here she rises once more and untimely. There should be
|
|
a limit to public-school instruction; it cannot be wise or well
|
|
to let the young find out everything:
|
|
|
|
|
|
Congress is divided into civilized half civilized and savage.
|
|
|
|
|
|
Here are some results of study in music and oratory:
|
|
|
|
|
|
An interval in music is the distance on the keyboard from
|
|
one piano to the next.
|
|
|
|
A rest means you are not to sing it.
|
|
|
|
Emphasis is putting more distress on one word than another.
|
|
|
|
|
|
The chapter on "Physiology" contains much that ought not to
|
|
be lost to science:
|
|
|
|
Physillogigy is to study about your bones stummick and vertebry.
|
|
|
|
Occupations which are injurious to health are cabolic acid
|
|
gas which is impure blood.
|
|
|
|
We have an upper and lower skin. The lower skin moves all
|
|
the time and the upper skin moves when we do.
|
|
|
|
The body is mostly composed of water and about one half is
|
|
avaricious tissue.
|
|
|
|
The stomach is a small pear-shaped bone situated in the body.
|
|
|
|
The gastric juice keeps the bones from creaking.
|
|
|
|
The Chyle flows up the middle of the backbone and reaches
|
|
the heart where it meets the oxygen and is purified.
|
|
|
|
The salivary glands are used to salivate the body.
|
|
|
|
In the stomach starch is changed to cane sugar and cane
|
|
sugar to sugar cane.
|
|
|
|
The olfactory nerve enters the cavity of the orbit and is
|
|
developed into the special sense of hearing.
|
|
|
|
The growth of a tooth begins in the back of the mouth and
|
|
extends to the stomach.
|
|
|
|
If we were on a railroad track and a train was coming the train
|
|
would deafen our ears so that we couldn't see to get off the track.
|
|
|
|
|
|
If, up to this point, none of my quotations have added
|
|
flavor to the Johnsonian anecdote at the head of this article,
|
|
let us make another attempt:
|
|
|
|
|
|
The theory that intuitive truths are discovered by the light
|
|
of nature originated from St. John's interpretation of a passage
|
|
in the Gospel of Plato.
|
|
|
|
The weight of the earth is found by comparing a mass of
|
|
known lead with that of a mass of unknown lead.
|
|
|
|
To find the weight of the earth take the length of a degree
|
|
on a meridian and multiply by 6 1/2 pounds.
|
|
|
|
The spheres are to each other as the squares of their
|
|
homologous sides.
|
|
|
|
A body will go just as far in the first second as the body
|
|
will go plus the force of gravity and that's equal to twice what
|
|
the body will go.
|
|
|
|
Specific gravity is the weight to be compared weight of an
|
|
equal volume of or that is the weight of a body compared with the
|
|
weight of an equal volume.
|
|
|
|
The law of fluid pressure divide the different forms of
|
|
organized bodies by the form of attraction and the number
|
|
increased will be the form.
|
|
|
|
Inertia is that property of bodies by virtue of which it
|
|
cannot change its own condition of rest or motion. In other
|
|
words it is the negative quality of passiveness either in
|
|
recoverable latency or insipient latescence.
|
|
|
|
|
|
If a laugh is fair here, not the struggling child, nor the
|
|
unintelligent teacher--or rather the unintelligent Boards,
|
|
Committees, and Trustees--are the proper target for it. All
|
|
through this little book one detects the signs of a certain
|
|
probable fact--that a large part of the pupil's "instruction"
|
|
consists in cramming him with obscure and wordy "rules" which he
|
|
does not understand and has no time to understand. It would be
|
|
as useful to cram him with brickbats; they would at least stay.
|
|
In a town in the interior of New York, a few years ago, a
|
|
gentleman set forth a mathematical problem and proposed to give a
|
|
prize to every public-school pupil who should furnish the correct
|
|
solution of it. Twenty-two of the brightest boys in the public
|
|
schools entered the contest. The problem was not a very
|
|
difficult one for pupils of their mathematical rank and standing,
|
|
yet they all failed--by a hair--through one trifling mistake or
|
|
another. Some searching questions were asked, when it turned out
|
|
that these lads were as glib as parrots with the "rules," but
|
|
could not reason out a single rule or explain the principle
|
|
underlying it. Their memories had been stocked, but not their
|
|
understandings. It was a case of brickbat culture, pure and
|
|
simple.
|
|
|
|
There are several curious "compositions" in the little book,
|
|
and we must make room for one. It is full of naivete, brutal
|
|
truth, and unembarrassed directness, and is the funniest
|
|
(genuine) boy's composition I think I have ever seen:
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
ON GIRLS
|
|
|
|
Girls are very stuck up and dignefied in their maner and be
|
|
have your. They think more of dress than anything and like to
|
|
play with dowls and rags. They cry if they see a cow in a far
|
|
distance and are afraid of guns. They stay at home all the time
|
|
and go to church on Sunday. They are al-ways sick. They are al-
|
|
ways funy and making fun of boy's hands and they say how dirty.
|
|
They cant play marbels. I pity them poor things. They make fun
|
|
of boys and then turn round and love them. I dont beleave they
|
|
ever kiled a cat or anything. They look out every nite and say
|
|
oh ant the moon lovely. Thir is one thing I have not told and
|
|
that is they al-ways now their lessons bettern boys.
|
|
|
|
|
|
From Mr. Edward Channing's recent article in SCIENCE:
|
|
|
|
|
|
The marked difference between the books now being produced
|
|
by French, English, and American travelers, on the one hand, and
|
|
German explorers, on the other, is too great to escape attention.
|
|
That difference is due entirely to the fact that in school and
|
|
university the German is taught, in the first place to see, and
|
|
in the second place to understand what he does see.
|
|
|
|
------------------------------------------------------------------
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
A SIMPLIFIED ALPHABET
|
|
|
|
|
|
(This article, written during the autumn of 1899, was about
|
|
the last writing done by Mark Twain on any impersonal subject.)
|
|
|
|
|
|
I have had a kindly feeling, a friendly feeling, a cousinly
|
|
feeling toward Simplified Spelling, from the beginning of the
|
|
movement three years ago, but nothing more inflamed than that.
|
|
It seemed to me to merely propose to substitute one inadequacy
|
|
for another; a sort of patching and plugging poor old dental
|
|
relics with cement and gold and porcelain paste; what was really
|
|
needed was a new set of teeth. That is to say, a new ALPHABET.
|
|
|
|
The heart of our trouble is with our foolish alphabet. It
|
|
doesn't know how to spell, and can't be taught. In this it is
|
|
like all other alphabets except one--the phonographic. This is
|
|
the only competent alphabet in the world. It can spell and
|
|
correctly pronounce any word in our language.
|
|
|
|
That admirable alphabet, that brilliant alphabet, that
|
|
inspired alphabet, can be learned in an hour or two. In a week
|
|
the student can learn to write it with some little facility, and
|
|
to read it with considerable ease. I know, for I saw it tried in
|
|
a public school in Nevada forty-five years ago, and was so
|
|
impressed by the incident that it has remained in my memory ever
|
|
since.
|
|
|
|
I wish we could adopt it in place of our present written
|
|
(and printed) character. I mean SIMPLY the alphabet; simply the
|
|
consonants and the vowels--I don't mean any REDUCTIONS or
|
|
abbreviations of them, such as the shorthand writer uses in order
|
|
to get compression and speed. No, I would SPELL EVERY WORD OUT.
|
|
|
|
I will insert the alphabet here as I find it in Burnz's
|
|
PHONIC SHORTHAND. [Figure 1] It is arranged on the basis of
|
|
Isaac Pitman's PHONOGRAPHY. Isaac Pitman was the originator and
|
|
father of scientific phonography. It is used throughout the
|
|
globe. It was a memorable invention. He made it public seventy-
|
|
three years ago. The firm of Isaac Pitman & Sons, New York,
|
|
still exists, and they continue the master's work.
|
|
|
|
What should we gain?
|
|
|
|
First of all, we could spell DEFINITELY--and correctly--any
|
|
word you please, just by the SOUND of it. We can't do that with
|
|
our present alphabet. For instance, take a simple, every-day
|
|
word PHTHISIS. If we tried to spell it by the sound of it, we
|
|
should make it TYSIS, and be laughed at by every educated person.
|
|
|
|
Secondly, we should gain in REDUCTION OF LABOR in writing.
|
|
|
|
Simplified Spelling makes valuable reductions in the case of
|
|
several hundred words, but the new spelling must be LEARNED. You
|
|
can't spell them by the sound; you must get them out of the book.
|
|
|
|
But even if we knew the simplified form for every word in
|
|
the language, the phonographic alphabet would still beat the
|
|
Simplified Speller "hands down" in the important matter of
|
|
economy of labor. I will illustrate:
|
|
|
|
PRESENT FORM: through, laugh, highland.
|
|
|
|
SIMPLIFIED FORM: thru, laff, hyland.
|
|
|
|
PHONOGRAPHIC FORM: [Figure 2]
|
|
|
|
To write the word "through," the pen has to make twenty-one strokes.
|
|
|
|
To write the word "thru," then pen has to make twelve strokes--
|
|
a good saving.
|
|
|
|
To write that same word with the phonographic alphabet, the
|
|
pen has to make only THREE strokes.
|
|
|
|
To write the word "laugh," the pen has to make FOURTEEN
|
|
strokes.
|
|
|
|
To write "laff," the pen has to make the SAME NUMBER of
|
|
strokes--no labor is saved to the penman.
|
|
|
|
To write the same word with the phonographic alphabet, the
|
|
pen has to make only THREE strokes.
|
|
|
|
To write the word "highland," the pen has to make twenty-two
|
|
strokes.
|
|
|
|
To write "hyland," the pen has to make eighteen strokes.
|
|
|
|
To write that word with the phonographic alphabet, the pen
|
|
has to make only FIVE strokes. [Figure 3]
|
|
|
|
To write the words "phonographic alphabet," the pen has to
|
|
make fifty-three strokes.
|
|
|
|
To write "fonografic alfabet," the pen has to make fifty strokes.
|
|
To the penman, the saving in labor is insignificant.
|
|
|
|
To write that word (with vowels) with the phonographic
|
|
alphabet, the pen has to make only SEVENTEEN strokes.
|
|
|
|
Without the vowels, only THIRTEEN strokes. [Figure 4] The
|
|
vowels are hardly necessary, this time.
|
|
|
|
We make five pen-strokes in writing an m. Thus: [Figure 5]
|
|
a stroke down; a stroke up; a second stroke down; a second stroke
|
|
up; a final stroke down. Total, five. The phonographic alphabet
|
|
accomplishes the m with a single stroke--a curve, like a
|
|
parenthesis that has come home drunk and has fallen face down
|
|
right at the front door where everybody that goes along will see
|
|
him and say, Alas!
|
|
|
|
When our written m is not the end of a word, but is
|
|
otherwise located, it has to be connected with the next letter,
|
|
and that requires another pen-stroke, making six in all, before
|
|
you get rid of that m. But never mind about the connecting
|
|
strokes--let them go. Without counting them, the twenty-six
|
|
letters of our alphabet consumed about eighty pen-strokes for
|
|
their construction--about three pen-strokes per letter.
|
|
|
|
It is THREE TIMES THE NUMBER required by the phonographic
|
|
alphabet. It requires but ONE stroke for each letter.
|
|
|
|
My writing-gait is--well, I don't know what it is, but I
|
|
will time myself and see. Result: it is twenty-four words per
|
|
minute. I don't mean composing; I mean COPYING. There isn't any
|
|
definite composing-gait.
|
|
|
|
Very well, my copying-gait is 1,440 words per hour--say
|
|
1,500. If I could use the phonographic character with facility I
|
|
could do the 1,500 in twenty minutes. I could do nine hours'
|
|
copying in three hours; I could do three years' copying in one
|
|
year. Also, if I had a typewriting machine with the phonographic
|
|
alphabet on it--oh, the miracles I could do!
|
|
|
|
I am not pretending to write that character well. I have
|
|
never had a lesson, and I am copying the letters from the book.
|
|
But I can accomplish my desire, at any rate, which is, to make
|
|
the reader get a good and clear idea of the advantage it would be
|
|
to us if we could discard our present alphabet and put this
|
|
better one in its place--using it in books, newspapers, with the
|
|
typewriter, and with the pen.
|
|
|
|
[Figure 6] --MAN DOG HORSE. I think it is graceful and
|
|
would look comely in print. And consider--once more, I beg--what
|
|
a labor-saver it is! Ten pen-strokes with the one system to
|
|
convey those three words above, and thirty-three by the other!
|
|
[Figure 6] I mean, in SOME ways, not in all. I suppose I might
|
|
go so far as to say in most ways, and be within the facts, but
|
|
never mind; let it go at SOME. One of the ways in which it
|
|
exercises this birthright is--as I think--continuing to use our
|
|
laughable alphabet these seventy-three years while there was a
|
|
rational one at hand, to be had for the taking.
|
|
|
|
It has taken five hundred years to simplify some of
|
|
Chaucer's rotten spelling--if I may be allowed to use to frank a
|
|
term as that--and it will take five hundred years more to get our
|
|
exasperating new Simplified Corruptions accepted and running
|
|
smoothly. And we sha'n't be any better off then than we are now;
|
|
for in that day we shall still have the privilege the Simplifiers
|
|
are exercising now: ANYBODY can change the spelling that wants
|
|
to.
|
|
|
|
BUT YOU CAN'T CHANGE THE PHONOGRAPHIC SPELLING; THERE ISN'T
|
|
ANY WAY. It will always follow the SOUND. If you want to change
|
|
the spelling, you have to change the sound first.
|
|
|
|
Mind, I myself am a Simplified Speller; I belong to that
|
|
unhappy guild that is patiently and hopefully trying to reform
|
|
our drunken old alphabet by reducing his whiskey. Well, it will
|
|
improve him. When they get through and have reformed him all
|
|
they can by their system he will be only HALF drunk. Above that
|
|
condition their system can never lift him. There is no
|
|
competent, and lasting, and real reform for him but to take away
|
|
his whiskey entirely, and fill up his jug with Pitman's wholesome
|
|
and undiseased alphabet.
|
|
|
|
One great drawback to Simplified Spelling is, that in print
|
|
a simplified word looks so like the very nation! and when you
|
|
bunch a whole squadron of the Simplified together the spectacle
|
|
is very nearly unendurable.
|
|
|
|
The da ma ov koars kum when the publik ma be expektd to get
|
|
rekonsyled to the bezair asspekt of the Simplified Kombynashuns,
|
|
but--if I may be allowed the expression--is it worth the wasted
|
|
time? [Figure 7]
|
|
|
|
To see our letters put together in ways to which we are not accustomed
|
|
offends the eye, and also takes the EXPRESSION out of the words.
|
|
|
|
La on, Makduf, and damd be he hoo furst krys hold, enuf!
|
|
|
|
It doesn't thrill you as it used to do. The simplifications
|
|
have sucked the thrill all out of it.
|
|
|
|
But a written character with which we are NOT ACQUAINTED
|
|
does not offend us--Greek, Hebrew, Russian, Arabic, and the
|
|
others--they have an interesting look, and we see beauty in them,
|
|
too. And this is true of hieroglyphics, as well. There is
|
|
something pleasant and engaging about the mathematical signs when
|
|
we do not understand them. The mystery hidden in these things
|
|
has a fascination for us: we can't come across a printed page of
|
|
shorthand without being impressed by it and wishing we could read
|
|
it.
|
|
|
|
Very well, what I am offering for acceptance and adopting is
|
|
not shorthand, but longhand, written with the SHORTHAND ALPHABET
|
|
UNREACHED. You can write three times as many words in a minute
|
|
with it as you can write with our alphabet. And so, in a way, it
|
|
IS properly a shorthand. It has a pleasant look, too; a
|
|
beguiling look, an inviting look. I will write something in it,
|
|
in my rude and untaught way: [Figure 8]
|
|
|
|
Even when _I_ do it it comes out prettier than it does in
|
|
Simplified Spelling. Yes, and in the Simplified it costs one
|
|
hundred and twenty-three pen-strokes to write it, whereas in the
|
|
phonographic it costs only twenty-nine.
|
|
|
|
[Figure 9] is probably [Figure 10].
|
|
|
|
Let us hope so, anyway.
|
|
|
|
|
|
AS CONCERNS INTERPRETING THE DEITY
|
|
|
|
|
|
I
|
|
|
|
This line of hieroglyphics was for fourteen years the
|
|
despair of all the scholars who labored over the mysteries of the
|
|
Rosetta stone: [Figure 1]
|
|
|
|
|
|
After five years of study Champollion translated it thus:
|
|
|
|
|
|
Therefore let the worship of Epiphanes be maintained in all
|
|
the temples, this upon pain of death.
|
|
|
|
|
|
That was the twenty-forth translation that had been
|
|
furnished by scholars. For a time it stood. But only for a
|
|
time. Then doubts began to assail it and undermine it, and the
|
|
scholars resumed their labors. Three years of patient work
|
|
produced eleven new translations; among them, this, by
|
|
Gr:unfeldt, was received with considerable favor:
|
|
|
|
|
|
The horse of Epiphanes shall be maintained at the public expense;
|
|
this upon pain of death.
|
|
|
|
|
|
But the following rendering, by Gospodin, was received by
|
|
the learned world with yet greater favor:
|
|
|
|
|
|
The priest shall explain the wisdom of Epiphanes to all these people,
|
|
and these shall listen with reverence, upon pain of death.
|
|
|
|
|
|
Seven years followed, in which twenty-one fresh and widely
|
|
varying renderings were scored--none of them quite convincing.
|
|
But now, at last, came Rawlinson, the youngest of all the
|
|
scholars, with a translation which was immediately and
|
|
universally recognized as being the correct version, and his name
|
|
became famous in a day. So famous, indeed, that even the
|
|
children were familiar with it; and such a noise did the
|
|
achievement itself make that not even the noise of the monumental
|
|
political event of that same year--the flight from Elba--was able
|
|
to smother it to silence. Rawlinson's version reads as follows:
|
|
|
|
|
|
Therefore, walk not away from the wisdom of Epiphanes, but
|
|
turn and follow it; so shall it conduct thee to the temple's
|
|
peace, and soften for thee the sorrows of life and the pains of
|
|
death.
|
|
|
|
|
|
Here is another difficult text: [Figure 2]
|
|
|
|
|
|
It is demotic--a style of Egyptian writing and a phase of
|
|
the language which has perished from the knowledge of all men
|
|
twenty-five hundred years before the Christian era.
|
|
|
|
Our red Indians have left many records, in the form of
|
|
pictures, upon our crags and boulders. It has taken our most
|
|
gifted and painstaking students two centuries to get at the
|
|
meanings hidden in these pictures; yet there are still two little
|
|
lines of hieroglyphics among the figures grouped upon the Dighton
|
|
Rocks which they have not succeeds in interpreting to their
|
|
satisfaction. These: [Figure 3]
|
|
|
|
|
|
The suggested solutions are practically innumerable; they
|
|
would fill a book.
|
|
|
|
Thus we have infinite trouble in solving man-made mysteries;
|
|
it is only when we set out to discover the secret of God that our
|
|
difficulties disappear. It was always so. In antique Roman
|
|
times it was the custom of the Deity to try to conceal His
|
|
intentions in the entrails of birds, and this was patiently and
|
|
hopefully continued century after century, although the attempted
|
|
concealment never succeeded, in a single recorded instance. The
|
|
augurs could read entrails as easily as a modern child can read
|
|
coarse print. Roman history is full of the marvels of
|
|
interpretation which these extraordinary men performed. These
|
|
strange and wonderful achievements move our awe and compel our
|
|
admiration. Those men could pierce to the marrow of a mystery
|
|
instantly. If the Rosetta-stone idea had been introduced it
|
|
would have defeated them, but entrails had no embarrassments for
|
|
them. Entrails have gone out, now--entrails and dreams. It was
|
|
at last found out that as hiding-places for the divine intentions
|
|
they were inadequate.
|
|
|
|
|
|
A part of the wall of Valletri in former times been struck
|
|
with thunder, the response of the soothsayers was, that a native
|
|
of that town would some time or other arrive at supreme power.--
|
|
BOHN'S SUETONIUS, p. 138.
|
|
|
|
|
|
"Some time or other." It looks indefinite, but no matter,
|
|
it happened, all the same; one needed only to wait, and be
|
|
patient, and keep watch, then he would find out that the thunder-
|
|
stroke had Caesar Augustus in mind, and had come to give notice.
|
|
|
|
There were other advance-advertisements. One of them
|
|
appeared just before Caesar Augustus was born, and was most
|
|
poetic and touching and romantic in its feelings and aspects.
|
|
It was a dream. It was dreamed by Caesar Augustus's mother,
|
|
and interpreted at the usual rates:
|
|
|
|
|
|
Atia, before her delivery, dreamed that her bowels stretched
|
|
to the stars and expanded through the whole circuit of heaven
|
|
and earth.--SUETONIUS, p. 139.
|
|
|
|
|
|
That was in the augur's line, and furnished him no
|
|
difficulties, but it would have taken Rawlinson and Champollion
|
|
fourteen years to make sure of what it meant, because they would
|
|
have been surprised and dizzy. It would have been too late to be
|
|
valuable, then, and the bill for service would have been barred
|
|
by the statute of limitation.
|
|
|
|
In those old Roman days a gentleman's education was not
|
|
complete until he had taken a theological course at the seminary
|
|
and learned how to translate entrails. Caesar Augustus's
|
|
education received this final polish. All through his life,
|
|
whenever he had poultry on the menu he saved the interiors and
|
|
kept himself informed of the Deity's plans by exercising upon
|
|
those interiors the arts of augury.
|
|
|
|
|
|
In his first consulship, while he was observing the
|
|
auguries, twelve vultures presented themselves, as they had done
|
|
to Romulus. And when he offered sacrifice, the livers of all
|
|
the victims were folded inward in the lower part; a circumstance
|
|
which was regarded by those present who had skill in things of
|
|
that nature, as an indubitable prognostic of great and wonderful
|
|
fortune.--SUETONIUS, p. 141.
|
|
|
|
|
|
"Indubitable" is a strong word, but no doubt it was
|
|
justified, if the livers were really turned that way. In those
|
|
days chicken livers were strangely and delicately sensitive to
|
|
coming events, no matter how far off they might be; and they
|
|
could never keep still, but would curl and squirm like that,
|
|
particularly when vultures came and showed interest in that
|
|
approaching great event and in breakfast.
|
|
|
|
|
|
II
|
|
|
|
We may now skip eleven hundred and thirty or forty years,
|
|
which brings us down to enlightened Christian times and the
|
|
troubled days of King Stephen of England. The augur has had his
|
|
day and has been long ago forgotten; the priest had fallen heir
|
|
to his trade.
|
|
|
|
King Henry is dead; Stephen, that bold and outrageous
|
|
person, comes flying over from Normandy to steal the throne from
|
|
Henry's daughter. He accomplished his crime, and Henry of
|
|
Huntington, a priest of high degree, mourns over it in his
|
|
Chronicle. The Archbishop of Canterbury consecrated Stephen:
|
|
"wherefore the Lord visited the Archbishop with the same judgment
|
|
which he had inflicted upon him who struck Jeremiah the great
|
|
priest: he died with a year."
|
|
|
|
Stephen's was the greater offense, but Stephen could wait;
|
|
not so the Archbishop, apparently.
|
|
|
|
|
|
The kingdom was a prey to intestine wars; slaughter, fire,
|
|
and rapine spread ruin throughout the land; cries of distress,
|
|
horror, and woe rose in every quarter.
|
|
|
|
|
|
That was the result of Stephen's crime. These unspeakable
|
|
conditions continued during nineteen years. Then Stephen died as
|
|
comfortably as any man ever did, and was honorably buried. It
|
|
makes one pity the poor Archbishop, and with that he, too, could
|
|
have been let off as leniently. How did Henry of Huntington know
|
|
that the Archbishop was sent to his grave by judgment of God for
|
|
consecrating Stephen? He does not explain. Neither does he
|
|
explain why Stephen was awarded a pleasanter death than he was
|
|
entitled to, while the aged King Henry, his predecessor, who had
|
|
ruled England thirty-five years to the people's strongly worded
|
|
satisfaction, was condemned to close his life in circumstances
|
|
most distinctly unpleasant, inconvenient, and disagreeable. His
|
|
was probably the most uninspiring funeral that is set down in
|
|
history. There is not a detail about it that is attractive. It
|
|
seems to have been just the funeral for Stephen, and even at this
|
|
far-distant day it is matter of just regret that by an
|
|
indiscretion the wrong man got it.
|
|
|
|
Whenever God punishes a man, Henry of Huntington knows why
|
|
it was done, and tells us; and his pen is eloquent with
|
|
admiration; but when a man has earned punishment, and escapes, he
|
|
does not explain. He is evidently puzzled, but he does not say
|
|
anything. I think it is often apparent that he is pained by
|
|
these discrepancies, but loyally tries his best not to show it.
|
|
When he cannot praise, he delivers himself of a silence so marked
|
|
that a suspicious person could mistake it for suppressed
|
|
criticism. However, he has plenty of opportunities to feel
|
|
contented with the way things go--his book is full of them.
|
|
|
|
|
|
King David of Scotland . . . under color of religion caused
|
|
his followers to deal most barbarously with the English. They
|
|
ripped open women, tossed children on the points of spears,
|
|
butchered priests at the altars, and, cutting off the heads from
|
|
the images on crucifixes, placed them on the bodies of the slain,
|
|
while in exchange they fixed on the crucifixes the heads of their
|
|
victims. Wherever the Scots came, there was the same scene of
|
|
horror and cruelty: women shrieking, old men lamenting, amid the
|
|
groans of the dying and the despair of the living.
|
|
|
|
|
|
But the English got the victory.
|
|
|
|
|
|
Then the chief of the men of Lothian fell, pierced by an arrow,
|
|
and all his followers were put to flight. For the Almighty was
|
|
offended at them and their strength was rent like a cobweb.
|
|
|
|
|
|
Offended at them for what? For committing those fearful
|
|
butcheries? No, for that was the common custom on both sides,
|
|
and not open to criticism. Then was it for doing the butcheries
|
|
"under cover of religion"? No, that was not it; religious
|
|
feeling was often expressed in that fervent way all through those
|
|
old centuries. The truth is, He was not offended at "them" at all;
|
|
He was only offended at their king, who had been false to an oath.
|
|
Then why did not He put the punishment upon the king instead of
|
|
upon "them"? It is a difficult question. One can see by the
|
|
Chronicle that the "judgments" fell rather customarily upon
|
|
the wrong person, but Henry of Huntington does not explain why.
|
|
Here is one that went true; the chronicler's satisfaction
|
|
in it is not hidden:
|
|
|
|
|
|
In the month of August, Providence displayed its justice in
|
|
a remarkable manner; for two of the nobles who had converted
|
|
monasteries into fortifications, expelling the monks, their sin
|
|
being the same, met with a similar punishment. Robert Marmion
|
|
was one, Godfrey de Mandeville the other. Robert Marmion,
|
|
issuing forth against the enemy, was slain under the walls of the
|
|
monastery, being the only one who fell, though he was surrounded
|
|
by his troops. Dying excommunicated, he became subject to death
|
|
everlasting. In like manner Earl Godfrey was singled out among
|
|
his followers, and shot with an arrow by a common foot-soldier.
|
|
He made light of the wound, but he died of it in a few days,
|
|
under excommunication. See here the like judgment of God,
|
|
memorable through all ages!
|
|
|
|
|
|
The exaltation jars upon me; not because of the death of the
|
|
men, for they deserved that, but because it is death eternal, in
|
|
white-hot fire and flame. It makes my flesh crawl. I have not
|
|
known more than three men, or perhaps four, in my whole lifetime,
|
|
*whom I would rejoice to see writhing in those fires for even a
|
|
year, let alone forever. I believe I would relent before the
|
|
year was up, and get them out if I could. I think that in
|
|
the long run, if a man's wife and babies, who had not harmed me,
|
|
should come crying and pleading, I couldn't stand it; I know I
|
|
should forgive him and let him go, even if he had violated a
|
|
monastery. Henry of Huntington has been watching Godfrey and
|
|
Marmion for nearly seven hundred and fifty years, now, but I
|
|
couldn't do it, I know I couldn't. I am soft and gentle in my
|
|
nature, and I should have forgiven them seventy-and-seven times,
|
|
long ago. And I think God has; but this is only an opinion,
|
|
and not authoritative, like Henry of Huntington's interpretations.
|
|
I could learn to interpret, but I have never tried; I get so
|
|
little time.
|
|
|
|
All through his book Henry exhibits his familiarity with the
|
|
intentions of God, and with the reasons for his intentions.
|
|
Sometimes--very often, in fact--the act follows the intention
|
|
after such a wide interval of time that one wonders how Henry
|
|
could fit one act out of a hundred to one intention out of a
|
|
hundred and get the thing right every time when there was such
|
|
abundant choice among acts and intentions. Sometimes a man
|
|
offends the Deity with a crime, and is punished for it thirty
|
|
years later; meantime he was committed a million other crimes:
|
|
no matter, Henry can pick out the one that brought the worms.
|
|
Worms were generally used in those days for the slaying of
|
|
particularly wicked people. This has gone out, now, but in old
|
|
times it was a favorite. It always indicated a case of "wrath."
|
|
For instance:
|
|
|
|
|
|
. . . the just God avenging Robert Fitzhilderbrand's
|
|
perfidy, a worm grew in his vitals, which gradually gnawing its
|
|
way through his intestines fattened on the abandoned man till,
|
|
tortured with excruciating sufferings and venting himself in
|
|
bitter moans, he was by a fitting punishment brought to his end.
|
|
--(P. 400.)
|
|
|
|
|
|
It was probably an alligator, but we cannot tell; we only
|
|
know it was a particular breed, and only used to convey wrath.
|
|
Some authorities think it was an ichthyosaurus, but there is
|
|
much doubt.
|
|
|
|
However, one thing we do know; and that is that that worm had been
|
|
due years and years. Robert F. had violated a monastery once;
|
|
he had committed unprintable crimes since, and they had been
|
|
permitted--under disapproval--but the ravishment of the monastery
|
|
had not been forgotten nor forgiven, and the worm came at last.
|
|
|
|
Why were these reforms put off in this strange way? What was to
|
|
be gained by it? Did Henry of Huntington really know his facts,
|
|
or was he only guessing? Sometimes I am half persuaded that
|
|
he is only a guesser, and not a good one. The divine wisdom
|
|
must surely be of the better quality than he makes it out to be.
|
|
|
|
Five hundred years before Henry's time some forecasts of the
|
|
Lord's purposes were furnished by a pope, who perceived, by
|
|
certain perfectly trustworthy signs furnished by the Deity for
|
|
the information of His familiars, that the end of the world was
|
|
|
|
|
|
. . . about to come. But as this end of the world draws
|
|
near many things are at hand which have not before happened, as
|
|
changes in the air, terrible signs in the heavens, tempests out
|
|
of the common order of the seasons, wars, famines, pestilences,
|
|
earthquakes in various places; all which will not happen in our
|
|
days, but after our days all will come to pass.
|
|
|
|
|
|
Still, the end was so near that these signs were "sent before
|
|
that we may be careful for our souls and be found prepared
|
|
to meet the impending judgment."
|
|
|
|
That was thirteen hundred years ago. This is really no
|
|
improvement on the work of the Roman augurs.
|
|
|
|
-------------------------------------------------------------------
|
|
|
|
|
|
CONCERNING TOBACCO
|
|
|
|
As concerns tobacco, there are many superstitions. And the
|
|
chiefest is this--that there is a STANDARD governing the matter,
|
|
whereas there is nothing of the kind. Each man's own preference
|
|
is the only standard for him, the only one which he can accept,
|
|
the only one which can command him. A congress of all the
|
|
tobacco-lovers in the world could not elect a standard which
|
|
would be binding upon you or me, or would even much influence us.
|
|
|
|
The next superstition is that a man has a standard of his own.
|
|
He hasn't. He thinks he has, but he hasn't. He thinks he can
|
|
tell what he regards as a good cigar from what he regards as a
|
|
bad one--but he can't. He goes by the brand, yet imagines he goes
|
|
by the flavor. One may palm off the worst counterfeit upon him;
|
|
if it bears his brand he will smoke it contentedly and never suspect.
|
|
|
|
Children of twenty-five, who have seven years experience,
|
|
try to tell me what is a good cigar and what isn't.
|
|
Me, who never learned to smoke, but always smoked;
|
|
me, who came into the world asking for a light.
|
|
|
|
No one can tell me what is a good cigar--for me. I am the
|
|
only judge. People who claim to know say that I smoke the worst
|
|
cigars in the world. They bring their own cigars when they come
|
|
to my house. They betray an unmanly terror when I offer them
|
|
a cigar; they tell lies and hurry away to meet engagements
|
|
which they have not made when they are threatened with the
|
|
hospitalities of my box. Now then, observe what superstition,
|
|
assisted by a man's reputation, can do. I was to have twelve
|
|
personal friends to supper one night. One of them was as
|
|
notorious for costly and elegant cigars as I was for cheap and
|
|
devilish ones. I called at his house and when no one was looking
|
|
borrowed a double handful of his very choicest; cigars which cost
|
|
him forty cents apiece and bore red-and-gold labels in sign of
|
|
their nobility. I removed the labels and put the cigars into a
|
|
box with my favorite brand on it--a brand which those people all
|
|
knew, and which cowed them as men are cowed by an epidemic. They
|
|
took these cigars when offered at the end of the supper, and lit
|
|
them and sternly struggled with them--in dreary silence, for
|
|
hilarity died when the fell brand came into view and started
|
|
around--but their fortitude held for a short time only; then they
|
|
made excuses and filed out, treading on one another's heels with
|
|
indecent eagerness; and in the morning when I went out to observe
|
|
results the cigars lay all between the front door and the gate.
|
|
All except one--that one lay in the plate of the man from whom I
|
|
had cabbaged the lot. One or two whiffs was all he could stand.
|
|
He told me afterward that some day I would get shot for giving
|
|
people that kind of cigars to smoke.
|
|
|
|
Am I certain of my own standard? Perfectly; yes, absolutely
|
|
--unless somebody fools me by putting my brand on some other kind
|
|
of cigar; for no doubt I am like the rest, and know my cigar by
|
|
the brand instead of by the flavor. However, my standard is a
|
|
pretty wide one and covers a good deal of territory. To me,
|
|
almost any cigar is good that nobody else will smoke, and to me
|
|
almost all cigars are bad that other people consider good.
|
|
Nearly any cigar will do me, except a Havana. People think they
|
|
hurt my feelings when then come to my house with their life
|
|
preservers on--I mean, with their own cigars in their pockets.
|
|
It is an error; I take care of myself in a similar way. When I
|
|
go into danger--that is, into rich people's houses, where, in the
|
|
nature of things, they will have high-tariff cigars, red-and-gilt
|
|
girded and nested in a rosewood box along with a damp sponge,
|
|
cigars which develop a dismal black ash and burn down the side
|
|
and smell, and will grow hot to the fingers, and will go on
|
|
growing hotter and hotter, and go on smelling more and more
|
|
infamously and unendurably the deeper the fire tunnels down
|
|
inside below the thimbleful of honest tobacco that is in the
|
|
front end, the furnisher of it praising it all the time and
|
|
telling you how much the deadly thing cost--yes, when I go into
|
|
that sort of peril I carry my own defense along; I carry my own
|
|
brand--twenty-seven cents a barrel--and I live to see my family
|
|
again. I may seem to light his red-gartered cigar, but that is
|
|
only for courtesy's sake; I smuggle it into my pocket for the
|
|
poor, of whom I know many, and light one of my own; and while he
|
|
praises it I join in, but when he says it cost forty-five cents I
|
|
say nothing, for I know better.
|
|
|
|
However, to say true, my tastes are so catholic that I have
|
|
never seen any cigars that I really could not smoke, except those
|
|
that cost a dollar apiece. I have examined those and know that
|
|
they are made of dog-hair, and not good dog-hair at that.
|
|
|
|
I have a thoroughly satisfactory time in Europe, for all
|
|
over the Continent one finds cigars which not even the most
|
|
hardened newsboys in New York would smoke. I brought cigars with
|
|
me, the last time; I will not do that any more. In Italy, as in
|
|
France, the Government is the only cigar-peddler. Italy has
|
|
three or four domestic brands: the Minghetti, the Trabuco, the
|
|
Virginia, and a very coarse one which is a modification of the
|
|
Virginia. The Minghettis are large and comely, and cost three
|
|
dollars and sixty cents a hundred; I can smoke a hundred in seven
|
|
days and enjoy every one of them. The Trabucos suit me, too; I
|
|
don't remember the price. But one has to learn to like the
|
|
Virginia, nobody is born friendly to it. It looks like a rat-
|
|
tail file, but smokes better, some think. It has a straw through
|
|
it; you pull this out, and it leaves a flue, otherwise there
|
|
would be no draught, not even as much as there is to a nail.
|
|
Some prefer a nail at first. However, I like all the French,
|
|
Swiss, German, and Italian domestic cigars, and have never cared
|
|
to inquire what they are made of; and nobody would know, anyhow,
|
|
perhaps. There is even a brand of European smoking-tobacco that
|
|
I like. It is a brand used by the Italian peasants. It is loose
|
|
and dry and black, and looks like tea-grounds. When the fire is
|
|
applied it expands, and climbs up and towers above the pipe, and
|
|
presently tumbles off inside of one's vest. The tobacco itself
|
|
is cheap, but it raises the insurance. It is as I remarked in
|
|
the beginning--the taste for tobacco is a matter of superstition.
|
|
There are no standards--no real standards. Each man's preference
|
|
is the only standard for him, the only one which he can accept,
|
|
the only one which can command him.
|
|
|
|
------------------------------------------------------------------
|
|
|
|
|
|
THE BEE
|
|
|
|
It was Maeterlinck who introduced me to the bee. I mean, in
|
|
the psychical and in the poetical way. I had had a business
|
|
introduction earlier. It was when I was a boy. It is strange
|
|
that I should remember a formality like that so long; it must be
|
|
nearly sixty years.
|
|
|
|
Bee scientists always speak of the bee as she. It is
|
|
because all the important bees are of that sex. In the hive
|
|
there is one married bee, called the queen; she has fifty
|
|
thousand children; of these, about one hundred are sons; the rest
|
|
are daughters. Some of the daughters are young maids, some are
|
|
old maids, and all are virgins and remain so.
|
|
|
|
Every spring the queen comes out of the hive and flies away
|
|
with one of her sons and marries him. The honeymoon lasts only
|
|
an hour or two; then the queen divorces her husband and returns
|
|
home competent to lay two million eggs. This will be enough to
|
|
last the year, but not more than enough, because hundreds of bees
|
|
are drowned every day, and other hundreds are eaten by birds, and
|
|
it is the queen's business to keep the population up to standard
|
|
--say, fifty thousand. She must always have that many children
|
|
on hand and efficient during the busy season, which is summer, or
|
|
winter would catch the community short of food. She lays from
|
|
two thousand to three thousand eggs a day, according to the
|
|
demand; and she must exercise judgment, and not lay more than are
|
|
needed in a slim flower-harvest, nor fewer than are required in a
|
|
prodigal one, or the board of directors will dethrone her and
|
|
elect a queen that has more sense.
|
|
|
|
There are always a few royal heirs in stock and ready to
|
|
take her place--ready and more than anxious to do it, although
|
|
she is their own mother. These girls are kept by themselves, and
|
|
are regally fed and tended from birth. No other bees get such
|
|
fine food as they get, or live such a high and luxurious life.
|
|
By consequence they are larger and longer and sleeker than their
|
|
working sisters. And they have a curved sting, shaped like a
|
|
scimitar, while the others have a straight one.
|
|
|
|
A common bee will sting any one or anybody, but a royalty
|
|
stings royalties only. A common bee will sting and kill another
|
|
common bee, for cause, but when it is necessary to kill the queen
|
|
other ways are employed. When a queen has grown old and slack
|
|
and does not lay eggs enough one of her royal daughters is
|
|
allowed to come to attack her, the rest of the bees looking on at
|
|
the duel and seeing fair play. It is a duel with the curved
|
|
stings. If one of the fighters gets hard pressed and gives it up
|
|
and runs, she is brought back and must try again--once, maybe
|
|
twice; then, if she runs yet once more for her life, judicial
|
|
death is her portion; her children pack themselves into a ball
|
|
around her person and hold her in that compact grip two or three
|
|
days, until she starves to death or is suffocated. Meantime the
|
|
victor bee is receiving royal honors and performing the one royal
|
|
function--laying eggs.
|
|
|
|
As regards the ethics of the judicial assassination of the
|
|
queen, that is a matter of politics, and will be discussed later,
|
|
in its proper place.
|
|
|
|
During substantially the whole of her short life of five or
|
|
six years the queen lives in Egyptian darkness and stately
|
|
seclusion of the royal apartments, with none about her but
|
|
plebeian servants, who give her empty lip-affection in place of
|
|
the love which her heart hungers for; who spy upon her in the
|
|
interest of her waiting heirs, and report and exaggerate her
|
|
defects and deficiencies to them; who fawn upon her and flatter
|
|
her to her face and slander her behind her back; who grovel
|
|
before her in the day of her power and forsake her in her age and
|
|
weakness. There she sits, friendless, upon her throne through
|
|
the long night of her life, cut off from the consoling sympathies
|
|
and sweet companionship and loving endearments which she craves,
|
|
by the gilded barriers of her awful rank; a forlorn exile in her
|
|
own house and home, weary object of formal ceremonies and
|
|
machine-made worship, winged child of the sun, native to the free
|
|
air and the blue skies and the flowery fields, doomed by the
|
|
splendid accident of her birth to trade this priceless heritage
|
|
for a black captivity, a tinsel grandeur, and a loveless life,
|
|
with shame and insult at the end and a cruel death--and condemned
|
|
by the human instinct in her to hold the bargain valuable!
|
|
|
|
Huber, Lubbock, Maeterlinck--in fact, all the great
|
|
authorities--are agreed in denying that the bee is a member of
|
|
the human family. I do not know why they have done this, but I
|
|
think it is from dishonest motives. Why, the innumerable facts
|
|
brought to light by their own painstaking and exhaustive
|
|
experiments prove that if there is a master fool in the world, it
|
|
is the bee. That seems to settle it.
|
|
|
|
But that is the way of the scientist. He will spend thirty
|
|
years in building up a mountain range of facts with the intent to
|
|
prove a certain theory; then he is so happy in his achievement
|
|
that as a rule he overlooks the main chief fact of all--that his
|
|
accumulation proves an entirely different thing. When you point
|
|
out this miscarriage to him he does not answer your letters; when
|
|
you call to convince him, the servant prevaricates and you do not
|
|
get in. Scientists have odious manners, except when you prop up
|
|
their theory; then you can borrow money of them.
|
|
|
|
To be strictly fair, I will concede that now and then one of
|
|
them will answer your letter, but when they do they avoid the
|
|
issue--you cannot pin them down. When I discovered that the bee
|
|
was human I wrote about it to all those scientists whom I have
|
|
just mentioned. For evasions, I have seen nothing to equal the
|
|
answers I got.
|
|
|
|
After the queen, the personage next in importance in the
|
|
hive is the virgin. The virgins are fifty thousand or one
|
|
hundred thousand in number, and they are the workers, the
|
|
laborers. No work is done, in the hive or out of it, save by
|
|
them. The males do not work, the queen does no work, unless
|
|
laying eggs is work, but it does not seem so to me. There are
|
|
only two million of them, anyway, and all of five months to
|
|
finish the contract in. The distribution of work in a hive is as
|
|
cleverly and elaborately specialized as it is in a vast American
|
|
machine-shop or factory. A bee that has been trained to one of
|
|
the many and various industries of the concern doesn't know how
|
|
to exercise any other, and would be offended if asked to take a
|
|
hand in anything outside of her profession. She is as human as a
|
|
cook; and if you should ask the cook to wait on the table, you
|
|
know what will happen. Cooks will play the piano if you like,
|
|
but they draw the line there. In my time I have asked a cook to
|
|
chop wood, and I know about these things. Even the hired girl
|
|
has her frontiers; true, they are vague, they are ill-defined,
|
|
even flexible, but they are there. This is not conjecture; it is
|
|
founded on the absolute. And then the butler. You ask the
|
|
butler to wash the dog. It is just as I say; there is much to be
|
|
learned in these ways, without going to books. Books are very well,
|
|
but books do not cover the whole domain of esthetic human culture.
|
|
Pride of profession is one of the boniest bones in existence,
|
|
if not the boniest. Without doubt it is so in the hive.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
TAMING THE BICYCLE
|
|
|
|
In the early eighties Mark Twain learned to ride one of the
|
|
old high-wheel bicycles of that period. He wrote an account of
|
|
his experience, but did not offer it for publication. The form
|
|
of bicycle he rode long ago became antiquated, but in the humor
|
|
of his pleasantry is a quality which does not grow old.
|
|
|
|
|
|
A. B. P.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
I
|
|
|
|
I thought the matter over, and concluded I could do it. So
|
|
I went down a bought a barrel of Pond's Extract and a bicycle.
|
|
The Expert came home with me to instruct me. We chose the
|
|
back yard, for the sake of privacy, and went to work.
|
|
|
|
Mine was not a full-grown bicycle, but only a colt--a
|
|
fifty-inch, with the pedals shortened up to forty-eight--and
|
|
skittish, like any other colt. The Expert explained the thing's
|
|
points briefly, then he got on its back and rode around a little,
|
|
to show me how easy it was to do. He said that the dismounting
|
|
was perhaps the hardest thing to learn, and so we would leave
|
|
that to the last. But he was in error there. He found, to his
|
|
surprise and joy, that all that he needed to do was to get me on
|
|
to the machine and stand out of the way; I could get off, myself.
|
|
Although I was wholly inexperienced, I dismounted in the best
|
|
time on record. He was on that side, shoving up the machine;
|
|
we all came down with a crash, he at the bottom, I next,
|
|
and the machine on top.
|
|
|
|
We examined the machine, but it was not in the least
|
|
injured. This was hardly believable. Yet the Expert assured me
|
|
that it was true; in fact, the examination proved it. I was
|
|
partly to realize, then, how admirably these things are
|
|
constructed. We applied some Pond's Extract, and resumed. The
|
|
Expert got on the OTHER side to shove up this time, but I
|
|
dismounted on that side; so the result was as before.
|
|
|
|
The machine was not hurt. We oiled ourselves again, and resumed.
|
|
This time the Expert took up a sheltered position behind,
|
|
but somehow or other we landed on him again.
|
|
|
|
He was full of admiration; said it was abnormal. She was
|
|
all right, not a scratch on her, not a timber started anywhere.
|
|
I said it was wonderful, while we were greasing up, but he said
|
|
that when I came to know these steel spider-webs I would realize
|
|
that nothing but dynamite could cripple them. Then he limped out
|
|
to position, and we resumed once more. This time the Expert took
|
|
up the position of short-stop, and got a man to shove up behind.
|
|
We got up a handsome speed, and presently traversed a brick, and
|
|
I went out over the top of the tiller and landed, head down, on
|
|
the instructor's back, and saw the machine fluttering in the air
|
|
between me and the sun. It was well it came down on us, for that
|
|
broke the fall, and it was not injured.
|
|
|
|
Five days later I got out and was carried down to the
|
|
hospital, and found the Expert doing pretty fairly. In a few
|
|
more days I was quite sound. I attribute this to my prudence in
|
|
always dismounting on something soft. Some recommend a feather
|
|
bed, but I think an Expert is better.
|
|
|
|
The Expert got out at last, brought four assistants with
|
|
him. It was a good idea. These four held the graceful cobweb
|
|
upright while I climbed into the saddle; then they formed in
|
|
column and marched on either side of me while the Expert pushed
|
|
behind; all hands assisted at the dismount.
|
|
|
|
The bicycle had what is called the "wabbles," and had them
|
|
very badly. In order to keep my position, a good many things
|
|
were required of me, and in every instance the thing required was
|
|
against nature. That is to say, that whatever the needed thing
|
|
might be, my nature, habit, and breeding moved me to attempt it
|
|
in one way, while some immutable and unsuspected law of physics
|
|
required that it be done in just the other way. I perceived by
|
|
this how radically and grotesquely wrong had been the life-long
|
|
education of my body and members. They were steeped in
|
|
ignorance; they knew nothing--nothing which it could profit them
|
|
to know. For instance, if I found myself falling to the right, I
|
|
put the tiller hard down the other way, by a quite natural
|
|
impulse, and so violated a law, and kept on going down. The law
|
|
required the opposite thing--the big wheel must be turned in the
|
|
direction in which you are falling. It is hard to believe this,
|
|
when you are told it. And not merely hard to believe it, but
|
|
impossible; it is opposed to all your notions. And it is just as
|
|
hard to do it, after you do come to believe it. Believing it,
|
|
and knowing by the most convincing proof that it is true, does
|
|
not help it: you can't any more DO it than you could before; you
|
|
can neither force nor persuade yourself to do it at first. The
|
|
intellect has to come to the front, now. It has to teach the
|
|
limbs to discard their old education and adopt the new.
|
|
|
|
The steps of one's progress are distinctly marked. At the
|
|
end of each lesson he knows he has acquired something, and he
|
|
also knows what that something is, and likewise that it will stay
|
|
with him. It is not like studying German, where you mull along,
|
|
in a groping, uncertain way, for thirty years; and at last, just
|
|
as you think you've got it, they spring the subjunctive on you,
|
|
and there you are. No--and I see now, plainly enough, that the
|
|
great pity about the German language is, that you can't fall off
|
|
it and hurt yourself. There is nothing like that feature to make
|
|
you attend strictly to business. But I also see, by what I have
|
|
learned of bicycling, that the right and only sure way to learn
|
|
German is by the bicycling method. That is to say, take a grip
|
|
on one villainy of it at a time, leaving that one half learned.
|
|
|
|
When you have reached the point in bicycling where you can
|
|
balance the machine tolerably fairly and propel it and steer it,
|
|
then comes your next task--how to mount it. You do it in this
|
|
way: you hop along behind it on your right foot, resting the
|
|
other on the mounting-peg, and grasping the tiller with your
|
|
hands. At the word, you rise on the peg, stiffen your left leg,
|
|
hang your other one around in the air in a general in indefinite
|
|
way, lean your stomach against the rear of the saddle, and then
|
|
fall off, maybe on one side, maybe on the other; but you fall off.
|
|
You get up and do it again; and once more; and then several times.
|
|
|
|
By this time you have learned to keep your balance; and also
|
|
to steer without wrenching the tiller out by the roots (I say
|
|
tiller because it IS a tiller; "handle-bar" is a lamely
|
|
descriptive phrase). So you steer along, straight ahead, a little
|
|
while, then you rise forward, with a steady strain, bringing your
|
|
right leg, and then your body, into the saddle, catch your
|
|
breath, fetch a violent hitch this way and then that, and down
|
|
you go again.
|
|
|
|
But you have ceased to mind the going down by this time; you
|
|
are getting to light on one foot or the other with considerable
|
|
certainty. Six more attempts and six more falls make you
|
|
perfect. You land in the saddle comfortably, next time, and stay
|
|
there--that is, if you can be content to let your legs dangle,
|
|
and leave the pedals alone a while; but if you grab at once for
|
|
the pedals, you are gone again. You soon learn to wait a little
|
|
and perfect your balance before reaching for the pedals; then the
|
|
mounting-art is acquired, is complete, and a little practice will
|
|
make it simple and easy to you, though spectators ought to keep
|
|
off a rod or two to one side, along at first, if you have nothing
|
|
against them.
|
|
|
|
And now you come to the voluntary dismount; you learned the
|
|
other kind first of all. It is quite easy to tell one how to do
|
|
the voluntary dismount; the words are few, the requirement
|
|
simple, and apparently undifficult; let your left pedal go down
|
|
till your left leg is nearly straight, turn your wheel to the
|
|
left, and get off as you would from a horse. It certainly does
|
|
sound exceedingly easy; but it isn't. I don't know why it isn't
|
|
but it isn't. Try as you may, you don't get down as you would
|
|
from a horse, you get down as you would from a house afire. You
|
|
make a spectacle of yourself every time.
|
|
|
|
|
|
II
|
|
|
|
During the eight days I took a daily lesson an hour and a
|
|
half. At the end of this twelve working-hours' appreticeship I
|
|
was graduated--in the rough. I was pronounced competent to
|
|
paddle my own bicycle without outside help. It seems incredible,
|
|
this celerity of acquirement. It takes considerably longer than
|
|
that to learn horseback-riding in the rough.
|
|
|
|
Now it is true that I could have learned without a teacher,
|
|
but it would have been risky for me, because of my natural
|
|
clumsiness. The self-taught man seldom knows anything
|
|
accurately, and he does not know a tenth as much as he could have
|
|
known if he had worked under teachers; and, besides, he brags,
|
|
and is the means of fooling other thoughtless people into going
|
|
and doing as he himself has done. There are those who imagine
|
|
that the unlucky accidents of life--life's "experiences"--are in
|
|
some way useful to us. I wish I could find out how. I never
|
|
knew one of them to happen twice. They always change off and
|
|
swap around and catch you on your inexperienced side. If
|
|
personal experience can be worth anything as an education, it
|
|
wouldn't seem likely that you could trip Methuselah; and yet if
|
|
that old person could come back here it is more that likely that
|
|
one of the first things he would do would be to take hold of one
|
|
of these electric wires and tie himself all up in a knot. Now
|
|
the surer thing and the wiser thing would be for him to ask
|
|
somebody whether it was a good thing to take hold of. But that
|
|
would not suit him; he would be one of the self-taught kind that
|
|
go by experience; he would want to examine for himself. And he
|
|
would find, for his instruction, that the coiled patriarch shuns
|
|
the electric wire; and it would be useful to him, too, and would
|
|
leave his education in quite a complete and rounded-out
|
|
condition, till he should come again, some day, and go to
|
|
bouncing a dynamite-can around to find out what was in it.
|
|
|
|
But we wander from the point. However, get a teacher; it
|
|
saves much time and Pond's Extract.
|
|
|
|
Before taking final leave of me, my instructor inquired
|
|
concerning my physical strength, and I was able to inform him
|
|
that I hadn't any. He said that that was a defect which would
|
|
make up-hill wheeling pretty difficult for me at first; but he
|
|
also said the bicycle would soon remove it. The contrast between
|
|
his muscles and mine was quite marked. He wanted to test mine,
|
|
so I offered my biceps--which was my best. It almost made him
|
|
smile. He said, "It is pulpy, and soft, and yielding, and
|
|
rounded; it evades pressure, and glides from under the fingers;
|
|
in the dark a body might think it was an oyster in a rag."
|
|
Perhaps this made me look grieved, for he added, briskly: "Oh,
|
|
that's all right, you needn't worry about that; in a little while
|
|
you can't tell it from a petrified kidney. Just go right along
|
|
with your practice; you're all right."
|
|
|
|
Then he left me, and I started out alone to seek adventures.
|
|
You don't really have to seek them--that is nothing but a phrase
|
|
--they come to you.
|
|
|
|
I chose a reposeful Sabbath-day sort of a back street which
|
|
was about thirty yards wide between the curbstones. I knew it
|
|
was not wide enough; still, I thought that by keeping strict
|
|
watch and wasting no space unnecessarily I could crowd through.
|
|
|
|
Of course I had trouble mounting the machine, entirely on my
|
|
own responsibility, with no encouraging moral support from the
|
|
outside, no sympathetic instructor to say, "Good! now you're
|
|
doing well--good again--don't hurry--there, now, you're all right
|
|
--brace up, go ahead." In place of this I had some other
|
|
support. This was a boy, who was perched on a gate-post munching
|
|
a hunk of maple sugar.
|
|
|
|
He was full of interest and comment. The first time I
|
|
failed and went down he said that if he was me he would dress up
|
|
in pillows, that's what he would do. The next time I went down
|
|
he advised me to go and learn to ride a tricycle first. The
|
|
third time I collapsed he said he didn't believe I could stay on
|
|
a horse-car. But the next time I succeeded, and got clumsily
|
|
under way in a weaving, tottering, uncertain fashion, and
|
|
occupying pretty much all of the street. My slow and lumbering
|
|
gait filled the boy to the chin with scorn, and he sung out, "My,
|
|
but don't he rip along!" Then he got down from his post and
|
|
loafed along the sidewalk, still observing and occasionally
|
|
commenting. Presently he dropped into my wake and followed along
|
|
behind. A little girl passed by, balancing a wash-board on her
|
|
head, and giggled, and seemed about to make a remark, but the boy
|
|
said, rebukingly, "Let him alone, he's going to a funeral."
|
|
|
|
I have been familiar with that street for years, and had
|
|
always supposed it was a dead level; but it was not, as the
|
|
bicycle now informed me, to my surprise. The bicycle, in the
|
|
hands of a novice, is as alert and acute as a spirit-level in the
|
|
detecting the delicate and vanishing shades of difference in
|
|
these matters. It notices a rise where your untrained eye would
|
|
not observe that one existed; it notices any decline which water
|
|
will run down. I was toiling up a slight rise, but was not aware
|
|
of it. It made me tug and pant and perspire; and still, labor as
|
|
I might, the machine came almost to a standstill every little while.
|
|
At such times the boy would say: "That's it! take a rest--
|
|
there ain't no hurry. They can't hold the funeral without YOU."
|
|
|
|
Stones were a bother to me. Even the smallest ones gave me a
|
|
panic when I went over them. I could hit any kind of a stone,
|
|
no matter how small, if I tried to miss it; and of course at
|
|
first I couldn't help trying to do that. It is but natural.
|
|
It is part of the ass that is put in us all, for some
|
|
inscrutable reason.
|
|
|
|
It was at the end of my course, at last, and it was necessary
|
|
for me to round to. This is not a pleasant thing, when you
|
|
undertake it for the first time on your own responsibility,
|
|
and neither is it likely to succeed. Your confidence oozes away,
|
|
you fill steadily up with nameless apprehensions, every fiber of
|
|
you is tense with a watchful strain, you start a cautious and
|
|
gradual curve, but your squirmy nerves are all full of electric
|
|
anxieties, so the curve is quickly demoralized into a jerky and
|
|
perilous zigzag; then suddenly the nickel-clad horse takes the
|
|
bit in its mouth and goes slanting for the curbstone, defying all
|
|
prayers and all your powers to change its mind--your heart stands
|
|
still, your breath hangs fire, your legs forget to work, straight
|
|
on you go, and there are but a couple of feet between you and the
|
|
curb now. And now is the desperate moment, the last chance to
|
|
save yourself; of course all your instructions fly out of your
|
|
head, and you whirl your wheel AWAY from the curb instead of
|
|
TOWARD it, and so you go sprawling on that granite-bound
|
|
inhospitable shore. That was my luck; that was my experience. I
|
|
dragged myself out from under the indestructible bicycle and sat
|
|
down on the curb to examine.
|
|
|
|
I started on the return trip. It was now that I saw a
|
|
farmer's wagon poking along down toward me, loaded with cabbages.
|
|
If I needed anything to perfect the precariousness of my steering,
|
|
it was just that. The farmer was occupying the middle of the road
|
|
with his wagon, leaving barely fourteen or fifteen yards of space
|
|
on either side. I couldn't shout at him--a beginner can't shout;
|
|
if he opens his mouth he is gone; he must keep all his attention
|
|
on his business. But in this grisly emergency, the boy came
|
|
to the rescue, and for once I had to be grateful to him.
|
|
He kept a sharp lookout on the swiftly varying impulses and
|
|
inspirations of my bicycle, and shouted to the man accordingly:
|
|
|
|
"To the left! Turn to the left, or this jackass 'll run over you!"
|
|
The man started to do it. "No, to the right, to the right!
|
|
Hold on! THAT won't do!--to the left!--to the right!--to the
|
|
LEFT--right! left--ri-- Stay where you ARE, or you're a goner!"
|
|
|
|
And just then I caught the off horse in the starboard and went
|
|
down in a pile. I said, "Hang it! Couldn't you SEE I was coming?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes, I see you was coming, but I couldn't tell which WAY you
|
|
was coming. Nobody could--now, COULD they? You couldn't
|
|
yourself--now, COULD you? So what could _I_ do?
|
|
|
|
There was something in that, and so I had the magnanimity to
|
|
say so. I said I was no doubt as much to blame as he was.
|
|
|
|
Within the next five days I achieved so much progress that
|
|
the boy couldn't keep up with me. He had to go back to his gate-
|
|
post, and content himself with watching me fall at long range.
|
|
|
|
There was a row of low stepping-stones across one end of the
|
|
street, a measured yard apart. Even after I got so I could steer
|
|
pretty fairly I was so afraid of those stones that I always hit
|
|
them. They gave me the worst falls I ever got in that street,
|
|
except those which I got from dogs. I have seen it stated that
|
|
no expert is quick enough to run over a dog; that a dog is always
|
|
able to skip out of his way. I think that that may be true: but
|
|
I think that the reason he couldn't run over the dog was because
|
|
he was trying to. I did not try to run over any dog. But I ran
|
|
over every dog that came along. I think it makes a great deal of
|
|
difference. If you try to run over the dog he knows how to
|
|
calculate, but if you are trying to miss him he does not know how
|
|
to calculate, and is liable to jump the wrong way every time. It
|
|
was always so in my experience. Even when I could not hit a
|
|
wagon I could hit a dog that came to see me practice. They all
|
|
liked to see me practice, and they all came, for there was very
|
|
little going on in our neighborhood to entertain a dog. It took
|
|
time to learn to miss a dog, but I achieved even that.
|
|
|
|
I can steer as well as I want to, now, and I will catch that
|
|
boy one of these days and run over HIM if he doesn't reform.
|
|
|
|
Get a bicycle. You will not regret it, if you live.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
IS SHAKESPEARE DEAD?
|
|
|
|
(from My Autobiography)
|
|
|
|
|
|
Scattered here and there through the stacks of unpublished
|
|
manuscript which constitute this formidable Autobiography and
|
|
Diary of mine, certain chapters will in some distant future be
|
|
found which deal with "Claimants"--claimants historically
|
|
notorious: Satan, Claimant; the Golden Calf, Claimant; the
|
|
Veiled Prophet of Khorassan, Claimant; Louis XVII., Claimant;
|
|
William Shakespeare, Claimant; Arthur Orton, Claimant; Mary Baker
|
|
G. Eddy, Claimant--and the rest of them. Eminent Claimants,
|
|
successful Claimants, defeated Claimants, royal Claimants, pleb
|
|
Claimants, showy Claimants, shabby Claimants, revered Claimants,
|
|
despised Claimants, twinkle star-like here and there and yonder
|
|
through the mists of history and legend and tradition--and, oh,
|
|
all the darling tribe are clothed in mystery and romance, and we
|
|
read about them with deep interest and discuss them with loving
|
|
sympathy or with rancorous resentment, according to which side we
|
|
hitch ourselves to. It has always been so with the human race.
|
|
There was never a Claimant that couldn't get a hearing, nor one
|
|
that couldn't accumulate a rapturous following, no matter how
|
|
flimsy and apparently unauthentic his claim might be. Arthur
|
|
Orton's claim that he was the lost Tichborne baronet come to life
|
|
again was as flimsy as Mrs. Eddy's that she wrote SCIENCE AND
|
|
HEALTH from the direct dictation of the Deity; yet in England
|
|
nearly forty years ago Orton had a huge army of devotees and
|
|
incorrigible adherents, many of whom remained stubbornly
|
|
unconvinced after their fat god had been proven an impostor and
|
|
jailed as a perjurer, and today Mrs. Eddy's following is not only
|
|
immense, but is daily augmenting in numbers and enthusiasm.
|
|
Orton had many fine and educated minds among his adherents, Mrs.
|
|
Eddy has had the like among hers from the beginning. Her Church
|
|
is as well equipped in those particulars as is any other Church.
|
|
Claimants can always count upon a following, it doesn't matter
|
|
who they are, nor what they claim, nor whether they come with
|
|
documents or without. It was always so. Down out of the long-
|
|
vanished past, across the abyss of the ages, if you listen, you
|
|
can still hear the believing multitudes shouting for Perkin
|
|
Warbeck and Lambert Simnel.
|
|
|
|
A friend has sent me a new book, from England--THE
|
|
SHAKESPEARE PROBLEM RESTATED--well restated and closely reasoned;
|
|
and my fifty years' interest in that matter--asleep for the last
|
|
three years--is excited once more. It is an interest which was
|
|
born of Delia Bacon's book--away back in the ancient day--1857,
|
|
or maybe 1856. About a year later my pilot-master, Bixby,
|
|
transferred me from his own steamboat to the PENNSYLVANIA, and
|
|
placed me under the orders and instructions of George Ealer--dead
|
|
now, these many, many years. I steered for him a good many
|
|
months--as was the humble duty of the pilot-apprentice: stood a
|
|
daylight watch and spun the wheel under the severe
|
|
superintendence and correction of the master. He was a prime
|
|
chess-player and an idolater of Shakespeare. He would play chess
|
|
with anybody; even with me, and it cost his official dignity
|
|
something to do that. Also--quite uninvited--he would read
|
|
Shakespeare to me; not just casually, but by the hour, when it
|
|
was his watch and I was steering. He read well, but not
|
|
profitably for me, because he constantly injected commands into
|
|
the text. That broke it all up, mixed it all up, tangled it all
|
|
up--to that degree, in fact, that if we were in a risky and
|
|
difficult piece of river an ignorant person couldn't have told,
|
|
sometimes, which observations were Shakespeare's and which were
|
|
Ealer's. For instance:
|
|
|
|
|
|
What man dare, _I_ dare!
|
|
|
|
Approach thou WHAT are you laying in the leads for? what a
|
|
hell of an idea! like the rugged ease her off a little, ease her
|
|
off! rugged Russian bear, the armed rhinoceros or the THERE she
|
|
goes! meet her, meet her! didn't you KNOW she'd smell the reef if
|
|
you crowded in like that? Hyrcan tiger; take any ship but that
|
|
and my firm nerves she'll be in the WOODS the first you know!
|
|
stop he starboard! come ahead strong on the larboard! back the
|
|
starboard! . . . NOW then, you're all right; come ahead on the
|
|
starboard; straighten up and go 'long, never tremble: or be
|
|
alive again, and dare me to the desert DAMNATION can't you keep
|
|
away from that greasy water? pull her down! snatch her! snatch
|
|
her baldheaded! with thy sword; if trembling I inhabit then, lay
|
|
in the leads!--no, only with the starboard one, leave the other
|
|
alone, protest me the baby of a girl. Hence horrible shadow!
|
|
eight bells--that watchman's asleep again, I reckon, go down and
|
|
call Brown yourself, unreal mockery, hence!
|
|
|
|
|
|
He certainly was a good reader, and splendidly thrilling and
|
|
stormy and tragic, but it was a damage to me, because I have
|
|
never since been able to read Shakespeare in a calm and sane way.
|
|
I cannot rid it of his explosive interlardings, they break in
|
|
everywhere with their irrelevant, "What in hell are you up to
|
|
NOW! pull her down! more! MORE!--there now, steady as you go,"
|
|
and the other disorganizing interruptions that were always
|
|
leaping from his mouth. When I read Shakespeare now I can hear
|
|
them as plainly as I did in that long-departed time--fifty-one
|
|
years ago. I never regarded Ealer's readings as educational.
|
|
Indeed, they were a detriment to me.
|
|
|
|
His contributions to the text seldom improved it, but
|
|
barring that detail he was a good reader; I can say that much for
|
|
him. He did not use the book, and did not need to; he knew his
|
|
Shakespeare as well as Euclid ever knew his multiplication table.
|
|
|
|
Did he have something to say--this Shakespeare-adoring
|
|
Mississippi pilot--anent Delia Bacon's book?
|
|
|
|
Yes. And he said it; said it all the time, for months--in
|
|
the morning watch, the middle watch, and dog watch; and probably
|
|
kept it going in his sleep. He bought the literature of the
|
|
dispute as fast as it appeared, and we discussed it all through
|
|
thirteen hundred miles of river four times traversed in every
|
|
thirty-five days--the time required by that swift boat to achieve
|
|
two round trips. We discussed, and discussed, and discussed, and
|
|
disputed and disputed and disputed; at any rate, HE did, and I
|
|
got in a word now and then when he slipped a cog and there was a
|
|
vacancy. He did his arguing with heat, with energy, with
|
|
violence; and I did mine with the reverse and moderation of a
|
|
subordinate who does not like to be flung out of a pilot-house
|
|
and is perched forty feet above the water. He was fiercely loyal
|
|
to Shakespeare and cordially scornful of Bacon and of all the
|
|
pretensions of the Baconians. So was I--at first. And at first
|
|
he was glad that that was my attitude. There were even
|
|
indications that he admired it; indications dimmed, it is true,
|
|
by the distance that lay between the lofty boss-pilotical
|
|
altitude and my lowly one, yet perceptible to me; perceptible,
|
|
and translatable into a compliment--compliment coming down from
|
|
about the snow-line and not well thawed in the transit, and not
|
|
likely to set anything afire, not even a cub-pilot's self-
|
|
conceit; still a detectable complement, and precious.
|
|
|
|
Naturally it flattered me into being more loyal to Shakespeare--
|
|
if possible--than I was before, and more prejudiced against
|
|
Bacon--if possible--that I was before. And so we discussed
|
|
and discussed, both on the same side, and were happy.
|
|
For a while. Only for a while. Only for a very little while,
|
|
a very, very, very little while. Then the atmosphere began
|
|
to change; began to cool off.
|
|
|
|
A brighter person would have seen what the trouble was,
|
|
earlier than I did, perhaps, but I saw it early enough for all
|
|
practical purposes. You see, he was of an argumentative
|
|
disposition. Therefore it took him but a little time to get
|
|
tired of arguing with a person who agreed with everything he said
|
|
and consequently never furnished him a provocative to flare up
|
|
and show what he could do when it came to clear, cold, hard,
|
|
rose-cut, hundred-faceted, diamond-flashing REASONING. That was
|
|
his name for it. It has been applied since, with complacency, as
|
|
many as several times, in the Bacon-Shakespeare scuffle. On the
|
|
Shakespeare side.
|
|
|
|
Then the thing happened which has happened to more persons
|
|
than to me when principle and personal interest found themselves
|
|
in opposition to each other and a choice had to be made: I let
|
|
principle go, and went over to the other side. Not the entire
|
|
way, but far enough to answer the requirements of the case. That
|
|
is to say, I took this attitude--to wit, I only BELIEVED Bacon
|
|
wrote Shakespeare, whereas I KNEW Shakespeare didn't. Ealer was
|
|
satisfied with that, and the war broke loose. Study, practice,
|
|
experience in handling my end of the matter presently enabled me
|
|
to take my new position almost seriously; a little bit later,
|
|
utterly seriously; a little later still, lovingly, gratefully,
|
|
devotedly; finally: fiercely, rabidly, uncompromisingly. After
|
|
that I was welded to my faith, I was theoretically ready to die
|
|
for it, and I looked down with compassion not unmixed with scorn
|
|
upon everybody else's faith that didn't tally with mine. That
|
|
faith, imposed upon me by self-interest in that ancient day,
|
|
remains my faith today, and in it I find comfort, solace, peace,
|
|
and never-failing joy. You see how curiously theological it is.
|
|
The "rice Christian" of the Orient goes through the very same
|
|
steps, when he is after rice and the missionary is after HIM; he
|
|
goes for rice, and remains to worship.
|
|
|
|
Ealer did a lot of our "reasoning"--not to say substantially
|
|
all of it. The slaves of his cult have a passion for calling it
|
|
by that large name. We others do not call our inductions and
|
|
deductions and reductions by any name at all. They show for
|
|
themselves what they are, and we can with tranquil confidence
|
|
leave the world to ennoble them with a title of its own choosing.
|
|
|
|
Now and then when Ealer had to stop to cough, I pulled my
|
|
induction-talents together and hove the controversial lead
|
|
myself: always getting eight feet, eight and a half, often nine,
|
|
sometimes even quarter-less-twain--as _I_ believed; but always
|
|
"no bottom," as HE said.
|
|
|
|
I got the best of him only once. I prepared myself. I
|
|
wrote out a passage from Shakespeare--it may have been the very
|
|
one I quoted awhile ago, I don't remember--and riddled it with
|
|
his wild steamboatful interlardings. When an unrisky opportunity
|
|
offered, one lovely summer day, when we had sounded and buoyed a
|
|
tangled patch of crossings known as Hell's Half Acre, and were
|
|
aboard again and he had sneaked the PENNSYLVANIA triumphantly
|
|
through it without once scraping sand, and the A. T. LACEY had
|
|
followed in our wake and got stuck, and he was feeling good, I
|
|
showed it to him. It amused him. I asked him to fire it off--
|
|
READ it; read it, I diplomatically added, as only HE could read
|
|
dramatic poetry. The compliment touched him where he lived. He
|
|
did read it; read it with surpassing fire and spirit; read it as
|
|
it will never be read again; for HE know how to put the right
|
|
music into those thunderous interlardings and make them seem a
|
|
part of the text, make them sound as if they were bursting from
|
|
Shakespeare's own soul, each one of them a golden inspiration and
|
|
not to be left out without damage to the massed and magnificent
|
|
whole.
|
|
|
|
I waited a week, to let the incident fade; waited longer;
|
|
waited until he brought up for reasonings and vituperation my pet
|
|
position, my pet argument, the one which I was fondest of, the
|
|
one which I prized far above all others in my ammunition-wagon--
|
|
to wit, that Shakespeare couldn't have written Shakespeare's
|
|
words, for the reason that the man who wrote them was limitlessly
|
|
familiar with the laws, and the law-courts, and law-proceedings,
|
|
and lawyer-talk, and lawyer-ways--and if Shakespeare was
|
|
possessed of the infinitely divided star-dust that constituted
|
|
this vast wealth, HOW did he get it, and WHERE and WHEN?
|
|
|
|
"From books."
|
|
|
|
From books! That was always the idea. I answered as my
|
|
readings of the champions of my side of the great controversy had
|
|
taught me to answer: that a man can't handle glibly and easily
|
|
and comfortably and successfully the argot of a trade at which he
|
|
has not personally served. He will make mistakes; he will not,
|
|
and cannot, get the trade-phrasings precisely and exactly right;
|
|
and the moment he departs, by even a shade, from a common trade-
|
|
form, the reader who has served that trade will know the writer
|
|
HASN'T. Ealer would not be convinced; he said a man could learn
|
|
how to correctly handle the subtleties and mysteries and free-
|
|
masonries of ANY trade by careful reading and studying. But when
|
|
I got him to read again the passage from Shakespeare with the
|
|
interlardings, he perceived, himself, that books couldn't teach a
|
|
student a bewildering multitude of pilot-phrases so thoroughly
|
|
and perfectly that he could talk them off in book and play or
|
|
conversation and make no mistake that a pilot would not
|
|
immediately discover. It was a triumph for me. He was silent
|
|
awhile, and I knew what was happening--he was losing his temper.
|
|
And I knew he would presently close the session with the same old
|
|
argument that was always his stay and his support in time of
|
|
need; the same old argument, the one I couldn't answer, because I
|
|
dasn't--the argument that I was an ass, and better shut up. He
|
|
delivered it, and I obeyed.
|
|
|
|
O dear, how long ago it was--how pathetically long ago! And
|
|
here am I, old, forsaken, forlorn, and alone, arranging to get
|
|
that argument out of somebody again.
|
|
|
|
When a man has a passion for Shakespeare, it goes without
|
|
saying that he keeps company with other standard authors. Ealer
|
|
always had several high-class books in the pilot-house, and he
|
|
read the same ones over and over again, and did not care to
|
|
change to newer and fresher ones. He played well on the flute,
|
|
and greatly enjoyed hearing himself play. So did I. He had a
|
|
notion that a flute would keep its health better if you took it
|
|
apart when it was not standing a watch; and so, when it was not
|
|
on duty it took its rest, disjointed, on the compass-shelf under
|
|
the breastboard. When the PENNSYLVANIA blew up and became a
|
|
drifting rack-heap freighted with wounded and dying poor souls
|
|
(my young brother Henry among them), pilot Brown had the watch
|
|
below, and was probably asleep and never knew what killed him;
|
|
but Ealer escaped unhurt. He and his pilot-house were shot up
|
|
into the air; then they fell, and Ealer sank through the ragged
|
|
cavern where the hurricane-deck and the boiler-deck had been, and
|
|
landed in a nest of ruins on the main deck, on top of one of the
|
|
unexploded boilers, where he lay prone in a fog of scald and
|
|
deadly steam. But not for long. He did not lose his head--long
|
|
familiarity with danger had taught him to keep it, in any and all
|
|
emergencies. He held his coat-lapels to his nose with one hand,
|
|
to keep out the steam, and scrabbled around with the other till
|
|
he found the joints of his flute, then he took measures to save
|
|
himself alive, and was successful. I was not on board. I had
|
|
been put ashore in New Orleans by Captain Klinenfelter. The
|
|
reason--however, I have told all about it in the book called OLD
|
|
TIMES ON THE MISSISSIPPI, and it isn't important, anyway, it is
|
|
so long ago.
|
|
|
|
|
|
II
|
|
|
|
When I was a Sunday-school scholar, something more than
|
|
sixty years ago, I became interested in Satan, and wanted to find
|
|
out all I could about him. I began to ask questions, but my
|
|
class-teacher, Mr. Barclay, the stone-mason, was reluctant about
|
|
answering them, it seemed to me. I was anxious to be praised for
|
|
turning my thoughts to serious subjects when there wasn't another
|
|
boy in the village who could be hired to do such a thing. I was
|
|
greatly interested in the incident of Eve and the serpent, and
|
|
thought Eve's calmness was perfectly noble. I asked Mr. Barclay
|
|
if he had ever heard of another woman who, being approached by a
|
|
serpeant, would not excuse herself and break for the nearest
|
|
timber. He did not answer my question, but rebuked me for
|
|
inquiring into matters above my age and comprehension. I will
|
|
say for Mr. Barclay that he was willing to tell me the facts of
|
|
Satan's history, but he stopped there: he wouldn't allow any
|
|
discussion of them.
|
|
|
|
In the course of time we exhausted the facts. There were
|
|
only five or six of them; you could set them all down on a
|
|
visiting-card. I was disappointed. I had been meditating a
|
|
biography, and was grieved to find that there were no materials.
|
|
I said as much, with the tears running down. Mr. Barclay's
|
|
sympathy and compassion were aroused, for he was a most kind and
|
|
gentle-spirited man, and he patted me on the head and cheered me
|
|
up by saying there was a whole vast ocean of materials! I can
|
|
still feel the happy thrill which these blessed words shot
|
|
through me.
|
|
|
|
Then he began to bail out that ocean's riches for my
|
|
encouragement and joy. Like this: it was "conjectured"--though
|
|
not established--that Satan was originally an angel in Heaven;
|
|
that he fell; that he rebelled, and brought on a war; that he was
|
|
defeated, and banished to perdition. Also, "we have reason to
|
|
believe" that later he did so and so; that "we are warranted in
|
|
supposing" that at a subsequent time he traveled extensively,
|
|
seeking whom he might devour; that a couple of centuries
|
|
afterward, "as tradition instructs us," he took up the cruel
|
|
trade of tempting people to their ruin, with vast and fearful
|
|
results; that by and by, "as the probabilities seem to indicate,"
|
|
he may have done certain things, he might have done certain other
|
|
things, he must have done still other things.
|
|
|
|
And so on and so on. We set down the five known facts by
|
|
themselves on a piece of paper, and numbered it "page 1"; then on
|
|
fifteen hundred other pieces of paper we set down the
|
|
"conjectures," and "suppositions," and "maybes," and "perhapses,"
|
|
and "doubtlesses," and "rumors," and guesses," and
|
|
"probabilities," and "likelihoods," and "we are permitted to
|
|
thinks," and "we are warranted in believings," and "might have
|
|
beens," and "could have beens," and "must have beens," and
|
|
"unquestionablys," and "without a shadow of doubt"--and behold!
|
|
|
|
MATERIALS? Why, we had enough to build a biography of Shakespeare!
|
|
|
|
Yet he made me put away my pen; he would not let me write
|
|
the history of Satan. Why? Because, as he said, he had
|
|
suspicions--suspicions that my attitude in the matter was not
|
|
reverent, and that a person must be reverent when writing about
|
|
the sacred characters. He said any one who spoke flippantly of
|
|
Satan would be frowned upon by the religious world and also be
|
|
brought to account.
|
|
|
|
I assured him, in earnest and sincere words, that he had
|
|
wholly misconceived my attitude; that I had the highest respect
|
|
for Satan, and that my reverence for him equaled, and possibly
|
|
even exceeded, that of any member of the church. I said it
|
|
wounded me deeply to perceive by his words that he thought I
|
|
would make fun of Satan, and deride him, laugh at him, scoff at
|
|
him; whereas in truth I had never thought of such a thing, but
|
|
had only a warm desire to make fun of those others and laugh at
|
|
THEM. "What others? "Why, the Supposers, the Perhapsers, the
|
|
Might-Have-Beeners, the Could-Have-Beeners, the Must-Have-Beeners,
|
|
the Without-a-Shadow-of-Doubters, the We-Are-Warranted-in-Believingers,
|
|
and all that funny crop of solemn architects who have taken a
|
|
good solid foundation of five indisputable and unimportant facts
|
|
and built upon it a Conjectural Satan thirty miles high."
|
|
|
|
What did Mr. Barclay do then? Was he disarmed? Was he
|
|
silenced? No. He was shocked. He was so shocked that he
|
|
visibly shuddered. He said the Satanic Traditioners and
|
|
Perhapsers and Conjecturers were THEMSELVES sacred! As sacred as
|
|
their work. So sacred that whoso ventured to mock them or make
|
|
fun of their work, could not afterward enter any respectable
|
|
house, even by the back door.
|
|
|
|
How true were his words, and how wise! How fortunate it
|
|
would have been for me if I had heeded them. But I was young, I
|
|
was but seven years of age, and vain, foolish, and anxious to
|
|
attract attention. I wrote the biography, and have never been in
|
|
a respectable house since.
|
|
|
|
|
|
III
|
|
|
|
How curious and interesting is the parallel--as far as
|
|
poverty of biographical details is concerned--between Satan and
|
|
Shakespeare. It is wonderful, it is unique, it stands quite
|
|
alone, there is nothing resembling it in history, nothing
|
|
resembling it in romance, nothing approaching it even in
|
|
tradition. How sublime is their position, and how over-topping,
|
|
how sky-reaching, how supreme--the two Great Unknowns, the two
|
|
Illustrious Conjecturabilities! They are the best-known unknown
|
|
persons that have ever drawn breath upon the planet.
|
|
|
|
For the instruction of the ignorant I will make a list, now,
|
|
of those details of Shakespeare's history which are FACTS--
|
|
verified facts, established facts, undisputed facts.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Facts
|
|
|
|
He was born on the 23d of April, 1564.
|
|
|
|
Of good farmer-class parents who could not read, could not
|
|
write, could not sign their names.
|
|
|
|
At Stratford, a small back settlement which in that day was
|
|
shabby and unclean, and densely illiterate. Of the nineteen
|
|
important men charged with the government of the town, thirteen
|
|
had to "make their mark" in attesting important documents,
|
|
because they could not write their names.
|
|
|
|
Of the first eighteen years of his life NOTHING is known.
|
|
They are a blank.
|
|
|
|
On the 27th of November (1582) William Shakespeare took out
|
|
a license to marry Anne Whateley.
|
|
|
|
Next day William Shakespeare took out a license to marry
|
|
Anne Hathaway. She was eight years his senior.
|
|
|
|
William Shakespeare married Anne Hathaway. In a hurry. By
|
|
grace of a reluctantly granted dispensation there was but one
|
|
publication of the banns.
|
|
|
|
Within six months the first child was born.
|
|
|
|
About two (blank) years followed, during which period
|
|
NOTHING AT ALL HAPPENED TO SHAKESPEARE, so far as anybody knows.
|
|
|
|
Then came twins--1585. February.
|
|
|
|
Two blank years follow.
|
|
|
|
Then--1587--he makes a ten-year visit to London, leaving the family behind.
|
|
|
|
Five blank years follow. During this period NOTHING
|
|
HAPPENED TO HIM, as far as anybody actually knows.
|
|
|
|
Then--1592--there is mention of him as an actor.
|
|
|
|
Next year--1593--his name appears in the official list of players.
|
|
|
|
Next year--1594--he played before the queen. A detail of no
|
|
consequence: other obscurities did it every year of the forty-
|
|
five of her reign. And remained obscure.
|
|
|
|
Three pretty full years follow. Full of play-acting. Then*
|
|
|
|
In 1597 he bought New Place, Stratford.
|
|
|
|
Thirteen or fourteen busy years follow; years in which he
|
|
accumulated money, and also reputation as actor and manager.
|
|
|
|
Meantime his name, liberally and variously spelt, had
|
|
become associated with a number of great plays and poems, as
|
|
(ostensibly) author of the same.
|
|
|
|
Some of these, in these years and later, were pirated, but
|
|
he made no protest.
|
|
|
|
Then--1610-11--he returned to Stratford and settled down for
|
|
good and all, and busied himself in lending money, trading in
|
|
tithes, trading in land and houses; shirking a debt of forty-one
|
|
shillings, borrowed by his wife during his long desertion of his
|
|
family; suing debtors for shillings and coppers; being sued
|
|
himself for shillings and coppers; and acting as confederate to a
|
|
neighbor who tried to rob the town of its rights in a certain
|
|
common, and did not succeed.
|
|
|
|
He lived five or six years--till 1616--in the joy of these
|
|
elevated pursuits. Then he made a will, and signed each of its
|
|
three pages with his name.
|
|
|
|
A thoroughgoing business man's will. It named in minute
|
|
detail every item of property he owned in the world--houses,
|
|
lands, sword, silver-gilt bowl, and so on--all the way down to
|
|
his "second-best bed" and its furniture.
|
|
|
|
It carefully and calculatingly distributed his riches among
|
|
the members of his family, overlooking no individual of it. Not
|
|
even his wife: the wife he had been enabled to marry in a hurry
|
|
by urgent grace of a special dispensation before he was nineteen;
|
|
the wife whom he had left husbandless so many years; the wife who
|
|
had had to borrow forty-one shillings in her need, and which the
|
|
lender was never able to collect of the prosperous husband, but
|
|
died at last with the money still lacking. No, even this wife
|
|
was remembered in Shakespeare's will.
|
|
|
|
He left her that "second-best bed."
|
|
|
|
And NOT ANOTHER THING; not even a penny to bless her lucky
|
|
widowhood with.
|
|
|
|
It was eminently and conspicuously a business man's will,
|
|
not a poet's.
|
|
|
|
It mentioned NOT A SINGLE BOOK.
|
|
|
|
Books were much more precious than swords and silver-gilt
|
|
bowls and second-best beds in those days, and when a departing
|
|
person owned one he gave it a high place in his will.
|
|
|
|
The will mentioned NOT A PLAY, NOT A POEM, NOT AN UNFINISHED
|
|
LITERARY WORK, NOT A SCRAP OF MANUSCRIPT OF ANY KIND.
|
|
|
|
Many poets have died poor, but this is the only one in
|
|
history that has died THIS poor; the others all left literary
|
|
remains behind. Also a book. Maybe two.
|
|
|
|
If Shakespeare had owned a dog--but we not go into that: we
|
|
know he would have mentioned it in his will. If a good dog,
|
|
Susanna would have got it; if an inferior one his wife would have
|
|
got a downer interest in it. I wish he had had a dog, just so we
|
|
could see how painstakingly he would have divided that dog among
|
|
the family, in his careful business way.
|
|
|
|
He signed the will in three places.
|
|
|
|
In earlier years he signed two other official documents.
|
|
|
|
These five signatures still exist.
|
|
|
|
There are NO OTHER SPECIMENS OF HIS PENMANSHIP IN EXISTENCE.
|
|
Not a line.
|
|
|
|
Was he prejudiced against the art? His granddaughter, whom
|
|
he loved, was eight years old when he died, yet she had had no
|
|
teaching, he left no provision for her education, although he was
|
|
rich, and in her mature womanhood she couldn't write and couldn't
|
|
tell her husband's manuscript from anybody else's--she thought it
|
|
was Shakespeare's.
|
|
|
|
When Shakespeare died in Stratford, IT WAS NOT AN EVENT. It
|
|
made no more stir in England than the death of any other
|
|
forgotten theater-actor would have made. Nobody came down from
|
|
London; there were no lamenting poems, no eulogies, no national
|
|
tears--there was merely silence, and nothing more. A striking
|
|
contrast with what happened when Ben Jonson, and Francis Bacon,
|
|
and Spenser, and Raleigh, and the other distinguished literary
|
|
folk of Shakespeare's time passed from life! No praiseful voice
|
|
was lifted for the lost Bard of Avon; even Ben Jonson waited
|
|
seven years before he lifted his.
|
|
|
|
SO FAR AS ANYBODY ACTUALLY KNOWS AND CAN PROVE, Shakespeare
|
|
of Stratford-on-Avon never wrote a play in his life.
|
|
|
|
|
|
SO FAR AS ANY ONE KNOWS, HE RECEIVED ONLY ONE LETTER
|
|
DURING HIS LIFE.
|
|
|
|
So far as any one KNOWS AND CAN PROVE, Shakespeare of
|
|
Stratford wrote only one poem during his life. This one is
|
|
authentic. He did write that one--a fact which stands
|
|
undisputed; he wrote the whole of it; he wrote the whole of it
|
|
out of his own head. He commanded that this work of art be
|
|
engraved upon his tomb, and he was obeyed. There it abides to
|
|
this day. This is it:
|
|
|
|
|
|
Good friend for Iesus sake forbeare
|
|
To digg the dust encloased heare:
|
|
Blest be ye man yt spares thes stones
|
|
And curst be he yt moves my bones.
|
|
|
|
|
|
In the list as above set down will be found EVERY POSITIVELY
|
|
KNOWN fact of Shakespeare's life, lean and meager as the invoice
|
|
is. Beyond these details we know NOT A THING about him. All the
|
|
rest of his vast history, as furnished by the biographers, is
|
|
built up, course upon course, of guesses, inferences, theories,
|
|
conjectures--an Eiffel Tower of artificialities rising sky-high
|
|
from a very flat and very thin foundation of inconsequential
|
|
facts.
|
|
|
|
|
|
IV
|
|
|
|
Conjectures
|
|
|
|
The historians "suppose" that Shakespeare attended the Free
|
|
School in Stratford from the time he was seven years old till he
|
|
was thirteen. There is no EVIDENCE in existence that he ever
|
|
went to school at all.
|
|
|
|
The historians "infer" that he got his Latin in that school
|
|
--the school which they "suppose" he attended.
|
|
|
|
They "suppose" his father's declining fortunes made it
|
|
necessary for him to leave the school they supposed he attended,
|
|
and get to work and help support his parents and their ten
|
|
children. But there is no evidence that he ever entered or
|
|
returned from the school they suppose he attended.
|
|
|
|
They "suppose" he assisted his father in the butchering
|
|
business; and that, being only a boy, he didn't have to do full-
|
|
grown butchering, but only slaughtering calves. Also, that
|
|
whenever he killed a calf he made a high-flown speech over it.
|
|
This supposition rests upon the testimony of a man who wasn't
|
|
there at the time; a man who got it from a man who could have
|
|
been there, but did not say whether he was nor not; and neither
|
|
of them thought to mention it for decades, and decades, and
|
|
decades, and two more decades after Shakespeare's death (until
|
|
old age and mental decay had refreshed and vivified their
|
|
memories). They hadn't two facts in stock about the long-dead
|
|
distinguished citizen, but only just the one: he slaughtered
|
|
calves and broke into oratory while he was at it. Curious. They
|
|
had only one fact, yet the distinguished citizen had spent
|
|
twenty-six years in that little town--just half his lifetime.
|
|
However, rightly viewed, it was the most important fact, indeed
|
|
almost the only important fact, of Shakespeare's life in
|
|
Stratford. Rightly viewed. For experience is an author's most
|
|
valuable asset; experience is the thing that puts the muscle and
|
|
the breath and the warm blood into the book he writes. Rightly
|
|
viewed, calf-butchering accounts for "Titus Andronicus," the only
|
|
play--ain't it?--that the Stratford Shakespeare ever wrote; and
|
|
yet it is the only one everybody tried to chouse him out of, the
|
|
Baconians included.
|
|
|
|
The historians find themselves "justified in believing" that
|
|
the young Shakespeare poached upon Sir Thomas Lucy's deer preserves
|
|
and got haled before that magistrate for it. But there is no shred
|
|
of respectworthy evidence that anything of the kind happened.
|
|
|
|
The historians, having argued the thing that MIGHT have
|
|
happened into the thing that DID happen, found no trouble in
|
|
turning Sir Thomas Lucy into Mr. Justice Shallow. They have long
|
|
ago convinced the world--on surmise and without trustworthy
|
|
evidence--that Shallow IS Sir Thomas.
|
|
|
|
The next addition to the young Shakespeare's Stratford
|
|
history comes easy. The historian builds it out of the surmised
|
|
deer-steeling, and the surmised trial before the magistrate, and
|
|
the surmised vengeance-prompted satire upon the magistrate in the
|
|
play: result, the young Shakespeare was a wild, wild, wild, oh,
|
|
SUCH a wild young scamp, and that gratuitous slander is
|
|
established for all time! It is the very way Professor Osborn
|
|
and I built the colossal skeleton brontosaur that stands fifty-
|
|
seven feet long and sixteen feet high in the Natural History
|
|
Museum, the awe and admiration of all the world, the stateliest
|
|
skeleton that exists on the planet. We had nine bones, and we
|
|
built the rest of him out of plaster of Paris. We ran short of
|
|
plaster of Paris, or we'd have built a brontosaur that could sit
|
|
down beside the Stratford Shakespeare and none but an expert
|
|
could tell which was biggest or contained the most plaster.
|
|
|
|
Shakespeare pronounced "Venus and Adonis" "the first heir of
|
|
his invention," apparently implying that it was his first effort
|
|
at literary composition. He should not have said it. It has
|
|
been an embarrassment to his historians these many, many years.
|
|
They have to make him write that graceful and polished and
|
|
flawless and beautiful poem before he escaped from Stratford and
|
|
his family--1586 or '87--age, twenty-two, or along there; because
|
|
within the next five years he wrote five great plays, and could
|
|
not have found time to write another line.
|
|
|
|
It is sorely embarrassing. If he began to slaughter calves,
|
|
and poach deer, and rollick around, and learn English, at the
|
|
earliest likely moment--say at thirteen, when he was supposably
|
|
wretched from that school where he was supposably storing up
|
|
Latin for future literary use--he had his youthful hands full,
|
|
and much more than full. He must have had to put aside his
|
|
Warwickshire dialect, which wouldn't be understood in London, and
|
|
study English very hard. Very hard indeed; incredibly hard,
|
|
almost, if the result of that labor was to be the smooth and
|
|
rounded and flexible and letter-perfect English of the "Venus and
|
|
Adonis" in the space of ten years; and at the same time learn
|
|
great and fine and unsurpassable literary FORM.
|
|
|
|
However, it is "conjectured" that he accomplished all this
|
|
and more, much more: learned law and its intricacies; and the
|
|
complex procedure of the law-courts; and all about soldiering,
|
|
and sailoring, and the manners and customs and ways of royal
|
|
courts and aristocratic society; and likewise accumulated in his
|
|
one head every kind of knowledge the learned then possessed, and
|
|
every kind of humble knowledge possessed by the lowly and the
|
|
ignorant; and added thereto a wider and more intimate knowledge
|
|
of the world's great literatures, ancient and modern, than was
|
|
possessed by any other man of his time--for he was going to make
|
|
brilliant and easy and admiration-compelling use of these
|
|
splendid treasures the moment he got to London. And according to
|
|
the surmisers, that is what he did. Yes, although there was no
|
|
one in Stratford able to teach him these things, and no library in
|
|
the little village to dig them out of. His father could not read,
|
|
and even the surmisers surmise that he did not keep a library.
|
|
|
|
It is surmised by the biographers that the young Shakespeare
|
|
got his vast knowledge of the law and his familiar and accurate
|
|
acquaintance with the manners and customs and shop-talk of
|
|
lawyers through being for a time the CLERK OF A STRATFORD COURT;
|
|
just as a bright lad like me, reared in a village on the banks of
|
|
the Mississippi, might become perfect in knowledge of the Bering
|
|
Strait whale-fishery and the shop-talk of the veteran exercises
|
|
of that adventure-bristling trade through catching catfish with a
|
|
"trot-line" Sundays. But the surmise is damaged by the fact that
|
|
there is no evidence--and not even tradition--that the young
|
|
Shakespeare was ever clerk of a law-court.
|
|
|
|
It is further surmised that the young Shakespeare
|
|
accumulated his law-treasures in the first years of his sojourn
|
|
in London, through "amusing himself" by learning book-law in his
|
|
garret and by picking up lawyer-talk and the rest of it through
|
|
loitering about the law-courts and listening. But it is only
|
|
surmise; there is no EVIDENCE that he ever did either of those
|
|
things. They are merely a couple of chunks of plaster of Paris.
|
|
|
|
There is a legend that he got his bread and butter by
|
|
holding horses in front of the London theaters, mornings and
|
|
afternoons. Maybe he did. If he did, it seriously shortened his
|
|
law-study hours and his recreation-time in the courts. In those
|
|
very days he was writing great plays, and needed all the time he
|
|
could get. The horse-holding legend ought to be strangled; it
|
|
too formidably increases the historian's difficulty in accounting
|
|
for the young Shakespeare's erudition--an erudition which he was
|
|
acquiring, hunk by hunk and chunk by chunk, every day in those
|
|
strenuous times, and emptying each day's catch into next day's
|
|
imperishable drama.
|
|
|
|
He had to acquire a knowledge of war at the same time; and a
|
|
knowledge of soldier-people and sailor-people and their ways and
|
|
talk; also a knowledge of some foreign lands and their languages:
|
|
for he was daily emptying fluent streams of these various knowledges,
|
|
too, into his dramas. How did he acquire these rich assets?
|
|
|
|
In the usual way: by surmise. It is SURMISED that he
|
|
traveled in Italy and Germany and around, and qualified himself
|
|
to put their scenic and social aspects upon paper; that he
|
|
perfected himself in French, Italian, and Spanish on the road;
|
|
that he went in Leicester's expedition to the Low Countries, as
|
|
soldier or sutler or something, for several months or years--or
|
|
whatever length of time a surmiser needs in his business--and
|
|
thus became familiar with soldiership and soldier-ways and
|
|
soldier-talk and generalship and general-ways and general-talk,
|
|
and seamanship and sailor-ways and sailor-talk.
|
|
|
|
Maybe he did all these things, but I would like to know who
|
|
held the horses in the mean time; and who studied the books in
|
|
the garret; and who frolicked in the law-courts for recreation.
|
|
Also, who did the call-boying and the play-acting.
|
|
|
|
For he became a call-boy; and as early as '93 he became a
|
|
"vagabond"--the law's ungentle term for an unlisted actor; and in
|
|
'94 a "regular" and properly and officially listed member of that
|
|
(in those days) lightly valued and not much respected profession.
|
|
|
|
Right soon thereafter he became a stockholder in two
|
|
theaters, and manager of them. Thenceforward he was a busy and
|
|
flourishing business man, and was raking in money with both hands
|
|
for twenty years. Then in a noble frenzy of poetic inspiration
|
|
he wrote his one poem--his only poem, his darling--and laid him
|
|
down and died:
|
|
|
|
|
|
Good friend for Iesus sake forbeare
|
|
To digg the dust encloased heare:
|
|
Blest be ye man yt spares thes stones
|
|
And curst be he yt moves my bones.
|
|
|
|
|
|
He was probably dead when he wrote it. Still, this is only
|
|
conjecture. We have only circumstantial evidence. Internal
|
|
evidence.
|
|
|
|
Shall I set down the rest of the Conjectures which
|
|
constitute the giant Biography of William Shakespeare? It would
|
|
strain the Unabridged Dictionary to hold them. He is a
|
|
brontosaur: nine bones and six hundred barrels of plaster of
|
|
Paris.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
V
|
|
|
|
"We May Assume"
|
|
|
|
In the Assuming trade three separate and independent cults
|
|
are transacting business. Two of these cults are known as the
|
|
Shakespearites and the Baconians, and I am the other one--the
|
|
Brontosaurian.
|
|
|
|
The Shakespearite knows that Shakespeare wrote Shakespeare's
|
|
Works; the Baconian knows that Francis Bacon wrote them; the
|
|
Brontosaurian doesn't really know which of them did it, but is
|
|
quite composedly and contentedly sure that Shakespeare DIDN'T,
|
|
and strongly suspects that Bacon DID. We all have to do a good
|
|
deal of assuming, but I am fairly certain that in every case I
|
|
can call to mind the Baconian assumers have come out ahead of the
|
|
Shakespearites. Both parties handle the same materials, but the
|
|
Baconians seem to me to get much more reasonable and rational and
|
|
persuasive results out of them than is the case with the
|
|
Shakespearites. The Shakespearite conducts his assuming upon a
|
|
definite principle, an unchanging and immutable law: which is:
|
|
2 and 8 and 7 and 14, added together, make 165. I believe this
|
|
to be an error. No matter, you cannot get a habit-sodden
|
|
Shakespearite to cipher-up his materials upon any other basis.
|
|
With the Baconian it is different. If you place before him the
|
|
above figures and set him to adding them up, he will never in any
|
|
case get more than 45 out of them, and in nine cases out of ten
|
|
he will get just the proper 31.
|
|
|
|
Let me try to illustrate the two systems in a simple and
|
|
homely way calculated to bring the idea within the grasp of the
|
|
ignorant and unintelligent. We will suppose a case: take a lap-
|
|
bred, house-fed, uneducated, inexperienced kitten; take a rugged
|
|
old Tom that's scarred from stem to rudder-post with the
|
|
memorials of strenuous experience, and is so cultured, so
|
|
educated, so limitlessly erudite that one may say of him "all
|
|
cat-knowledge is his province"; also, take a mouse. Lock the
|
|
three up in a holeless, crackless, exitless prison-cell. Wait
|
|
half an hour, then open the cell, introduce a Shakespearite and a
|
|
Baconian, and let them cipher and assume. The mouse is missing:
|
|
the question to be decided is, where is it? You can guess both
|
|
verdicts beforehand. One verdict will say the kitten contains
|
|
the mouse; the other will as certainly say the mouse is in the
|
|
tom-cat.
|
|
|
|
The Shakespearite will Reason like this--(that is not my
|
|
word, it is his). He will say the kitten MAY HAVE BEEN attending
|
|
school when nobody was noticing; therefore WE ARE WARRANTED IN
|
|
ASSUMING that it did so; also, it COULD HAVE BEEN training in a
|
|
court-clerk's office when no one was noticing; since that could
|
|
have happened, WE ARE JUSTIFIED IN ASSUMING that it did happen;
|
|
it COULD HAVE STUDIED CATOLOGY IN A GARRET when no one was
|
|
noticing--therefore it DID; it COULD HAVE attended cat-assizes on
|
|
the shed-roof nights, for recreation, when no one was noticing,
|
|
and have harvested a knowledge of cat court-forms and cat lawyer-
|
|
talk in that way: it COULD have done it, therefore without a
|
|
doubt it DID; it COULD HAVE gone soldiering with a war-tribe when
|
|
no one was noticing, and learned soldier-wiles and soldier-ways,
|
|
and what to do with a mouse when opportunity offers; the plain
|
|
inference, therefore, is that that is what it DID. Since all
|
|
these manifold things COULD have occurred, we have EVERY RIGHT TO
|
|
BELIEVE they did occur. These patiently and painstakingly
|
|
accumulated vast acquirements and competences needed but one
|
|
thing more--opportunity--to convert themselves into triumphal
|
|
action. The opportunity came, we have the result; BEYOND SHADOW
|
|
OF QUESTION the mouse is in the kitten.
|
|
|
|
It is proper to remark that when we of the three cults plant
|
|
a "WE THINK WE MAY ASSUME," we expect it, under careful watering
|
|
and fertilizing and tending, to grow up into a strong and hardy
|
|
and weather-defying "THERE ISN'T A SHADOW OF A DOUBT" at last--
|
|
and it usually happens.
|
|
|
|
We know what the Baconian's verdict would be: "THERE IS NOT
|
|
A RAG OF EVIDENCE THAT THE KITTEN HAS HAD ANY TRAINING, ANY
|
|
EDUCATION, ANY EXPERIENCE QUALIFYING IT FOR THE PRESENT OCCASION,
|
|
OR IS INDEED EQUIPPED FOR ANY ACHIEVEMENT ABOVE LIFTING SUCH
|
|
UNCLAIMED MILK AS COMES ITS WAY; BUT THERE IS ABUNDANT EVIDENCE--
|
|
UNASSAILABLE PROOF, IN FACT--THAT THE OTHER ANIMAL IS EQUIPPED,
|
|
TO THE LAST DETAIL, WITH EVERY QUALIFICATION NECESSARY FOR THE
|
|
EVENT. WITHOUT SHADOW OF DOUBT THE TOM-CAT CONTAINS THE MOUSE."
|
|
|
|
|
|
VI
|
|
|
|
When Shakespeare died, in 1616, great literary productions
|
|
attributed to him as author had been before the London world and
|
|
in high favor for twenty-four years. Yet his death was not an
|
|
event. It made no stir, it attracted no attention. Apparently
|
|
his eminent literary contemporaries did not realize that a
|
|
celebrated poet had passed from their midst. Perhaps they knew a
|
|
play-actor of minor rank had disappeared, but did not regard him
|
|
as the author of his Works. "We are justified in assuming" this.
|
|
|
|
His death was not even an event in the little town of
|
|
Stratford. Does this mean that in Stratford he was not regarded
|
|
as a celebrity of ANY kind?
|
|
|
|
"We are privileged to assume"--no, we are indeed OBLIGED to
|
|
assume--that such was the case. He had spent the first twenty-
|
|
two or twenty-three years of his life there, and of course knew
|
|
everybody and was known by everybody of that day in the town,
|
|
including the dogs and the cats and the horses. He had spent the
|
|
last five or six years of his life there, diligently trading in
|
|
every big and little thing that had money in it; so we are
|
|
compelled to assume that many of the folk there in those said
|
|
latter days knew him personally, and the rest by sight and
|
|
hearsay. But not as a CELEBRITY? Apparently not. For everybody
|
|
soon forgot to remember any contact with him or any incident
|
|
connected with him. The dozens of townspeople, still alive, who
|
|
had known of him or known about him in the first twenty-three
|
|
years of his life were in the same unremembering condition: if
|
|
they knew of any incident connected with that period of his life
|
|
they didn't tell about it. Would the if they had been asked? It
|
|
is most likely. Were they asked? It is pretty apparent that
|
|
they were not. Why weren't they? It is a very plausible guess
|
|
that nobody there or elsewhere was interested to know.
|
|
|
|
For seven years after Shakespeare's death nobody seems to have been
|
|
interested in him. Then the quarto was published, and Ben Jonson
|
|
awoke out of his long indifference and sang a song of praise and
|
|
put it in the front of the book. Then silence fell AGAIN.
|
|
|
|
For sixty years. Then inquiries into Shakespeare's Stratford
|
|
life began to be made, of Stratfordians. Of Stratfordians
|
|
who had known Shakespeare or had seen him? No. Then of
|
|
Stratfordians who had seen people who had known or seen
|
|
people who had seen Shakespeare? No. Apparently the inquires
|
|
were only made of Stratfordians who were not Stratfordians of
|
|
Shakespeare's day, but later comers; and what they had learned
|
|
had come to them from persons who had not seen Shakespeare; and
|
|
what they had learned was not claimed as FACT, but only as legend--
|
|
dim and fading and indefinite legend; legend of the calf-slaughtering
|
|
rank, and not worth remembering either as history or fiction.
|
|
|
|
Has it ever happened before--or since--that a celebrated
|
|
person who had spent exactly half of a fairly long life in the
|
|
village where he was born and reared, was able to slip out of
|
|
this world and leave that village voiceless and gossipless behind
|
|
him--utterly voiceless., utterly gossipless? And permanently so?
|
|
I don't believe it has happened in any case except Shakespeare's.
|
|
And couldn't and wouldn't have happened in his case if he had
|
|
been regarded as a celebrity at the time of his death.
|
|
|
|
When I examine my own case--but let us do that, and see if
|
|
it will not be recognizable as exhibiting a condition of things
|
|
quite likely to result, most likely to result, indeed
|
|
substantially SURE to result in the case of a celebrated person,
|
|
a benefactor of the human race. Like me.
|
|
|
|
My parents brought me to the village of Hannibal, Missouri,
|
|
on the banks of the Mississippi, when I was two and a half years
|
|
old. I entered school at five years of age, and drifted from one
|
|
school to another in the village during nine and a half years.
|
|
Then my father died, leaving his family in exceedingly straitened
|
|
circumstances; wherefore my book-education came to a standstill
|
|
forever, and I became a printer's apprentice, on board and
|
|
clothes, and when the clothes failed I got a hymn-book in place
|
|
of them. This for summer wear, probably. I lived in Hannibal
|
|
fifteen and a half years, altogether, then ran away, according to
|
|
the custom of persons who are intending to become celebrated. I
|
|
never lived there afterward. Four years later I became a "cub"
|
|
on a Mississippi steamboat in the St. Louis and New Orleans
|
|
trade, and after a year and a half of hard study and hard work
|
|
the U.S. inspectors rigorously examined me through a couple of
|
|
long sittings and decided that I knew every inch of the
|
|
Mississippi--thirteen hundred miles--in the dark and in the day--
|
|
as well as a baby knows the way to its mother's paps day or
|
|
night. So they licensed me as a pilot--knighted me, so to speak
|
|
--and I rose up clothed with authority, a responsible servant of
|
|
the United States Government.
|
|
|
|
Now then. Shakespeare died young--he was only fifty-two.
|
|
He had lived in his native village twenty-six years, or about
|
|
that. He died celebrated (if you believe everything you read in
|
|
the books). Yet when he died nobody there or elsewhere took any
|
|
notice of it; and for sixty years afterward no townsman
|
|
remembered to say anything about him or about his life in
|
|
Stratford. When the inquirer came at last he got but one fact--
|
|
no, LEGEND--and got that one at second hand, from a person who
|
|
had only heard it as a rumor and didn't claim copyright in it as
|
|
a production of his own. He couldn't, very well, for its date
|
|
antedated his own birth-date. But necessarily a number of
|
|
persons were still alive in Stratford who, in the days of their
|
|
youth, had seen Shakespeare nearly every day in the last five
|
|
years of his life, and they would have been able to tell that
|
|
inquirer some first-hand things about him if he had in those last
|
|
days been a celebrity and therefore a person of interest to the
|
|
villagers. Why did not the inquirer hunt them up and interview
|
|
them? Wasn't it worth while? Wasn't the matter of sufficient
|
|
consequence? Had the inquirer an engagement to see a dog-fight
|
|
and couldn't spare the time?
|
|
|
|
It all seems to mean that he never had any literary celebrity,
|
|
there or elsewhere, and no considerable repute as actor and manager.
|
|
|
|
Now then, I am away along in life--my seventy-third year
|
|
being already well behind me--yet SIXTEEN of my Hannibal
|
|
schoolmates are still alive today, and can tell--and do tell--
|
|
inquirers dozens and dozens of incidents of their young lives and
|
|
mine together; things that happened to us in the morning of life,
|
|
in the blossom of our youth, in the good days, the dear days,
|
|
"the days when we went gipsying, a long time ago." Most of them
|
|
creditable to me, too. One child to whom I paid court when she
|
|
was five years old and I eight still lives in Hannibal, and she
|
|
visited me last summer, traversing the necessary ten or twelve
|
|
hundred miles of railroad without damage to her patience or to
|
|
her old-young vigor. Another little lassie to whom I paid
|
|
attention in Hannibal when she was nine years old and I the same,
|
|
is still alive--in London--and hale and hearty, just as I am.
|
|
And on the few surviving steamboats--those lingering ghosts and
|
|
remembrancers of great fleets that plied the big river in the
|
|
beginning of my water-career--which is exactly as long ago as the
|
|
whole invoice of the life-years of Shakespeare numbers--there are
|
|
still findable two or three river-pilots who saw me do creditable
|
|
things in those ancient days; and several white-headed engineers;
|
|
and several roustabouts and mates; and several deck-hands who
|
|
used to heave the lead for me and send up on the still night the
|
|
"Six--feet--SCANT!" that made me shudder, and the "M-a-r-k--
|
|
TWAIN!" that took the shudder away, and presently the darling "By
|
|
the d-e-e-p--FOUR!" that lifted me to heaven for joy. [1] They
|
|
know about me, and can tell. And so do printers, from St. Louis
|
|
to New York; and so do newspaper reporters, from Nevada to San
|
|
Francisco. And so do the police. If Shakespeare had really been
|
|
celebrated, like me, Stratford could have told things about him;
|
|
and if my experience goes for anything, they'd have done it.
|
|
|
|
------
|
|
1. Four fathoms--twenty-four feet.
|
|
|
|
|
|
VII
|
|
|
|
If I had under my superintendence a controversy appointed to
|
|
decide whether Shakespeare wrote Shakespeare or not, I believe
|
|
I would place before the debaters only the one question,
|
|
WAS SHAKESPEARE EVER A PRACTICING LAWYER? and leave everything
|
|
else out.
|
|
|
|
It is maintained that the man who wrote the plays was not
|
|
merely myriad-minded, but also myriad-accomplished: that he not
|
|
only knew some thousands of things about human life in all its
|
|
shades and grades, and about the hundred arts and trades and
|
|
crafts and professions which men busy themselves in, but that he
|
|
could TALK about the men and their grades and trades accurately,
|
|
making no mistakes. Maybe it is so, but have the experts spoken,
|
|
or is it only Tom, Dick, and Harry? Does the exhibit stand upon
|
|
wide, and loose, and eloquent generalizing--which is not
|
|
evidence, and not proof--or upon details, particulars,
|
|
statistics, illustrations, demonstrations?
|
|
|
|
Experts of unchallengeable authority have testified
|
|
definitely as to only one of Shakespeare's multifarious craft-
|
|
equipments, so far as my recollections of Shakespeare-Bacon talk
|
|
abide with me--his law-equipment. I do not remember that
|
|
Wellington or Napoleon ever examined Shakespeare's battles and
|
|
sieges and strategies, and then decided and established for good
|
|
and all that they were militarily flawless; I do not remember
|
|
that any Nelson, or Drake, or Cook ever examined his seamanship
|
|
and said it showed profound and accurate familiarity with that
|
|
art; I don't remember that any king or prince or duke has ever
|
|
testified that Shakespeare was letter-perfect in his handling of
|
|
royal court-manners and the talk and manners of aristocracies; I
|
|
don't remember that any illustrious Latinist or Grecian or
|
|
Frenchman or Spaniard or Italian has proclaimed him a past-master
|
|
in those languages; I don't remember--well, I don't remember that
|
|
there is TESTIMONY--great testimony--imposing testimony--
|
|
unanswerable and unattackable testimony as to any of
|
|
Shakespeare's hundred specialties, except one--the law.
|
|
|
|
Other things change, with time, and the student cannot trace
|
|
back with certainty the changes that various trades and their
|
|
processes and technicalities have undergone in the long stretch
|
|
of a century or two and find out what their processes and
|
|
technicalities were in those early days, but with the law it is
|
|
different: it is mile-stoned and documented all the way back,
|
|
and the master of that wonderful trade, that complex and
|
|
intricate trade, that awe-compelling trade, has competent ways of
|
|
knowing whether Shakespeare-law is good law or not; and whether
|
|
his law-court procedure is correct or not, and whether his legal
|
|
shop-talk is the shop-talk of a veteran practitioner or only a
|
|
machine-made counterfeit of it gathered from books and from
|
|
occasional loiterings in Westminster.
|
|
|
|
Richard H. Dana served two years before the mast, and had
|
|
every experience that falls to the lot of the sailor before the
|
|
mast of our day. His sailor-talk flows from his pen with the
|
|
sure touch and the ease and confidence of a person who has LIVED
|
|
what he is talking about, not gathered it from books and random
|
|
listenings. Hear him:
|
|
|
|
|
|
Having hove short, cast off the gaskets, and made the bunt
|
|
of each sail fast by the jigger, with a man on each yard, at the
|
|
word the whole canvas of the ship was loosed, and with the
|
|
greatest rapidity possible everything was sheeted home and
|
|
hoisted up, the anchor tripped and cat-headed, and the ship under
|
|
headway.
|
|
|
|
|
|
Again:
|
|
|
|
|
|
The royal yards were all crossed at once, and royals and
|
|
sky-sails set, and, as we had the wind free, the booms were run
|
|
out, and all were aloft, active as cats, laying out on the yards
|
|
and booms, reeving the studding-sail gear; and sail after sail
|
|
the captain piled upon her, until she was covered with canvas,
|
|
her sails looking like a great white cloud resting upon a black
|
|
speck.
|
|
|
|
|
|
Once more. A race in the Pacific:
|
|
|
|
|
|
Our antagonist was in her best trim. Being clear of the
|
|
point, the breeze became stiff, and the royal-masts bent under
|
|
our sails, but we would not take them in until we saw three boys
|
|
spring into the rigging of the CALIFORNIA; then they were all
|
|
furled at once, but with orders to our boys to stay aloft at the
|
|
top-gallant mast-heads and loose them again at the word. It was
|
|
my duty to furl the fore-royal; and while standing by to loose it
|
|
again, I had a fine view of the scene. From where I stood, the
|
|
two vessels seemed nothing but spars and sails, while their
|
|
narrow decks, far below, slanting over by the force of the wind
|
|
aloft, appeared hardly capable of supporting the great fabrics
|
|
raised upon them. The CALIFORNIA was to windward of us, and had
|
|
every advantage; yet, while the breeze was stiff we held our own.
|
|
As soon as it began to slacken she ranged a little ahead, and the
|
|
order was given to loose the royals. In an instant the gaskets
|
|
were off and the bunt dropped. "Sheet home the fore-royal!"--
|
|
"Weather sheet's home!"--"Lee sheet's home!"--"Hoist away, sir!"
|
|
is bawled from aloft. "Overhaul your clew-lines!" shouts the
|
|
mate. "Aye-aye, sir, all clear!"--"Taut leech! belay! Well the
|
|
lee brace; haul taut to windward!" and the royals are set.
|
|
|
|
|
|
What would the captain of any sailing-vessel of our time say
|
|
to that? He would say, "The man that wrote that didn't learn his
|
|
trade out of a book, he has BEEN there!" But would this same
|
|
captain be competent to sit in judgment upon Shakespeare's
|
|
seamanship--considering the changes in ships and ship-talk that
|
|
have necessarily taken place, unrecorded, unremembered, and lost
|
|
to history in the last three hundred years? It is my conviction
|
|
that Shakespeare's sailor-talk would be Choctaw to him. For
|
|
instance--from "The Tempest":
|
|
|
|
|
|
MASTER. Boatswain!
|
|
|
|
BOATSWAIN. Here, master; what cheer?
|
|
|
|
MASTER. Good, speak to the mariners: fall to 't, yarely,
|
|
or we run ourselves to ground; bestir, bestir!
|
|
(ENTER MARINERS.)
|
|
|
|
BOATSWAIN. Heigh, my hearts! cheerly, cheerly, my hearts!
|
|
yare, yare! Take in the topsail. Tend to the master's whistle.
|
|
. . . Down with the topmast! yare! lower, lower! Bring her to
|
|
try wi' the main course. . . . Lay her a-hold, a-hold! Set her
|
|
two courses. Off to sea again; lay her off.
|
|
|
|
That will do, for the present; let us yare a little, now,
|
|
for a change.
|
|
|
|
|
|
If a man should write a book and in it make one of his
|
|
characters say, "Here, devil, empty the quoins into the standing
|
|
galley and the imposing-stone into the hell-box; assemble the
|
|
comps around the frisket and let them jeff for takes and be quick
|
|
about it," I should recognize a mistake or two in the phrasing,
|
|
and would know that the writer was only a printer theoretically,
|
|
not practically.
|
|
|
|
I have been a quartz miner in the silver regions--a pretty
|
|
hard life; I know all the palaver of that business: I know all
|
|
about discovery claims and the subordinate claims; I know all
|
|
about lodes, ledges, outcroppings, dips, spurs, angles, shafts,
|
|
drifts, inclines, levels, tunnels, air-shafts, "horses," clay
|
|
casings, granite casings; quartz mills and their batteries;
|
|
arastras, and how to charge them with quicksilver and sulphate of
|
|
copper; and how to clean them up, and how to reduce the resulting
|
|
amalgam in the retorts, and how to cast the bullion into pigs;
|
|
and finally I know how to screen tailings, and also how to hunt
|
|
for something less robust to do, and find it. I know the argot
|
|
and the quartz-mining and milling industry familiarly; and so
|
|
whenever Bret Harte introduces that industry into a story, the
|
|
first time one of his miners opens his mouth I recognize from his
|
|
phrasing that Harte got the phrasing by listening--like
|
|
Shakespeare--I mean the Stratford one--not by experience. No one
|
|
can talk the quartz dialect correctly without learning it with
|
|
pick and shovel and drill and fuse.
|
|
|
|
I have been a surface miner--gold--and I know all its
|
|
mysteries, and the dialects that belongs with them; and whenever
|
|
Harte introduces that industry into a story I know by the
|
|
phrasing of his characters that neither he nor they have ever
|
|
served that trade.
|
|
|
|
I have been a "pocket" miner--a sort of gold mining not
|
|
findable in any but one little spot in the world, so far as I
|
|
know. I know how, with horn and water, to find the trail of a
|
|
pocket and trace it step by step and stage by stage up the
|
|
mountain to its source, and find the compact little nest of
|
|
yellow metal reposing in its secret home under the ground. I
|
|
know the language of that trade, that capricious trade, that
|
|
fascinating buried-treasure trade, and can catch any writer who
|
|
tries to use it without having learned it by the sweat of his
|
|
brow and the labor of his hands.
|
|
|
|
I know several other trades and the argot that goes with
|
|
them; and whenever a person tries to talk the talk peculiar to
|
|
any of them without having learned it at its source I can trap
|
|
him always before he gets far on his road.
|
|
|
|
And so, as I have already remarked, if I were required to
|
|
superintend a Bacon-Shakespeare controversy, I would narrow the
|
|
matter down to a single question--the only one, so far as the
|
|
previous controversies have informed me, concerning which
|
|
illustrious experts of unimpeachable competency have testified:
|
|
WAS THE AUTHOR OF SHAKESPEARE'S WORKS A LAWYER?--a lawyer deeply
|
|
read and of limitless experience? I would put aside the guesses
|
|
and surmises, and perhapes, and might-have-beens, and could-have-
|
|
beens, and must-have-beens, and we-are-justified-in-presumings,
|
|
and the rest of those vague specters and shadows and
|
|
indefintenesses, and stand or fall, win or lose, by the verdict
|
|
rendered by the jury upon that single question. If the verdict
|
|
was Yes, I should feel quite convinced that the Stratford
|
|
Shakespeare, the actor, manager, and trader who died so obscure,
|
|
so forgotten, so destitute of even village consequence, that
|
|
sixty years afterward no fellow-citizen and friend of his later
|
|
days remembered to tell anything about him, did not write the Works.
|
|
|
|
Chapter XIII of THE SHAKESPEARE PROBLEM RESTATED bears the
|
|
heading "Shakespeare as a Lawyer," and comprises some fifty pages
|
|
of expert testimony, with comments thereon, and I will copy the
|
|
first nine, as being sufficient all by themselves, as it seems to
|
|
me, to settle the question which I have conceived to be the
|
|
master-key to the Shakespeare-Bacon puzzle.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
VIII
|
|
|
|
Shakespeare as a Lawyer [1]
|
|
|
|
|
|
The Plays and Poems of Shakespeare supply ample evidence
|
|
that their author not only had a very extensive and accurate
|
|
knowledge of law, but that he was well acquainted with the
|
|
manners and customs of members of the Inns of Court and with
|
|
legal life generally.
|
|
|
|
"While novelists and dramatists are constantly making
|
|
mistakes as to the laws of marriage, of wills, of inheritance, to
|
|
Shakespeare's law, lavishly as he expounds it, there can neither
|
|
be demurrer, nor bill of exceptions, nor writ of error." Such
|
|
was the testimony borne by one of the most distinguished lawyers
|
|
of the nineteenth century who was raised to the high office of
|
|
Lord Chief Justice in 1850, and subsequently became Lord
|
|
Chancellor. Its weight will, doubtless, be more appreciated by
|
|
lawyers than by laymen, for only lawyers know how impossible it
|
|
is for those who have not served an apprenticeship to the law to
|
|
avoid displaying their ignorance if they venture to employ legal
|
|
terms and to discuss legal doctrines. "There is nothing so
|
|
dangerous," wrote Lord Campbell, "as for one not of the craft to
|
|
tamper with our freemasonry." A layman is certain to betray
|
|
himself by using some expression which a lawyer would never
|
|
employ. Mr. Sidney Lee himself supplies us with an example of
|
|
this. He writes (p. 164): "On February 15, 1609, Shakespeare .
|
|
. . obtained judgment from a jury against Addenbroke for the
|
|
payment of No. 6, and No. 1, 5s. 0d. costs." Now a lawyer would
|
|
never have spoken of obtaining "judgment from a jury," for it is
|
|
the function of a jury not to deliver judgment (which is the
|
|
prerogative of the court), but to find a verdict on the facts.
|
|
The error is, indeed, a venial one, but it is just one of those
|
|
little things which at once enable a lawyer to know if the writer
|
|
is a layman or "one of the craft."
|
|
|
|
But when a layman ventures to plunge deeply into legal
|
|
subjects, he is naturally apt to make an exhibition of his
|
|
incompetence. "Let a non-professional man, however acute,"
|
|
writes Lord Campbell again, "presume to talk law, or to draw
|
|
illustrations from legal science in discussing other subjects,
|
|
and he will speedily fall into laughable absurdity."
|
|
|
|
And what does the same high authority say about Shakespeare?
|
|
He had "a deep technical knowledge of the law," and an easy
|
|
familiarity with "some of the most abstruse proceedings in
|
|
English jurisprudence." And again: "Whenever he indulges this
|
|
propensity he uniformly lays down good law." Of "Henry IV.,"
|
|
Part 2, he says: "If Lord Eldon could be supposed to have written
|
|
the play, I do not see how he could be chargeable with having
|
|
forgotten any of his law while writing it." Charles and Mary
|
|
Cowden Clarke speak of "the marvelous intimacy which he displays
|
|
with legal terms, his frequent adoption of them in illustration,
|
|
and his curiously technical knowledge of their form and force."
|
|
Malone, himself a lawyer, wrote: "His knowledge of legal terms
|
|
is not merely such as might be acquired by the casual observation
|
|
of even his all-comprehending mind; it has the appearance of
|
|
technical skill." Another lawyer and well-known Shakespearean,
|
|
Richard Grant White, says: "No dramatist of the time, not even
|
|
Beaumont, who was the younger son of a judge of the Common Pleas,
|
|
and who after studying in the Inns of Court abandoned law for the
|
|
drama, used legal phrases with Shakespeare's readiness and
|
|
exactness. And the significance of this fact is heightened by
|
|
another, that is only to the language of the law that he exhibits
|
|
this inclination. The phrases peculiar to other occupations
|
|
serve him on rare occasions by way of description, comparison, or
|
|
illustration, generally when something in the scene suggests
|
|
them, but legal phrases flow from his pen as part of his
|
|
vocabulary and parcel of his thought. Take the word 'purchase'
|
|
for instance, which, in ordinary use, means to acquire by giving
|
|
value, but applies in law to all legal modes of obtaining
|
|
property except by inheritance or descent, and in this peculiar
|
|
sense the word occurs five times in Shakespeare's thirty-four
|
|
plays, and only in one single instance in the fifty-four plays of
|
|
Beaumont and Fletcher. It has been suggested that it was in
|
|
attendance upon the courts in London that he picked up his legal
|
|
vocabulary. But this supposition not only fails to account for
|
|
Shakespeare's peculiar freedom and exactness in the use of that
|
|
phraseology, it does not even place him in the way of learning
|
|
those terms his use of which is most remarkable, which are not
|
|
such as he would have heard at ordinary proceedings at NISI
|
|
PRIUS, but such as refer to the tenure or transfer of real
|
|
property, 'fine and recovery,' 'statutes merchant,' 'purchase,'
|
|
'indenture,' 'tenure,' 'double voucher,' 'fee simple,' 'fee
|
|
farm,' 'remainder,' 'reversion,' 'forfeiture,' etc. This
|
|
conveyancer's jargon could not have been picked up by hanging
|
|
round the courts of law in London two hundred and fifty years
|
|
ago, when suits as to the title of real property were
|
|
comparatively rare. And besides, Shakespeare uses his law just
|
|
as freely in his first plays, written in his first London years,
|
|
as in those produced at a later period. Just as exactly, too;
|
|
for the correctness and propriety with which these terms are
|
|
introduced have compelled the admiration of a Chief Justice and a
|
|
Lord Chancellor."
|
|
|
|
Senator Davis wrote: "We seem to have something more than a
|
|
sciolist's temerity of indulgence in the terms of an unfamiliar
|
|
art. No legal solecisms will be found. The abstrusest elements
|
|
of the common law are impressed into a disciplined service. Over
|
|
and over again, where such knowledge is unexampled in writers
|
|
unlearned in the law, Shakespeare appears in perfect possession
|
|
of it. In the law of real property, its rules of tenure and
|
|
descents, its entails, its fines and recoveries, their vouchers
|
|
and double vouchers, in the procedure of the Courts, the method
|
|
of bringing writs and arrests, the nature of actions, the rules
|
|
of pleading, the law of escapes and of contempt of court, in the
|
|
principles of evidence, both technical and philosophical, in the
|
|
distinction between the temporal and spiritual tribunals, in the
|
|
law of attainder and forfeiture, in the requisites of a valid
|
|
marriage, in the presumption of legitimacy, in the learning of
|
|
the law of prerogative, in the inalienable character of the
|
|
Crown, this mastership appears with surprising authority."
|
|
|
|
To all this testimony (and there is much more which I have
|
|
not cited) may now be added that of a great lawyer of our own
|
|
times, VIZ.: Sir James Plaisted Wilde, Q.C. 1855, created a
|
|
Baron of the Exchequer in 1860, promoted to the post of Judge-
|
|
Ordinary and Judge of the Courts of Probate and Divorce in 1863,
|
|
and better known to the world as Lord Penzance, to which dignity
|
|
he was raised in 1869. Lord Penzance, as all lawyers know, and
|
|
as the late Mr. Inderwick, K.C., has testified, was one of the
|
|
first legal authorities of his day, famous for his "remarkable
|
|
grasp of legal principles," and "endowed by nature with a
|
|
remarkable facility for marshaling facts, and for a clear
|
|
expression of his views."
|
|
|
|
Lord Penzance speaks of Shakespeare's "perfect familiarity
|
|
with not only the principles, axioms, and maxims, but the
|
|
technicalities of English law, a knowledge so perfect and
|
|
intimate that he was never incorrect and never at fault. . . .
|
|
The mode in which this knowledge was pressed into service on all
|
|
occasions to express his meaning and illustrate his thoughts was
|
|
quite unexampled. He seems to have had a special pleasure in his
|
|
complete and ready mastership of it in all its branches. As
|
|
manifested in the plays, this legal knowledge and learning had
|
|
therefore a special character which places it on a wholly
|
|
different footing from the rest of the multifarious knowledge
|
|
which is exhibited in page after page of the plays. At every
|
|
turn and point at which the author required a metaphor, simile,
|
|
or illustration, his mind ever turned FIRST to the law. He seems
|
|
almost to have THOUGHT in legal phrases, the commonest of legal
|
|
expressions were ever at the end of his pen in description or
|
|
illustration. That he should have descanted in lawyer language
|
|
when he had a forensic subject in hand, such as Shylock's bond,
|
|
was to be expected, but the knowledge of law in 'Shakespeare' was
|
|
exhibited in a far different manner: it protruded itself on all
|
|
occasions, appropriate or inappropriate, and mingled itself with
|
|
strains of thought widely divergent from forensic subjects."
|
|
Again: "To acquire a perfect familiarity with legal principles,
|
|
and an accurate and ready use of the technical terms and phrases
|
|
not only of the conveyancer's office, but of the pleader's
|
|
chambers and the Courts at Westminster, nothing short of
|
|
employment in some career involving constant contact with legal
|
|
questions and general legal work would be requisite. But a
|
|
continuous employment involves the element of time, and time was
|
|
just what the manager of two theaters had not at his disposal.
|
|
In what portion of Shakespeare's (i.e., Shakspere's) career would
|
|
it be possible to point out that time could be found for the
|
|
interposition of a legal employment in the chambers or offices of
|
|
practicing lawyers?"
|
|
|
|
Stratfordians, as is well known, casting about for some
|
|
possible explanation of Shakespeare's extraordinary knowledge of
|
|
law, have made the suggestion that Shakespeare might,
|
|
conceivably, have been a clerk in an attorney's office before he
|
|
came to London. Mr. Collier wrote to Lord Campbell to ask his
|
|
opinion as to the probability of this being true. His answer was
|
|
as follows: "You require us to believe implicitly a fact, of
|
|
which, if true, positive and irrefragable evidence in his own
|
|
handwriting might have been forthcoming to establish it. Not
|
|
having been actually enrolled as an attorney, neither the records
|
|
of the local court at Stratford nor of the superior Court at
|
|
Westminster would present his name as being concerned in any suit
|
|
as an attorney, but it might reasonably have been expected that
|
|
there would be deeds or wills witnessed by him still extant, and
|
|
after a very diligent search none such can be discovered."
|
|
|
|
Upon this Lord Penzance commends: "It cannot be doubted
|
|
that Lord Campbell was right in this. No young man could have
|
|
been at work in an attorney's office without being called upon
|
|
continually to act as a witness, and in many other ways leaving
|
|
traces of his work and name." There is not a single fact or
|
|
incident in all that is known of Shakespeare, even by rumor or
|
|
tradition, which supports this notion of a clerkship. And after
|
|
much argument and surmise which has been indulged in on this subject,
|
|
we may, I think, safely put the notion on one side, for no less
|
|
an authority than Mr. Grant White says finally that the idea of
|
|
his having been clerk to an attorney has been "blown to pieces."
|
|
|
|
It is altogether characteristic of Mr. Churton Collins that
|
|
he, nevertheless, adopts this exploded myth. "That Shakespeare
|
|
was in early life employed as a clerk in an attorney's office may
|
|
be correct. At Stratford there was by royal charter a Court of
|
|
Record sitting every fortnight, with six attorneys, besides the
|
|
town clerk, belonging to it, and it is certainly not straining
|
|
probability to suppose that the young Shakespeare may have had
|
|
employment in one of them. There is, it is true, no tradition to
|
|
this effect, but such traditions as we have about Shakespeare's
|
|
occupation between the time of leaving school and going to London
|
|
are so loose and baseless that no confidence can be placed in
|
|
them. It is, to say the least, more probable that he was in an
|
|
attorney's office than that he was a butcher killing calves 'in a
|
|
high style,' and making speeches over them."
|
|
|
|
This is a charming specimen of Stratfordian argument. There
|
|
is, as we have seen, a very old tradition that Shakespeare was a
|
|
butcher's apprentice. John Dowdall, who made a tour of
|
|
Warwickshire in 1693, testifies to it as coming from the old
|
|
clerk who showed him over the church, and it is unhesitatingly
|
|
accepted as true by Mr. Halliwell-Phillipps. (Vol. I, p. 11, and
|
|
Vol. II, pp. 71, 72.) Mr. Sidney Lee sees nothing improbable in
|
|
it, and it is supported by Aubrey, who must have written his
|
|
account some time before 1680, when his manuscript was completed.
|
|
Of the attorney's clerk hypothesis, on the other hand, there is
|
|
not the faintest vestige of a tradition. It has been evolved out
|
|
of the fertile imaginations of embarrassed Stratfordians, seeking
|
|
for some explanation of the Stratford rustic's marvelous
|
|
acquaintance with law and legal terms and legal life. But Mr.
|
|
Churton Collins has not the least hesitation in throwing over the
|
|
tradition which has the warrant of antiquity and setting up in
|
|
its stead this ridiculous invention, for which not only is there
|
|
no shred of positive evidence, but which, as Lord Campbell and
|
|
Lord Penzance pointed out, is really put out of court by the
|
|
negative evidence, since "no young man could have been at work in
|
|
an attorney's office without being called upon continually to act
|
|
as a witness, and in many other ways leaving traces of his work
|
|
and name." And as Mr. Edwards further points out, since the day
|
|
when Lord Campbell's book was published (between forty and fifty
|
|
years ago), "every old deed or will, to say nothing of other
|
|
legal papers, dated during the period of William Shakespeare's
|
|
youth, has been scrutinized over half a dozen shires, and not one
|
|
signature of the young man has been found."
|
|
|
|
Moreover, if Shakespeare had served as clerk in an attorney's
|
|
office it is clear that he must have served for a considerable
|
|
period in order to have gained (if, indeed, it is credible that
|
|
he could have so gained) his remarkable knowledge of the law.
|
|
Can we then for a moment believe that, if this had been so,
|
|
tradition would have been absolutely silent on the matter?
|
|
That Dowdall's old clerk, over eighty years of age,
|
|
should have never heard of it (though he was sure enough
|
|
about the butcher's apprentice) and that all the other
|
|
ancient witnesses should be in similar ignorance!
|
|
|
|
But such are the methods of Stratfordian controversy.
|
|
Tradition is to be scouted when it is found inconvenient, but
|
|
cited as irrefragable truth when it suits the case. Shakespeare
|
|
of Stratford was the author of the Plays and Poems, but the
|
|
author of the Plays and Poems could not have been a butcher's
|
|
apprentice. Anyway, therefore, with tradition. But the author
|
|
of the Plays and Poems MUST have had a very large and a very
|
|
accurate knowledge of the law. Therefore, Shakespeare of
|
|
Stratford must have been an attorney's clerk! The method is
|
|
simplicity itself. By similar reasoning Shakespeare has been
|
|
made a country schoolmaster, a soldier, a physician, a printer,
|
|
and a good many other things besides, according to the
|
|
inclination and the exigencies of the commentator. It would not
|
|
be in the least surprising to find that he was studying Latin as
|
|
a schoolmaster and law in an attorney's office at the same time.
|
|
|
|
However, we must do Mr. Collins the justice of saying that
|
|
he has fully recognized, what is indeed tolerable obvious, that
|
|
Shakespeare must have had a sound legal training. "It may, of
|
|
course, be urged," he writes, "that Shakespeare's knowledge of
|
|
medicine, and particularly that branch of it which related to
|
|
morbid psychology, is equally remarkable, and that no one has
|
|
ever contended that he was a physician. (Here Mr. Collins is
|
|
wrong; that contention also has been put forward.) It may be
|
|
urged that his acquaintance with the technicalities of other
|
|
crafts and callings, notably of marine and military affairs, was
|
|
also extraordinary, and yet no one has suspected him of being a
|
|
sailor or a soldier. (Wrong again. Why, even Messrs. Garnett
|
|
and Gosse "suspect" that he was a soldier!) This may be
|
|
conceded, but the concession hardly furnishes an analogy. To
|
|
these and all other subjects he recurs occasionally, and in
|
|
season, but with reminiscences of the law his memory, as is
|
|
abundantly clear, was simply saturated. In season and out of
|
|
season now in manifest, now in recondite application, he presses
|
|
it into the service of expression and illustration. At least a
|
|
third of his myriad metaphors are derived from it. It would
|
|
indeed be difficult to find a single act in any of his dramas,
|
|
nay, in some of them, a single scene, the diction and imagery of
|
|
which are not colored by it. Much of his law may have been
|
|
acquired from three books easily accessible to him--namely,
|
|
Tottell's PRECEDENTS (1572), Pulton's STATUTES (1578), and
|
|
Fraunce's LAWIER'S LOGIKE (1588), works with which he certainly
|
|
seems to have been familiar; but much of it could only have come
|
|
from one who had an intimate acquaintance with legal proceedings.
|
|
We quite agree with Mr. Castle that Shakespeare's legal knowledge
|
|
is not what could have been picked up in an attorney's office,
|
|
but could only have been learned by an actual attendance at the
|
|
Courts, at a Pleader's Chambers, and on circuit, or by
|
|
associating intimately with members of the Bench and Bar."
|
|
|
|
This is excellent. But what is Mr. Collins's explanation?
|
|
"Perhaps the simplest solution of the problem is to accept the
|
|
hypothesis that in early life he was in an attorney's office (!),
|
|
that he there contracted a love for the law which never left him,
|
|
that as a young man in London he continued to study or dabble in
|
|
it for his amusement, to stroll in leisure hours into the Courts,
|
|
and to frequent the society of lawyers. On no other supposition
|
|
is it possible to explain the attraction which the law evidently
|
|
had for him, and his minute and undeviating accuracy in a subject
|
|
where no layman who has indulged in such copious and ostentatious
|
|
display of legal technicalities has ever yet succeeded in keeping
|
|
himself from tripping."
|
|
|
|
A lame conclusion. "No other supposition" indeed! Yes,
|
|
there is another, and a very obvious supposition--namely, that
|
|
Shakespeare was himself a lawyer, well versed in his trade,
|
|
versed in all the ways of the courts, and living in close
|
|
intimacy with judges and members of the Inns of Court.
|
|
|
|
One is, of course, thankful that Mr. Collins has appreciated
|
|
the fact that Shakespeare must have had a sound legal training,
|
|
but I may be forgiven if I do not attach quite so much importance
|
|
to his pronouncements on this branch of the subject as to those
|
|
of Malone, Lord Campbell, Judge Holmes, Mr. Castle, K.C., Lord
|
|
Penzance, Mr. Grant White, and other lawyers, who have expressed
|
|
their opinion on the matter of Shakespeare's legal acquirements.
|
|
. . .
|
|
|
|
Here it may, perhaps, be worth while to quote again from
|
|
Lord Penzance's book as to the suggestion that Shakespeare had
|
|
somehow or other managed "to acquire a perfect familiarity with
|
|
legal principles, and an accurate and ready use of the technical
|
|
terms and phrases, not only of the conveyancer's office, but of
|
|
the pleader's chambers and the Courts at Westminster." This, as
|
|
Lord Penzance points out, "would require nothing short of
|
|
employment in some career involving CONSTANT CONTACT with legal
|
|
questions and general legal work." But "in what portion of
|
|
Shakespeare's career would it be possible to point out that time
|
|
could be found for the interposition of a legal employment in the
|
|
chambers or offices of practicing lawyers? . . . It is beyond
|
|
doubt that at an early period he was called upon to abandon his
|
|
attendance at school and assist his father, and was soon after,
|
|
at the age of sixteen, bound apprentice to a trade. While under
|
|
the obligation of this bond he could not have pursued any other
|
|
employment. Then he leaves Stratford and comes to London. He
|
|
has to provide himself with the means of a livelihood, and this
|
|
he did in some capacity at the theater. No one doubt that. The
|
|
holding of horses is scouted by many, and perhaps with justice,
|
|
as being unlikely and certainly unproved; but whatever the nature
|
|
of his employment was at the theater, there is hardly room for
|
|
the belief that it could have been other than continuous, for his
|
|
progress there was so rapid. Ere long he had been taken into the
|
|
company as an actor, and was soon spoken of as a "Johannes
|
|
Factotum.' His rapid accumulation of wealth speaks volumes for
|
|
the constancy and activity of his services. One fails to see
|
|
when there could be a break in the current of his life at this
|
|
period of it, giving room or opportunity for legal or indeed any
|
|
other employment. 'In 1589,' says Knight, 'we have undeniable
|
|
evidence that he had not only a casual engagement, was not only a
|
|
salaried servant, as may players were, but was a shareholder in
|
|
the company of the Queen's players with other shareholders below
|
|
him on the list.' This (1589) would be within two years after
|
|
his arrival in London, which is placed by White and Halliwell-
|
|
Phillipps about the year 1587. The difficulty in supposing that,
|
|
starting with a state of ignorance in 1587, when he is supposed
|
|
to have come to London, he was induced to enter upon a course of
|
|
most extended study and mental culture, is almost insuperable.
|
|
Still it was physically possible, provided always that he could
|
|
have had access to the needful books. But this legal training
|
|
seems to me to stand on a different footing. It is not only
|
|
unaccountable and incredible, but it is actually negatived by the
|
|
known facts of his career." Lord Penzance then refers to the
|
|
fact that "by 1592 (according to the best authority, Mr. Grant
|
|
White) several of the plays had been written. 'The Comedy of
|
|
Errors' in 1589, 'Love's Labour's Lost' in 1589, 'Two Gentlemen
|
|
of Verona' in 1589 or 1590," and so forth, and then asks, "with
|
|
this catalogue of dramatic work on hand . . . was it possible
|
|
that he could have taken a leading part in the management and
|
|
conduct of two theaters, and if Mr. Phillipps is to be relied
|
|
upon, taken his share in the performances of the provincial tours
|
|
of his company--and at the same time devoted himself to the study
|
|
of the law in all its branches so efficiently as to make himself
|
|
complete master of its principles and practice, and saturate his
|
|
mind with all its most technical terms?"
|
|
|
|
I have cited this passage from Lord Penzance's book, because
|
|
it lay before me, and I had already quoted from it on the matter
|
|
of Shakespeare's legal knowledge; but other writers have still
|
|
better set forth the insuperable difficulties, as they seem to
|
|
me, which beset the idea that Shakespeare might have found them
|
|
in some unknown period of early life, amid multifarious other
|
|
occupations, for the study of classics, literature, and law, to
|
|
say nothing of languages and a few other matters. Lord Penzance
|
|
further asks his readers: "Did you ever meet with or hear of an
|
|
instance in which a young man in this country gave himself up to
|
|
legal studies and engaged in legal employments, which is the only
|
|
way of becoming familiar with the technicalities of practice, unless
|
|
with the view of practicing in that profession? I do not believe
|
|
that it would be easy, or indeed possible, to produce an instance
|
|
in which the law has been seriously studied in all its branches,
|
|
except as a qualification for practice in the legal profession."
|
|
|
|
|
|
This testimony is so strong, so direct, so authoritative;
|
|
and so uncheapened, unwatered by guesses, and surmises, and
|
|
maybe-so's, and might-have-beens, and could-have-beens, and must-
|
|
have-beens, and the rest of that ton of plaster of Paris out of
|
|
which the biographers have built the colossal brontosaur which
|
|
goes by the Stratford actor's name, that it quite convinces me
|
|
that the man who wrote Shakespeare's Works knew all about law and
|
|
lawyers. Also, that that man could not have been the Stratford
|
|
Shakespeare--and WASN'T.
|
|
|
|
Who did write these Works, then?
|
|
|
|
I wish I knew.
|
|
|
|
-----
|
|
1. From Chapter XIII of THE SHAKESPEARE PROBLEM RESTATED.
|
|
By George G. Greenwood, M.P. John Lane Company, publishers.
|
|
|
|
|
|
IX
|
|
|
|
Did Francis Bacon write Shakespeare's Works? Nobody knows.
|
|
|
|
We cannot say we KNOW a thing when that thing has not been
|
|
proved. KNOW is too strong a word to use when the evidence is
|
|
not final and absolutely conclusive. We can infer, if we want
|
|
to, like those slaves. . . . No, I will not write that word,
|
|
it is not kind, it is not courteous. The upholders of the
|
|
Stratford-Shakespeare superstition call US the hardest names they
|
|
can think of, and they keep doing it all the time; very well,
|
|
if they like to descend to that level, let them do it, but I
|
|
will not so undignify myself as to follow them. I cannot call
|
|
them harsh names; the most I can do is to indicate them by terms
|
|
reflecting my disapproval; and this without malice, without venom.
|
|
|
|
To resume. What I was about to say was, those thugs have built
|
|
their entire superstition upon INFERENCES, not upon known and
|
|
established facts. It is a weak method, and poor, and I am
|
|
glad to be able to say our side never resorts to it while there
|
|
is anything else to resort to.
|
|
|
|
But when we must, we must; and we have now arrived at a
|
|
place of that sort. . . . Since the Stratford Shakespeare
|
|
couldn't have written the Works, we infer that somebody did.
|
|
Who was it, then? This requires some more inferring.
|
|
|
|
Ordinarily when an unsigned poem sweeps across the continent
|
|
like a tidal wave whose roar and boom and thunder are made up of
|
|
admiration, delight, and applause, a dozen obscure people rise up
|
|
and claim the authorship. Why a dozen, instead of only one or
|
|
two? One reason is, because there are a dozen that are
|
|
recognizably competent to do that poem. Do you remember
|
|
"Beautiful Snow"? Do you remember "Rock Me to Sleep, Mother,
|
|
Rock Me to Sleep"? Do you remember "Backward, turn, backward, O
|
|
Time, in thy flight! Make me a child again just for tonight"? I
|
|
remember them very well. Their authorship was claimed by most of
|
|
the grown-up people who were alive at the time, and every
|
|
claimant had one plausible argument in his favor, at least--to
|
|
wit, he could have done the authoring; he was competent.
|
|
|
|
Have the Works been claimed by a dozen? They haven't.
|
|
There was good reason. The world knows there was but one man on
|
|
the planet at the time who was competent--not a dozen, and not
|
|
two. A long time ago the dwellers in a far country used now and
|
|
then to find a procession of prodigious footprints stretching
|
|
across the plain--footprints that were three miles apart, each
|
|
footprint a third of a mile long and a furlong deep, and with
|
|
forests and villages mashed to mush in it. Was there any doubt
|
|
as to who made that mighty trail? Were there a dozen claimants?
|
|
Where there two? No--the people knew who it was that had been
|
|
along there: there was only one Hercules.
|
|
|
|
There has been only one Shakespeare. There couldn't be two;
|
|
certainly there couldn't be two at the same time. It takes ages
|
|
to bring forth a Shakespeare, and some more ages to match him.
|
|
This one was not matched before his time; nor during his time;
|
|
and hasn't been matched since. The prospect of matching him in
|
|
our time is not bright.
|
|
|
|
The Baconians claim that the Stratford Shakespeare was not
|
|
qualified to write the Works, and that Francis Bacon was.
|
|
They claim that Bacon possessed the stupendous equipment--both
|
|
natural and acquired--for the miracle; and that no other
|
|
Englishman of his day possessed the like; or, indeed,
|
|
anything closely approaching it.
|
|
|
|
Macaulay, in his Essay, has much to say about the splendor
|
|
and horizonless magnitude of that equipment. Also, he has
|
|
synopsized Bacon's history--a thing which cannot be done for the
|
|
Stratford Shakespeare, for he hasn't any history to synopsize.
|
|
Bacon's history is open to the world, from his boyhood to his
|
|
death in old age--a history consisting of known facts, displayed
|
|
in minute and multitudinous detail; FACTS, not guesses and
|
|
conjectures and might-have-beens.
|
|
|
|
Whereby it appears that he was born of a race of statesmen,
|
|
and had a Lord Chancellor for his father, and a mother who was
|
|
"distinguished both as a linguist and a theologian: she
|
|
corresponded in Greek with Bishop Jewell, and translated his
|
|
APOLOGIA from the Latin so correctly that neither he nor
|
|
Archbishop Parker could suggest a single alteration." It is the
|
|
atmosphere we are reared in that determines how our inclinations
|
|
and aspirations shall tend. The atmosphere furnished by the
|
|
parents to the son in this present case was an atmosphere
|
|
saturated with learning; with thinkings and ponderings upon deep
|
|
subjects; and with polite culture. It had its natural effect.
|
|
Shakespeare of Stratford was reared in a house which had no use
|
|
for books, since its owners, his parents, were without education.
|
|
This may have had an effect upon the son, but we do not know,
|
|
because we have no history of him of an informing sort. There
|
|
were but few books anywhere, in that day, and only the well-to-do
|
|
and highly educated possessed them, they being almost confined to
|
|
the dead languages. "All the valuable books then extant in all
|
|
the vernacular dialects of Europe would hardly have filled a
|
|
single shelf"--imagine it! The few existing books were in the
|
|
Latin tongue mainly. "A person who was ignorant of it was shut
|
|
out from all acquaintance--not merely with Cicero and Virgil, but
|
|
with the most interesting memoirs, state papers, and pamphlets of
|
|
his own time"--a literature necessary to the Stratford lad, for
|
|
his fictitious reputation's sake, since the writer of his Works
|
|
would begin to use it wholesale and in a most masterly way before
|
|
the lad was hardly more than out of his teens and into his
|
|
twenties.
|
|
|
|
At fifteen Bacon was sent to the university, and he spent
|
|
three years there. Thence he went to Paris in the train of the
|
|
English Ambassador, and there he mingled daily with the wise, the
|
|
cultured, the great, and the aristocracy of fashion, during
|
|
another three years. A total of six years spent at the sources
|
|
of knowledge; knowledge both of books and of men. The three
|
|
spent at the university were coeval with the second and last
|
|
three spent by the little Stratford lad at Stratford school
|
|
supposedly, and perhapsedly, and maybe, and by inference--with
|
|
nothing to infer from. The second three of the Baconian six were
|
|
"presumably" spent by the Stratford lad as apprentice to a
|
|
butcher. That is, the thugs presume it--on no evidence of any
|
|
kind. Which is their way, when they want a historical fact.
|
|
Fact and presumption are, for business purposes, all the same to
|
|
them. They know the difference, but they also know how to blink
|
|
it. They know, too, that while in history-building a fact is
|
|
better than a presumption, it doesn't take a presumption long to
|
|
bloom into a fact when THEY have the handling of it. They know
|
|
by old experience that when they get hold of a presumption-
|
|
tadpole he is not going to STAY tadpole in their history-tank;
|
|
no, they know how to develop him into the giant four-legged
|
|
bullfrog of FACT, and make him sit up on his hams, and puff out
|
|
his chin, and look important and insolent and come-to-stay; and
|
|
assert his genuine simon-pure authenticity with a thundering
|
|
bellow that will convince everybody because it is so loud.
|
|
The thug is aware that loudness convinces sixty persons where
|
|
reasoning convinces but one. I wouldn't be a thug, not even if--
|
|
but never mind about that, it has nothing to do with the argument,
|
|
and it is not noble in spirit besides. If I am better than a thug,
|
|
is the merit mine? No, it is His. Then to Him be the praise.
|
|
That is the right spirit.
|
|
|
|
They "presume" the lad severed his "presumed" connection
|
|
with the Stratford school to become apprentice to a butcher.
|
|
They also "presume" that the butcher was his father. They don't
|
|
know. There is no written record of it, nor any other actual
|
|
evidence. If it would have helped their case any, they would
|
|
have apprenticed him to thirty butchers, to fifty butchers, to a
|
|
wilderness of butchers--all by their patented method "presumption."
|
|
If it will help their case they will do it yet; and if it will
|
|
further help it, they will "presume" that all those butchers
|
|
were his father. And the week after, they will SAY it.
|
|
Why, it is just like being the past tense of the compound
|
|
reflexive adverbial incandescent hypodermic irregular
|
|
accusative Noun of Multitude; which is father to the expression
|
|
which the grammarians call Verb. It is like a whole ancestry,
|
|
with only one posterity.
|
|
|
|
To resume. Next, the young Bacon took up the study of law,
|
|
and mastered that abstruse science. From that day to the end of
|
|
his life he was daily in close contact with lawyers and judges;
|
|
not as a casual onlooker in intervals between holding horses in
|
|
front of a theater, but as a practicing lawyer--a great and
|
|
successful one, a renowned one, a Launcelot of the bar, the most
|
|
formidable lance in the high brotherhood of the legal Table
|
|
Round; he lived in the law's atmosphere thenceforth, all his
|
|
years, and by sheer ability forced his way up its difficult
|
|
steeps to its supremest summit, the Lord-Chancellorship, leaving
|
|
behind him no fellow-craftsman qualified to challenge his divine
|
|
right to that majestic place.
|
|
|
|
When we read the praises bestowed by Lord Penzance and the
|
|
other illustrious experts upon the legal condition and legal
|
|
aptnesses, brilliances, profundities, and felicities so
|
|
prodigally displayed in the Plays, and try to fit them to the
|
|
historyless Stratford stage-manager, they sound wild, strange,
|
|
incredible, ludicrous; but when we put them in the mouth of Bacon
|
|
they do not sound strange, they seem in their natural and
|
|
rightful place, they seem at home there. Please turn back and
|
|
read them again. Attributed to Shakespeare of Stratford they are
|
|
meaningless, they are inebriate extravagancies--intemperate
|
|
admirations of the dark side of the moon, so to speak; attributed
|
|
to Bacon, they are admirations of the golden glories of the
|
|
moon's front side, the moon at the full--and not intemperate, not
|
|
overwrought, but sane and right, and justified. "At ever turn
|
|
and point at which the author required a metaphor, simile, or
|
|
illustration, his mind ever turned FIRST to the law; he seems
|
|
almost to have THOUGHT in legal phrases; the commonest legal
|
|
phrases, the commonest of legal expressions, were ever at the end
|
|
of his pen." That could happen to no one but a person whose
|
|
TRADE was the law; it could not happen to a dabbler in it.
|
|
Veteran mariners fill their conversation with sailor-phrases and
|
|
draw all their similes from the ship and the sea and the storm,
|
|
but no mere PASSENGER ever does it, be he of Stratford or
|
|
elsewhere; or could do it with anything resembling accuracy, if
|
|
he were hardy enough to try. Please read again what Lord
|
|
Campbell and the other great authorities have said about Bacon
|
|
when they thought they were saying it about Shakespeare of Stratford.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
X
|
|
|
|
The Rest of the Equipment
|
|
|
|
|
|
The author of the Plays was equipped, beyond every other man
|
|
of his time, with wisdom, erudition, imagination, capaciousness
|
|
of mind, grace, and majesty of expression. Everyone one had said
|
|
it, no one doubts it. Also, he had humor, humor in rich
|
|
abundance, and always wanting to break out. We have no evidence
|
|
of any kind that Shakespeare of Stratford possessed any of these
|
|
gifts or any of these acquirements. The only lines he ever
|
|
wrote, so far as we know, are substantially barren of them--
|
|
barren of all of them.
|
|
|
|
|
|
Good friend for Iesus sake forbeare
|
|
To digg the dust encloased heare:
|
|
Blest be ye man yt spares thes stones
|
|
And curst be he yt moves my bones.
|
|
Ben Jonson says of Bacon, as orator:
|
|
|
|
|
|
His language, WHERE HE COULD SPARE AND PASS BY A JEST, was
|
|
nobly censorious. No man ever spoke more neatly, more pressly,
|
|
more weightily, or suffered less emptiness, less idleness, in
|
|
what he uttered. No member of his speech but consisted of his
|
|
(its) own graces. . . . The fear of every man that heard him was
|
|
lest he should make an end.
|
|
|
|
|
|
From Macaulay:
|
|
|
|
|
|
He continued to distinguish himself in Parliament,
|
|
particularly by his exertions in favor of one excellent measure
|
|
on which the King's heart was set--the union of England and
|
|
Scotland. It was not difficult for such an intellect to discover
|
|
many irresistible arguments in favor of such a scheme. He
|
|
conducted the great case of the POST NATI in the Exchequer
|
|
Chamber; and the decision of the judges--a decision the legality
|
|
of which may be questioned, but the beneficial effect of which
|
|
must be acknowledged--was in a great measure attributed to his
|
|
dexterous management.
|
|
|
|
|
|
Again:
|
|
|
|
|
|
While actively engaged in the House of Commons and in the courts
|
|
of law, he still found leisure for letters and philosophy.
|
|
The noble treatise on the ADVANCEMENT OF LEARNING, which at a
|
|
later period was expanded into the DE AUGMENTIS, appeared in 1605.
|
|
|
|
The WISDOM OF THE ANCIENTS, a work which, if it had
|
|
proceeded from any other writer, would have been considered as a
|
|
masterpiece of wit and learning, was printed in 1609.
|
|
|
|
In the mean time the NOVUM ORGANUM was slowly proceeding.
|
|
Several distinguished men of learning had been permitted to see
|
|
portions of that extraordinary book, and they spoke with the
|
|
greatest admiration of his genius.
|
|
|
|
Even Sir Thomas Bodley, after perusing the COGITATA ET VISA,
|
|
one of the most precious of those scattered leaves out of which
|
|
the great oracular volume was afterward made up, acknowledged
|
|
that "in all proposals and plots in that book, Bacon showed
|
|
himself a master workman"; and that "it could not be gainsaid but
|
|
all the treatise over did abound with choice conceits of the
|
|
present state of learning, and with worthy contemplations of the
|
|
means to procure it."
|
|
|
|
In 1612 a new edition of the ESSAYS appeared, with additions
|
|
surpassing the original collection both in bulk and quality.
|
|
|
|
Nor did these pursuits distract Bacon's attention from a
|
|
work the most arduous, the most glorious, and the most useful
|
|
that even his mighty powers could have achieved, "the reducing
|
|
and recompiling," to use his own phrase, "of the laws of England."
|
|
|
|
|
|
To serve the exacting and laborious offices of Attorney-General
|
|
and Solicitor-General would have satisfied the appetite of any
|
|
other man for hard work, but Bacon had to add the vast literary
|
|
industries just described, to satisfy his. He was a born worker.
|
|
|
|
|
|
The service which he rendered to letters during the last
|
|
five years of his life, amid ten thousand distractions and
|
|
vexations, increase the regret with which we think on the many
|
|
years which he had wasted, to use the words of Sir Thomas Bodley,
|
|
"on such study as was not worthy such a student."
|
|
|
|
He commenced a digest of the laws of England, a History of
|
|
England under the Princes of the House of Tudor, a body of
|
|
National History, a Philosophical Romance. He made extensive and
|
|
valuable additions to his Essays. He published the inestimable
|
|
TREATISE DE AUGMENTIS SCIENTIARUM.
|
|
|
|
|
|
Did these labors of Hercules fill up his time to his contentment,
|
|
and quiet his appetite for work? Not entirely:
|
|
|
|
|
|
The trifles with which he amused himself in hours of pain and languor
|
|
bore the mark of his mind. THE BEST JEST-BOOK IN THE WORLD is that
|
|
which he dictated from memory, without referring to any book,
|
|
on a day on which illness had rendered him incapable of serious study.
|
|
|
|
|
|
Here are some scattered remarks (from Macaulay) which throw
|
|
light upon Bacon, and seem to indicate--and maybe demonstrate--
|
|
that he was competent to write the Plays and Poems:
|
|
|
|
|
|
With great minuteness of observation he had an amplitude of comprehension
|
|
such as has never yet been vouchsafed to any other human being.
|
|
|
|
|
|
The ESSAYS contain abundant proofs that no nice feature of
|
|
character, no peculiarity in the ordering of a house, a garden,
|
|
or a court-masque, could escape the notice of one whose mind was
|
|
capable of taking in the whole world of knowledge.
|
|
|
|
|
|
His understanding resembled the tent which the fairy
|
|
Paribanou gave to Prince Ahmed: fold it, and it seemed a toy for
|
|
the hand of a lady; spread it, and the armies of the powerful
|
|
Sultans might repose beneath its shade.
|
|
|
|
|
|
The knowledge in which Bacon excelled all men was a knowledge
|
|
of the mutual relations of all departments of knowledge.
|
|
|
|
|
|
In a letter written when he was only thirty-one, to his uncle,
|
|
Lord Burleigh, he said, "I have taken all knowledge to be my province."
|
|
|
|
|
|
Though Bacon did not arm his philosophy with the weapons of logic,
|
|
he adorned her profusely with all the richest decorations of rhetoric.
|
|
|
|
|
|
The practical faculty was powerful in Bacon; but not, like
|
|
his wit, so powerful as occasionally to usurp the place of his
|
|
reason and to tyrannize over the whole man.
|
|
|
|
|
|
There are too many places in the Plays where this happens.
|
|
Poor old dying John of Gaunt volleying second-rate puns at his
|
|
own name, is a pathetic instance of it. "We may assume" that it is
|
|
Bacon's fault, but the Stratford Shakespeare has to bear the blame.
|
|
|
|
|
|
No imagination was ever at once so strong and so thoroughly
|
|
subjugated. It stopped at the first check from good sense.
|
|
|
|
|
|
In truth, much of Bacon's life was passed in a visionary world--
|
|
amid things as strange as any that are described in the ARABIAN TALES
|
|
. . . amid buildings more sumptuous than the palace of Aladdin,
|
|
fountains more wonderful than the golden water of Parizade,
|
|
conveyances more rapid than the hippogryph of Ruggiero, arms more
|
|
formidable than the lance of Astolfo, remedies more effacious
|
|
than the balsam of Fierabras. Yet in his magnificent day-dreams
|
|
there was nothing wild--nothing but what sober reason sanctioned.
|
|
|
|
|
|
Bacon's greatest performance is the first book of the NOVUM
|
|
ORGANUM. . . . Every part of it blazes with wit, but with wit
|
|
which is employed only to illustrate and decorate truth. No book
|
|
ever made so great a revolution in the mode of thinking,
|
|
overthrew so may prejudices, introduced so many new opinions.
|
|
|
|
|
|
But what we most admire is the vast capacity of that
|
|
intellect which, without effort, takes in at once all the domains
|
|
of science--all the past, the present and the future, all the
|
|
errors of two thousand years, all the encouraging signs of the
|
|
passing times, all the bright hopes of the coming age.
|
|
|
|
|
|
He had a wonderful talent for packing thought close and
|
|
rendering it portable.
|
|
|
|
|
|
His eloquence would alone have entitled him to a high rank
|
|
in literature.
|
|
|
|
|
|
It is evident that he had each and every one of the mental gifts
|
|
and each and every one of the acquirements that are so prodigally
|
|
displayed in the Plays and Poems, and in much higher and richer
|
|
degree than any other man of his time or of any previous time.
|
|
He was a genius without a mate, a prodigy not matable. There was
|
|
only one of him; the planet could not produce two of him at
|
|
one birth, nor in one age. He could have written anything that
|
|
is in the Plays and Poems. He could have written this:
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
The cloud-cap'd towers, the gorgeous palaces,
|
|
The solemn temples, the great globe itself,
|
|
Yea, all which it inherit, shall dissolve,
|
|
And, like an insubstantial pageant faded,
|
|
Leave not a rack behind. We are such stuff
|
|
As dreams are made of, and our little life
|
|
Is rounded with a sleep.
|
|
|
|
|
|
Also, he could have written this, but he refrained:
|
|
|
|
|
|
Good friend for Iesus sake forbeare
|
|
To digg the dust encloased heare:
|
|
Blest be ye man yt spares thes stones
|
|
And curst be he yt moves my bones.
|
|
|
|
|
|
When a person reads the noble verses about the cloud-cap'd
|
|
towers, he ought not to follow it immediately with Good friend
|
|
for Iesus sake forbeare, because he will find the transition from
|
|
great poetry to poor prose too violent for comfort. It will give
|
|
him a shock. You never notice how commonplace and unpoetic
|
|
gravel is until you bite into a layer of it in a pie.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
XI
|
|
|
|
|
|
Am I trying to convince anybody that Shakespeare did not
|
|
write Shakespeare's Works? Ah, now, what do you take me for?
|
|
Would I be so soft as that, after having known the human race
|
|
familiarly for nearly seventy-four years? It would grieve me to
|
|
know that any one could think so injuriously of me, so
|
|
uncomplimentarily, so unadmiringly of me. No, no, I am aware
|
|
that when even the brightest mind in our world has been trained
|
|
up from childhood in a superstition of any kind, it will never be
|
|
possible for that mind, in its maturity, to examine sincerely,
|
|
dispassionately, and conscientiously any evidence or any
|
|
circumstance which shall seem to cast a doubt upon the validity
|
|
of that superstition. I doubt if I could do it myself. We
|
|
always get at second hand our notions about systems of
|
|
government; and high tariff and low tariff; and prohibition and
|
|
anti-prohibition; and the holiness of peace and the glories of
|
|
war; and codes of honor and codes of morals; and approval of the
|
|
duel and disapproval of it; and our beliefs concerning the nature
|
|
of cats; and our ideas as to whether the murder of helpless wild
|
|
animals is base or is heroic; and our preferences in the matter
|
|
of religious and political parties; and our acceptance or
|
|
rejection of the Shakespeares and the Author Ortons and the Mrs.
|
|
Eddys. We get them all at second hand, we reason none of them
|
|
out for ourselves. It is the way we are made. It is the way we
|
|
are all made, and we can't help it, we can't change it. And
|
|
whenever we have been furnished a fetish, and have been taught to
|
|
believe in it, and love it and worship it, and refrain from
|
|
examining it, there is no evidence, howsoever clear and strong,
|
|
that can persuade us to withdraw from it our loyalty and our
|
|
devotion. In morals, conduct, and beliefs we take the color of
|
|
our environment and associations, and it is a color that can
|
|
safely be warranted to wash. Whenever we have been furnished
|
|
with a tar baby ostensibly stuffed with jewels, and warned that
|
|
it will be dishonorable and irreverent to disembowel it and test
|
|
the jewels, we keep our sacrilegious hands off it. We submit,
|
|
not reluctantly, but rather gladly, for we are privately afraid
|
|
we should find, upon examination that the jewels are of the sort
|
|
that are manufactured at North Adams, Mass.
|
|
|
|
I haven't any idea that Shakespeare will have to vacate his
|
|
pedestal this side of the year 2209. Disbelief in him cannot
|
|
come swiftly, disbelief in a healthy and deeply-loved tar baby
|
|
has never been known to disintegrate swiftly; it is a very slow
|
|
process. It took several thousand years to convince our fine
|
|
race--including every splendid intellect in it--that there is no
|
|
such thing as a witch; it has taken several thousand years to
|
|
convince the same fine race--including every splendid intellect
|
|
in it--that there is no such person as Satan; it has taken
|
|
several centuries to remove perdition from the Protestant
|
|
Church's program of post-mortem entertainments; it has taken a
|
|
weary long time to persuade American Presbyterians to give up
|
|
infant damnation and try to bear it the best they can; and it
|
|
looks as if their Scotch brethren will still be burning babies in
|
|
the everlasting fires when Shakespeare comes down from his perch.
|
|
|
|
We are The Reasoning Race. We can't prove it by the above
|
|
examples, and we can't prove it by the miraculous "histories"
|
|
built by those Stratfordolaters out of a hatful of rags and a
|
|
barrel of sawdust, but there is a plenty of other things we can
|
|
prove it by, if I could think of them. We are The Reasoning
|
|
Race, and when we find a vague file of chipmunk-tracks stringing
|
|
through the dust of Stratford village, we know by our reasoning
|
|
bowers that Hercules has been along there. I feel that our
|
|
fetish is safe for three centuries yet. The bust, too--there in
|
|
the Stratford Church. The precious bust, the priceless bust, the
|
|
calm bust, the serene bust, the emotionless bust, with the dandy
|
|
mustache, and the putty face, unseamed of care--that face which
|
|
has looked passionlessly down upon the awed pilgrim for a hundred
|
|
and fifty years and will still look down upon the awed pilgrim
|
|
three hundred more, with the deep, deep, deep, subtle, subtle,
|
|
subtle expression of a bladder.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
XII
|
|
|
|
|
|
Irreverence
|
|
|
|
One of the most trying defects which I find in these--these
|
|
--what shall I call them? for I will not apply injurious epithets
|
|
to them, the way they do to us, such violations of courtesy being
|
|
repugnant to my nature and my dignity. The farthest I can go in
|
|
that direction is to call them by names of limited reverence--
|
|
names merely descriptive, never unkind, never offensive, never
|
|
tainted by harsh feeling. If THEY would do like this, they would
|
|
feel better in their hearts. Very well, then--to proceed. One
|
|
of the most trying defects which I find in these
|
|
Stratfordolaters, these Shakesperiods, these thugs, these
|
|
bangalores, these troglodytes, these herumfrodites, these
|
|
blatherskites, these buccaneers, these bandoleers, is their
|
|
spirit of irreverence. It is detectable in every utterance of
|
|
theirs when they are talking about us. I am thankful that in me
|
|
there is nothing of that spirit. When a thing is sacred to me it
|
|
is impossible for me to be irreverent toward it. I cannot call
|
|
to mind a single instance where I have ever been irreverent,
|
|
except towards the things which were sacred to other people. Am
|
|
I in the right? I think so. But I ask no one to take my
|
|
unsupported word; no, look at the dictionary; let the dictionary
|
|
decide. Here is the definition:
|
|
|
|
|
|
IRREVERENCE. The quality or condition of irreverence toward
|
|
God and sacred things.
|
|
|
|
|
|
What does the Hindu say? He says it is correct. He says
|
|
irreverence is lack of respect for Vishnu, and Brahma, and
|
|
Chrishna, and his other gods, and for his sacred cattle, and for
|
|
his temples and the things within them. He endorses the
|
|
definition, you see; and there are 300,000,000 Hindus or their
|
|
equivalents back of him.
|
|
|
|
The dictionary had the acute idea that by using the capital
|
|
G it could restrict irreverence to lack of reverence for OUR
|
|
Deity and our sacred things, but that ingenious and rather sly
|
|
idea miscarried: for by the simple process of spelling HIS
|
|
deities with capitals the Hindu confiscates the definition and
|
|
restricts it to his own sects, thus making it clearly compulsory
|
|
upon us to revere HIS gods and HIS sacred things, and nobody's
|
|
else. We can't say a word, for he had our own dictionary at his
|
|
back, and its decision is final.
|
|
|
|
This law, reduced to its simplest terms, is this:
|
|
1. Whatever is sacred to the Christian must be held in reverence by
|
|
everybody else; 2. whatever is sacred to the Hindu must be held
|
|
in reverence by everybody else; 3. therefore, by consequence,
|
|
logically, and indisputably, whatever is sacred to ME must be
|
|
held in reverence by everybody else.
|
|
|
|
Now then, what aggravates me is that these troglodytes and
|
|
muscovites and bandoleers and buccaneers are ALSO trying to crowd
|
|
in and share the benefit of the law, and compel everybody to
|
|
revere their Shakespeare and hold him sacred. We can't have
|
|
that: there's enough of us already. If you go on widening and
|
|
spreading and inflating the privilege, it will presently come to
|
|
be conceded that each man's sacred things are the ONLY ones, and
|
|
the rest of the human race will have to be humbly reverent toward
|
|
them or suffer for it. That can surely happen, and when it
|
|
happens, the word Irreverence will be regarded as the most
|
|
meaningless, and foolish, and self-conceited, and insolent, and
|
|
impudent, and dictatorial word in the language. And people will
|
|
say, "Whose business is it what gods I worship and what things
|
|
hold sacred? Who has the right to dictate to my conscience, and
|
|
where did he get that right?"
|
|
|
|
We cannot afford to let that calamity come upon us. We must
|
|
save the word from this destruction. There is but one way to do
|
|
it, and that is to stop the spread of the privilege and strictly
|
|
confine it to its present limits--that is, to all the Christian
|
|
sects, to all the Hindu sects, and me. We do not need any more,
|
|
the stock is watered enough, just as it is.
|
|
|
|
It would be better if the privilege were limited to me
|
|
alone. I think so because I am the only sect that knows how to
|
|
employ it gently, kindly, charitably, dispassionately. The other
|
|
sects lack the quality of self-restraint. The Catholic Church
|
|
says the most irreverent things about matters which are sacred to
|
|
the Protestants, and the Protestant Church retorts in kind about
|
|
the confessional and other matters which Catholics hold sacred;
|
|
then both of these irreverencers turn upon Thomas Paine and
|
|
charge HIM with irreverence. This is all unfortunate, because it
|
|
makes it difficult for students equipped with only a low grade of
|
|
mentality to find out what Irreverence really IS.
|
|
|
|
It will surely be much better all around if the privilege of
|
|
regulating the irreverent and keeping them in order shall
|
|
eventually be withdrawn from all the sects but me. Then there
|
|
will be no more quarreling, no more bandying of disrespectful
|
|
epithets, no more heartburnings.
|
|
|
|
There will then be nothing sacred involved in this Bacon-
|
|
Shakespeare controversy except what is sacred to me. That will
|
|
simplify the whole matter, and trouble will cease. There will be
|
|
irreverence no longer, because I will not allow it. The first
|
|
time those criminals charge me with irreverence for calling their
|
|
Stratford myth an Arthur-Orton-Mary-Baker-Thompson-Eddy-Louis-
|
|
the-Seventeenth-Veiled-Prophet-of-Khorassan will be the last.
|
|
Taught by the methods found effective in extinguishing earlier
|
|
offenders by the Inquisition, of holy memory, I shall know how to
|
|
quiet them.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
XIII
|
|
|
|
|
|
Isn't it odd, when you think of it, that you may list all
|
|
the celebrated Englishmen, Irishmen, and Scotchmen of modern
|
|
times, clear back to the first Tudors--a list containing five
|
|
hundred names, shall we say?--and you can go to the histories,
|
|
biographies, and cyclopedias and learn the particulars of the
|
|
lives of every one of them. Every one of them except one--the
|
|
most famous, the most renowned--by far the most illustrious of
|
|
them all--Shakespeare! You can get the details of the lives of
|
|
all the celebrated ecclesiastics in the list; all the celebrated
|
|
tragedians, comedians, singers, dancers, orators, judges,
|
|
lawyers, poets, dramatists, historians, biographers, editors,
|
|
inventors, reformers, statesmen, generals, admirals, discoverers,
|
|
prize-fighters, murderers, pirates, conspirators, horse-jockeys,
|
|
bunco-steerers, misers, swindlers, explorers, adventurers by land
|
|
and sea, bankers, financiers, astronomers, naturalists,
|
|
claimants, impostors, chemists, biologists, geologists,
|
|
philologists, college presidents and professors, architects,
|
|
engineers, painters, sculptors, politicians, agitators, rebels,
|
|
revolutionists, patriots, demagogues, clowns, cooks, freaks,
|
|
philosophers, burglars, highwaymen, journalists, physicians,
|
|
surgeons--you can get the life-histories of all of them but ONE.
|
|
Just ONE--the most extraordinary and the most celebrated of them all--
|
|
Shakespeare!
|
|
|
|
You may add to the list the thousand celebrated persons
|
|
furnished by the rest of Christendom in the past four centuries,
|
|
and you can find out the life-histories of all those people, too.
|
|
You will then have listed fifteen hundred celebrities, and you
|
|
can trace the authentic life-histories of the whole of them.
|
|
Save one--far and away the most colossal prodigy of the entire
|
|
accumulation--Shakespeare! About him you can find out NOTHING.
|
|
Nothing of even the slightest importance. Nothing worth the
|
|
trouble of stowing away in your memory. Nothing that even
|
|
remotely indicates that he was ever anything more than a
|
|
distinctly commonplace person--a manager, an actor of inferior
|
|
grade, a small trader in a small village that did not regard him
|
|
as a person of any consequence, and had forgotten all about him
|
|
before he was fairly cold in his grave. We can go to the records
|
|
and find out the life-history of every renowned RACE-HORSE of
|
|
modern times--but not Shakespeare's! There are many reasons why,
|
|
and they have been furnished in cart-loads (of guess and
|
|
conjecture) by those troglodytes; but there is one that is worth
|
|
all the rest of the reasons put together, and is abundantly
|
|
sufficient all by itself--HE HADN'T ANY HISTORY TO RECORD. There
|
|
is no way of getting around that deadly fact. And no sane way
|
|
has yet been discovered of getting around its formidable
|
|
significance.
|
|
|
|
Its quite plain significance--to any but those thugs (I do
|
|
not use the term unkindly) is, that Shakespeare had no prominence
|
|
while he lived, and none until he had been dead two or three
|
|
generations. The Plays enjoyed high fame from the beginning; and
|
|
if he wrote them it seems a pity the world did not find it out.
|
|
He ought to have explained that he was the author, and not merely
|
|
a NOM DE PLUME for another man to hide behind. If he had been
|
|
less intemperately solicitous about his bones, and more
|
|
solicitous about his Works, it would have been better for his
|
|
good name, and a kindness to us. The bones were not important.
|
|
They will moulder away, they will turn to dust, but the Works
|
|
will endure until the last sun goes down.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Mark Twain.
|
|
|
|
|
|
P.S. MARCH 25. About two months ago I was illuminating
|
|
this Autobiography with some notions of mine concerning the
|
|
Bacon-Shakespeare controversy, and I then took occasion to air
|
|
the opinion that the Stratford Shakespeare was a person of no
|
|
public consequence or celebrity during his lifetime, but was
|
|
utterly obscure and unimportant. And not only in great London,
|
|
but also in the little village where he was born, where he lived
|
|
a quarter of a century, and where he died and was buried. I
|
|
argued that if he had been a person of any note at all, aged
|
|
villagers would have had much to tell about him many and many a
|
|
year after his death, instead of being unable to furnish
|
|
inquirers a single fact connected with him. I believed, and I
|
|
still believe, that if he had been famous, his notoriety would
|
|
have lasted as long as mine has lasted in my native village out
|
|
in Missouri. It is a good argument, a prodigiously strong one,
|
|
and most formidable one for even the most gifted and ingenious
|
|
and plausible Stratfordolator to get around or explain away.
|
|
Today a Hannibal COURIER-POST of recent date has reached me, with
|
|
an article in it which reinforces my contention that a really
|
|
celebrated person cannot be forgotten in his village in the short
|
|
space of sixty years. I will make an extract from it:
|
|
|
|
|
|
Hannibal, as a city, may have many sins to answer for, but
|
|
ingratitude is not one of them, or reverence for the great men
|
|
she has produced, and as the years go by her greatest son, Mark
|
|
Twain, or S. L. Clemens as a few of the unlettered call him,
|
|
grows in the estimation and regard of the residents of the town
|
|
he made famous and the town that made him famous. His name is
|
|
associated with every old building that is torn down to make way
|
|
for the modern structures demanded by a rapidly growing city, and
|
|
with every hill or cave over or through which he might by any
|
|
possibility have roamed, while the many points of interest which
|
|
he wove into his stories, such as Holiday Hill, Jackson's Island,
|
|
or Mark Twain Cave, are now monuments to his genius. Hannibal is
|
|
glad of any opportunity to do him honor as he had honored her.
|
|
|
|
So it has happened that the "old timers" who went to school
|
|
with Mark or were with him on some of his usual escapades have
|
|
been honored with large audiences whenever they were in a
|
|
reminiscent mood and condescended to tell of their intimacy with
|
|
the ordinary boy who came to be a very extraordinary humorist and
|
|
whose every boyish act is now seen to have been indicative of
|
|
what was to come. Like Aunt Becky and Mrs. Clemens, they can now
|
|
see that Mark was hardly appreciated when he lived here and that
|
|
the things he did as a boy and was whipped for doing were not all
|
|
bad, after all. So they have been in no hesitancy about drawing
|
|
out the bad things he did as well as the good in their efforts to
|
|
get a "Mark Twain" story, all incidents being viewed in the light
|
|
of his present fame, until the volume of "Twainiana" is already
|
|
considerable and growing in proportion as the "old timers" drop
|
|
away and the stories are retold second and third hand by their
|
|
descendants. With some seventy-three years and living in a villa
|
|
instead of a house, he is a fair target, and let him incorporate,
|
|
copyright, or patent himself as he will, there are some of his
|
|
"works" that will go swooping up Hannibal chimneys as long as
|
|
graybeards gather about the fires and begin with, "I've heard
|
|
father tell," or possibly, "Once when I."
|
|
The Mrs. Clemens referred to is my mother--WAS my mother.
|
|
|
|
And here is another extract from a Hannibal paper, of date
|
|
twenty days ago:
|
|
|
|
Miss Becca Blankenship died at the home of William Dickason,
|
|
408 Rock Street, at 2.30 o'clock yesterday afternoon, aged 72
|
|
years. The deceased was a sister of "Huckleberry Finn," one of
|
|
the famous characters in Mark Twain's TOM SAWYER. She had been a
|
|
member of the Dickason family--the housekeeper--for nearly forty-
|
|
five years, and was a highly respected lady. For the past eight
|
|
years she had been an invalid, but was as well cared for by
|
|
Mr. Dickason and his family as if she had been a near relative.
|
|
She was a member of the Park Methodist Church and a Christian woman.
|
|
|
|
|
|
I remember her well. I have a picture of her in my mind
|
|
which was graven there, clear and sharp and vivid, sixty-three
|
|
years ago. She was at that time nine years old, and I was about
|
|
eleven. I remember where she stood, and how she looked; and I
|
|
can still see her bare feet, her bare head, her brown face, and
|
|
her short tow-linen frock. She was crying. What it was about I
|
|
have long ago forgotten. But it was the tears that preserved the
|
|
picture for me, no doubt. She was a good child, I can say that
|
|
for her. She knew me nearly seventy years ago. Did she forget
|
|
me, in the course of time? I think not. If she had lived in
|
|
Stratford in Shakespeare's time, would she have forgotten him?
|
|
Yes. For he was never famous during his lifetime, he was utterly
|
|
obscure in Stratford, and there wouldn't be any occasion to
|
|
remember him after he had been dead a week.
|
|
|
|
"Injun Joe," "Jimmy Finn," and "General Gaines" were
|
|
prominent and very intemperate ne'er-do-weels in Hannibal two
|
|
generations ago. Plenty of grayheads there remember them to this
|
|
day, and can tell you about them. Isn't it curious that two
|
|
"town drunkards" and one half-breed loafer should leave behind
|
|
them, in a remote Missourian village, a fame a hundred times
|
|
greater and several hundred times more particularized in the
|
|
matter of definite facts than Shakespeare left behind him in the
|
|
village where he had lived the half of his lifetime?
|
|
|
|
|
|
Mark Twain.
|
|
|
|
|
|
End of The Project Gutenberg Edition of "What Is Man?" by Mark Twain
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|